ACKNOWLEDGMENTS A Del Key Book. Published by Baliantine BooksCopyright (c) 1978 by Lester del ReyIntroduction: The Magnificent. Copyright (c) 1978 by Frederik PohlAll rights reserved under International and Pan-American CopyrightConventions. Published in the United States by Baliantine Books, a division ofRandom House, Inc., New York and simultaneously in Canada by Baliantine Booksof Canada, Ltd., Toronto, Canada. Library of Congress Catalog Card Number: 78-62267 ISBN 0-345-27336-2Manufactured in the United States of America First Baliantine Books Edition: September 1978 Cover art by H. R. Van Dongen"Helen O'Loy," copyright (c) 1938 by Street & Smith Publications, Inc., forAstounding Science Fiction, December 1938. The Day Is Done," copyright (c) 1939 by Street & Smith' Publications, Inc., for Astounding Science Fiction, May 1939. The Coppersmith," copyright (c) 1939 by Street & Smith Publications, Inc., for Unknown, September 1939. "Hereafter, Inc.," copyright (c) 1941 by Street & Smith Publications, Inc., for Unknown Worlds, December 1941. The Wings of Night," copyright (c) 1942 by Street & Smith Publications, Inc., for Astounding Science Fiction, March 1942. "Into Thy Hands," copyright (c) 1945 by Street & Smith Publications, Inc., forAstounding Science Fiction, August 1945. "And It Comes Out Here," copyright (c) 1951 by World Editions, Inc., forGalaxy Science Fiction, February 1951. The Monster," copyright (c) 1951 by Popular Publications, Inc., for Argosymagazine. The Years Draw Nigh," copyright (c) 1951 by Street & Smith Publications, Inc., for Astounding Science Fiction, October 1951. "Instinct," copyright (c) 1952 by Street & Smith Publications, Inc., forAstounding Science Fiction, January 1952. "Superstition," copyright (c) 1954 by Street & Smith Publications, Inc., forAstounding Science Fiction, August 1954. "For I Am a Jealous People," copyright (c) 1954 by Baliantine Books, Inc., forStar Short Novels. The Keepers of the House," copyright (c) 1955 by King-Size Publications, Inc., for Fantastic Universe, January 1956. "Little Jimmy," copyright (c) 1957 by Fantasy House, Inc., for Fantasy andScience Fiction, April 1957. "The Seat of Judgment," copyright (c) 1957 by Fantasy House, Inc., for VentureScience Fiction, July 1957. "Vengeance Is Mine," copyright (c) 1964 by Galaxy Publishing Corporation forGalaxy Science Fiction, December 1964. TO BETTY BALLANTINE, my long-time editor, with my deepest affection. Contents Introduction: The Magnificent Frederik PohlHelen O'LoyThe Day Is DoneThe CoppersmithHereafter, Inc. The Wings of NightInto Thy HandsAnd It Comes Out Here The Monster The Years Draw Nigh Instinct SuperstitionFor I Am a Jealous PeopleThe Keepers of the HouseLittle JimmyThe Seat of JudgmentVengeance Is MineAuthor's Afterword The MagnificentTHE UNQUESTIONED KING of-the nighttime air in New York radio is a skinny andsardonic fellow named Long John Nebel. Long John's marathon talk show runsfrom midnight till dawn every night of the week, and what it covers iseverything. I don't just mean "everything." I mean everything. Politics. Religion. Sex. Hying saucers. Bermuda triangles. War. Science fiction. Science. Art. Music. You name it, it has been the subject of a Long Johntalkfest. And over the years, among his chosen nuclear guest family who joinhim after midnight to chew over the topic of the day, one voice has stood out. Whatever the subject, he has an opinion, and insights and facts to back it up. He has done the show 400 times at least, not counting reruns on tape, and heis so well known to the insomniacs of New York (and most other states) that heis usually introduced only as The Magnificent. He doesn't need to be given aname, because the listeners know him so well. But he has one. It is Lester delRey. Of course, there are countless thousands of people who have known Lester delRey very well for a long time who have never heard him on Long John's show. They are people like you and me: science-fiction readers. We've known Lesterfor forty years, or even longerAll if we remember those polemical letters in Astounding's "Brass Tacks" department in the '30s. Like most sf writers, Lester came to the field as a reader. He liked what heread. After some thought, he concluded that he would like writing it, too. Hehad never written a science-fiction story at the time. That didn't seem tomatter. He reasoned that if he thought of an idea no one else had thought ofbefore, and told it concisely and literately, with some attention tointeresting characters and colorful backgrounds, John Campbell would buy it. So he did. And so John did; it was called "The Faithful." That was the firststory Lester sold John Campbell. It certainly wasn't the last. The Golden Ageof Astounding was all the more lustrous for "Nerves," "Helen O'Loy," and allthose others from his hard-driven typewriter. Once he had formed the habit, Lester did not stop with Astounding. He wrotefor all the other magazines, too, and when a few years later a couple ofpublishers took all their courage in their hands and began to experiment withscience-fiction books, Lester was one of the first to get his sf nicelypackaged in hard covers. He wrote a couple, then a flood, of novels especiallyfor the book publishers. There are grown men (and grown women, too) all overthe country who cut their literary wisdom teeth on sf juveniles by Philip St. John, Erik Van Lhin, and Kenneth Wright-all of whom were, in fact, Lester delRey. Scott Meredith, then a young (but obviously canny) literary agent, grabbed Lester as a client, and shortly thereafter as an employee, and asMeredith's Number One assistant, Lester guided the careers of scores of otherwriters. When the science-fiction magazine market mushroomed in the early 1950s Lester became the editor of one of the most interesting-strikethat; of four of the most interesting- magazines around. He did most of that pseudony-mously, too. On Tuesdays and Thursdays, he was Philip St. John, editor of Science Fiction Adventures. On Mondays, Wednesdays, and Fridays he was Wade Kaempf ert, editing Rocket Stories; and then he had the whole weekend to himself, under his own name, to edit Space Science Fiction and FantasyFiction Magazine. I first met Lester del Rey when both of us were impossibly apple-cheekedyoungsters. I was editing two cut-rate science-fiction magazines for PopularPublications, and Lester, on one of his rare visits to New York, brought to myoffice a couple of stories that John Campbell had had the unwisdom to turndown. In my youthful foolishness, I did the same. Well, you can excuseCampbell, because he had everybody in the field clamoring to get into hismagazines. Maybe you can forgive me, too, because I was inexperienced. But howcan you excuse Lester for what he did then? Since two editors had declined thestories, he figured there was something wrong with them. He put them aside-andnow, four decades later, they're still aside, in fact lost irretrievably. A war came along, scattering us all for a while. And then, in 1947, there wasa world science-fiction convention in Philadelphia. We all saw each otheragain, met new friends, had a fine time. All in all it was a fine weekend; andLester and I liked it so well that we conceived the idea of making itpermanent. Lester was living in New York City by then, and so was I, and we got ourselvesand a coterie of friends together and created The Hydra Club, New York'slongest-lived sf writers' chowder-and-marching society. Long after both Lesterand I had left the city and stopped attending, the club carried on of its ownmomentum. One of the leading lights of Hydra was the late Fletcher Pratt, amarvelous, lovable, feisty man who had once been a bantamweight prize fighterand converted himself into the writer who produced the best one-volume historyof the Civil War ever in print (among very much else that is noteworthy). Fletcher and Inga Pratt owned a great old monster of a house on the New Jerseyshore. Lester and I (and our wives) were frequent weekend guests, and grewfond of the Monmouth County area. In 1951 I moved to RedBank. In 1954 the del Reys came out to visit the Pohls for a weekend. Theystayed seventeen years. Oh, it wasn't roses, roses all the way! Science-fiction writers are thornypeople, given to obstinacy and adrenalin, and Lester is an archetypal science- fiction writer. He has sometimes been described as fulminate of mercury with abeard. I am not at all like that, of course, but nevertheless we had somerousers. We fought like wombats over astrophysics, horticulture, and whetherthe Bruch violin concerto deserves to be mentioned in the same breath with the Mendelssohn. (Lester was wrong about that, though I must admit the Bruch isstill very good.) In the days before baseball teams treacherously desertedtheir God-given home turfs to dally in California, Lester was misguidedly apartisan of the New York Giants, while I, of course, loyally supported thebest team in the history of baseball, the Brooklyn Dodgers. That caused a lotof trouble. Perhaps you remember hearing about Bobby Thomson's home run thatcost Brooklyn a pennant? That was the closest I ever came to punching Lesterout. He chortled. But when the chips were down, when there was trouble-and there was gravetrouble now and then for both of us-what Lester was was a friend. In 1970 Evelyn del Rey was killed hi a car crash. After that, Lester did not want tolive in their house any more. He moved to New York, and so in a short timeCarol and I had lost not only Ewie, but Lester as well. It was a sombertime. But time passed; and then, when we now and then saw Lester on a visit, it wasclear that somehow he was finding joy again. By and by it became clear thatthe joy had a name, and her name was Judy-Lynn Benjamin. I wholly approved. For one thing, I would not have dared not to; I had introduced them, whenLester was editing one of the magazines at the Galaxy complex and Judy-Lynnwas the brand-new, fresh-out-of-college junior editor who saw that everything got done for us. They were married a few months later; and that, my children, is the story of how Del Rey Books got its name. So I am not very objective about Lester del Rey, either as a writer or as afriend. As a writer, his awards speak for his standing in his field, but theydon't have to. The stories speak for themselves, and what I can tell you inthis short note cannot say as much for his writing as any of the works thatfollow. So let me talk about him in other ways. As the person who dyed hisbeard green in silent protest when his wife changed the color of her hair. Asthe tinkerer who redesigned the keyboard of his typewriter to economize onfinger movements. As the man who taught me so wickedly addictive a form ofsolitaire that I have never since been able to play any other. As the coach, mentor, and advocate of a hundred newer writers, some of them now in the toprank of science fiction. Lester has spent a great deal of his time in passing on the writers' triballore to newcomers. One of them was a brash young Ohio fan named HarlanEllison. When Harlan heard I was writing these notes, he demanded equal time. This is what he said: I arrived in New York in late 1955; I was notable for two qualities: arelentless determination to be a professional writer, and squeaky-cleanpoverty. I had no place to live. Lester and his wonderful wife, the lateEvelyn del Rey, took me in for a couple of weeks till I could find digs in thecity. Sitting at the del Keys' dining room table, using the bartered Royalportable that had been virtually the only thing I'd salvaged when I'd beenkicked out of Ohio State University a few months previous, I wrote my firststory. Lester was unfailingly helpful. He would walk up behind me, read whatI'd typed, see it was syntactically crippled, and bat me across the back ofthe head. "Not who, dummy! Whoml" He provided auctorial tips, he showed me howto cobble up the extrapolative science that would make my specious conceptswork, he edited the manuscript. Ewie fed me. After Algis Budrys and Andre Norton, who were the first writers to take aninterest in me, Lester was the one who got me started thinking and writing asa professional. He wasn't kind, he was murderous; and that is a brutaltreasure more valuable than all the strokes given by well-intentioned andinept amateurs who do not perceive one one-millionth as clearly as Lester didthat writing is a killing craft, and only the tough survive and prevail. For that savaging, I will always love and honor Lester. A decade or so ago, Lester and I were comparing notes in the ril-show-youmine- if-you-show-me-yours way writers have when they suspect they may be upfor the same prize. Each year the World Science Fiction Convention selects some figure from thefield to be its official Guest of Honor. Neither Lester nor I had ever been. The convention that would vote on it was coming up. The committee for the citythat gets the convention picks its GoH, and they keep it secret until, andunless, they win the bid. And it turned out that, in fact, we were competing for the honor that year. What I told Lester at the tune was true: I surely would enjoy being it. But ifI had to lose, there wasn't anybody in the field I'd rather lose to. Of course, I confess, I felt pretty easy at being generous about it. The oddswere on my side. Several cities were bidding for the convention. Two of themhad asked me to be their Guest of Honor, and only one had asked Lester. The trouble with betting with the odds is that the odds don't always pay off. Lester's people won. He got the honor, and I had to skulk in darkness forseveral more years before emerging into glory in Los Angeles. But that'sLester for you. He makes a liar of the odds-layers every time. He beat the odds for his own life some years back, against all the wisdom ofmedical science. The name of what happened to him is thromboeytopenia purpura. It is a disease, and an uncommon one. When it happens at all, it happens to tinybabies. When babies do develop it, the victims are usually female. I willattempt to describe this for you, if you will pardon the use of technicalmedical terms: For some reason or other, all the platelets in the blood say, "Ah, screw it," at once. They stop clotting. The victim bleeds to death. When grown male Lester del Rey's platelets did this he was in his forties, andthe local doctors competed vigorously for the chance to attend this medicalmarvel-right away, because they didn't think a lot of his chances ofsurviving. They said, "Don't cut yourself, don't bump yourself, and, aboveall, for God's sake, don't sneeze." Lester humored them to that extent. Hedidn't sneeze. But he didn't die, either. He was one of the vanishingly smallnumber of male adults who contract the disease in the first place, and theeven tinier number who survive it to make a full recovery. Doctors don't knowhow he managed this, but I do. It was his stubbornness. He just didn't feellike dying then. Let me give you an example of what a person like Lester can do against theodds when he sets his mind to it. I swear every word of this is true. You know that the Apollo Project, which put the first man on the Moon, beganshortly after the inauguration of President John Kennedy in 1961. Well, there is a novel by Lester del Rey (under his penname Philip St. John) called Rocket Jockey. It was published in 1951. The space program had hardly begun when he was writing it, and Commander NeilArmstrong, who was to take that first great step for mankind a few yearslater, was still just another Navy pilot with the hope of someday sailingspace. More than that. Sputnik and Vostok had made the American space programlook pretty silly, and as far as anyone could tell, when that first man didwalk on the Moon it was likely that the first message he would radio homemight be in Russian. Nevertheless- Nevertheless the first sentence of that novel is fascinating. Many science- fiction stories have predicted future events. Few have been as uncannily exact,* even to names, as this openingsentence: "The first spaceship landed on the Moon, and Commander Armstrong stepped out." Now do you understand why they call him The Magnificent? FrederikPohl Red Bank, NJ. Christmas, 1977*See Author's Afterword. Helen O'LoyI AM AN old man now, but I can still see Helen as Dave unpacked her, and stillhear him gasp as he looked her over. "Man, isn't she a beauty?" She was beautiful, a dream in spun plastics and metals, something Keats mighthave seen dimly when he wrote his sonnet. If Helen of Troy had looked likethat the Greeks must have been pikers when they launched only a thousandships; at least, that's what I told Dave. "Helen of Troy, eh?" He looked at her tag. "At least it beats this thingK2W88. Helen . . . Mmmm . . . Helen of Alloy." "Not much swing to that, Dave. Too many unstressed syllables in the middle. How about Helen O'Loy?" "Helen O'Loy she is, Phil." And that's how it began-one part beauty, one partdream, one part science; add a stereo broacast, stir mechanically, and theresult is chaos. Dave and I hadn't gone to college together, but when I came to Messina topractice medicine, I found him downstairs in a little robot repair shop. Afterthat, we began to pal around, and when I started going with one twin, he foundthe other equally attractive, so we made it a foursome. When our business grew better, we rented a house out near the rocket field noisy but cheap, and therockets discouraged apartment building. We liked room enough to stretchourselves. I suppose, if we hadn't quarreled with them, we'd have married thetwins in time. But Dave wanted to look over the latest Venus-rocket attemptwhen his twin wanted to see a display stereo starring Larry Ainslee, and theywere both stubborn. From then on, we forgot the girls and spent our eveningsat home. But it wasn't until "Lena" put vanilla on our steak instead of salt that wegot off on the subject of emotions and robots: While Dave was dissecting Lenato find the trouble, we naturally mulled over the future of the mechs. He wassure that the robots would beat men some day, and I couldn't see it. "Look here, Dave," I argued. "You know Lena doesn't think-not really. Whenthose wires crossed, she could have corrected herself. But she didn't bother; she followed the mechanical impulse. A man might have reached for the vanilla, but when he saw it in his hand, he'd have stopped. Lena has sense enough, butshe has no emotions, no consciousness of self." "All right, that's the big trouble with the mechs now. But we'll get aroundit, put in some mechanical emotions, or something." He screwed Lena's headback on, turned on her juice. "Go back to work, Lena, it's nineteen o'clock." Now I specialized in endocrinology and related subjects. I wasn't exactly apsychologist, but I did understand the glands, secretions, hormones, andmiscellanies that are the physical causes of emotions. It took medical sciencethree hundred years to find out how and why they worked, and I couldn't seemen duplicating them mechanically in much less time. I brought home books and papers to prove it, and Dave quoted the invention ofmemory coils and veritoid eyes. During that year we swapped knowledge untilDave knew the whole theory of endocrinology, and I could have made Lena frommemory. The more we talked, the less sure I grew about the impossibility ofHomo mechanensis as the perfect type. Poor Lena. Her cuproberyl body spent half its timein scattered pieces. Our first attempts were successful only in getting her toserve fried brushes for breakfast and wash the dishes in oleo oil. Then one day she cooked a perfect dinner with six wires crossed, and Dave was inecstasy. He worked all night on her wiring, put in a new coil, and taught her a freshset of words. And the next day she flew into a tantrum and swore vigorouslyat-us when we told her she wasn't doing her work right. "It's a lie," she yelled, shaking a suction brush. "You're all liars. If youso-and-so's would leave me whole long enough, I might get something donearound the place." When we calmed her temper and got her back to work, Dave ushered me into thestudy. "Not taking any chances with Lena," he explained. "We'll have to cutout that adrenal pack and restore her to normality. But we've got to get abetter robot. A housemaid mech isn't complex enough." "How about Dillard's new utility models? They seem to combine everything inone." "Exactly. Even so, we'll need a special one built to order, with a full rangeof memory coils. And out of respect to old Lena, let's get a female case forits works." The result, of course, was Helen. The Dillard people had performed a miracleand put all the works in a girl-modeled case. Even the plastic and rubberiteface was designed for flexibility to express emotions, and she was completewith tear glands and taste buds, ready to simulate every human action, frombreathing to pulling hair. The bill they sent with her was another miracle, but Dave and I scraped it together; we had to turn Lena over to an exchange tocomplete it, though, and thereafter we ate out. I'd performed plenty of delicate operations on living tissues, and some of them had been tricky, but I still felt Kke a premed student as we opened thefront plate of her torso and began to sever the leads of her "nerves." Dave'smechanical glands were all prepared, complex little bundles of pansistors andwires that heterodynedon the electrical thought impulses and distorted them as adrenalin distortsthe reaction of human minds. Instead of sleeping that night, we pored over the schematic diagrams of herstructures, tracing the complex thought mazes of her wiring, severing theleaders, implanting the heterones, as Dave called them. And while we worked, amechanical tape fed carefully prepared thoughts of consciousness and awarenessof life and feeling into an auxiliary memory coil. Dave believed in leavingnothing to chance. It was growing light as we finished, exhausted and exultant. All that remainedwas the starting of her electrical power; like all the Dillard mechs, she wasequipped with a tiny atomotor instead of batteries, and once started wouldneed no further attention. Dave refused to turn her on. "Wait until we've slept and rested," he advised. "I'm as eager to try her as you are, but we can't do much studying with ourminds half-dead. Turn in, and we'll leave Helen until later." Even though we were both reluctant to follow it, we knew the idea was sound. We turned in, and sleep hit us before the air conditioner could cut down tosleeping temperature. And then Dave was pounding on my shoulder. "Phil! Hey, snap out of it!" I groaned, turned over, and faced him. "Well? ... Uh! What is it? Did Helen-" "No, it's old Mrs. van Styler. She 'visored to say her son has an infatuationfor a servant girl, and she wants you to come out and give counterhormones. They're at the summer camp in Maine." Rich Mrs. van Styler! I couldn't afford to let that account down, now thatHelen had used up the last of my funds. But it wasn't a job I cared for. "Counterhormones! That'll take two weeks' full time. Anyway, I'm no societydoctor, messing with glands to keep fools happy. My job's taking care ofserious trouble." "And you want to watch Helen." Dave was grinning, but he was serious, too. "Itold her it'd cost her fifty thousand!" "Huh?" "And she said okay, if you hurried." Of course, there was only one thing to do, though I could have wrung fat Mrs. van Styler's neck cheerfully. It wouldn't have happened if she'd used robotslike everyone else-but she had to be different. Consequently, while Dave was back home puttering with Helen, I was racking mybrain to trick Archy van Styler into getting the counterhormones, and givingthe servant girl the same. Oh, I wasn't supposed to, but the poor kid wascrazy about Archy. Dave might have written, I thought, but never a word did Iget. It was three weeks later instead of two when I reported that Archy was"cured," and collected on the line. With that money in my pocket, I hired apersonal rocket and was back in Messina in half an hour. I didn't waste timein reaching the house. As I stepped into the alcove, I heard a light patter of feet, and an eagervoice called out, "Dave, dear?" For a minute I couldn't answer, and the voicecame again, pleading, "Dave?" I don't know what I expected, but I didn't expect Helen to meet me that way, stopping and staring at me, obvious disappointment on her face, little handsfluttering up against her breast. "Oh," she cried. "I thought it was Dave. He hardly conies home to eat now, butI've had supper waiting hours." She dropped her hands and managed a smile. "You're Phil, aren't you? Dave told me about you when ... at first. I'm so glad to see you home, Phil." "Glad to see you doing so well, Helen." Now what does one say for lightconversation with a robot? "You said something about supper?" "Oh, yes. I guess Dave ate downtown again, so we might as well go in. It'll benice having someone to talk to around the house, Phil. You don't mind if Icall you Phil, do you? You know, you're sort of a godfather to me." We ate. I hadn't counted on such behavior, but apparently she consideredeating as normal as walking. She didn't do much eating, at that; most of the time she spent staring at thefront, door. Dave came in as we were finishing, a frown a yard wide on his face. Helenstarted to rise, but he ducked toward the stairs, throwing words over hisshoulder. "Hi, Phil. See you up here later." There was something radically wrong with him. For a moment, I'd thought hiseyes were haunted, and as I turned to Helen, hers were filling with tears. Shegulped, choked them back, and fell to viciously on her food. "What's the matter with him ... and you?" I asked. "He's sick of me." She pushed her plate away and got up hastily. "You'd bettersee him while I clean up. And there's nothing wrong with me. And it's not myfault anyway," She grabbed the dishes and ducked into the kitchen; I couldhave sworn she was crying. Maybe all thought is a series of conditioned reflexes- but she certainly hadpicked up a lot of conditioning while I was gone. Lena in her heyday had beennothing like this. I went up to see if Dave could make any sense out of thehodge-podge. He was squirting soda into a large glass of apple brandy, and I saw that thebottle was nearly empty. "Join me?" he asked. It seemed like a good idea. The roaring blast of an ion rocket overhead wasthe only familiar thing left in the house. From the look around Dave's eyes, it wasn't the first bottle he'd emptied while I was gone, and there were moreleft. He dug out a new bottle for his own drink. "Of course, it's none of my business, Dave, but that stuff won't steady yournerves any. What's gotten into you and Helen? Been seeing ghosts?" Helen was wrong; he hadn't been eating downtown- nor anywhere else. Hismuscles collapsed into a chair in a way that spoke of fatigue and nerves, butmostly of hunger. "You noticed it, eh?" "Noticed it? The two of you jammed it down my throat." "Uhmmm." He swatted at a nonexistent fly, and slumped further down in thepneumatic. "Guess maybe I should have waited with Helen until you got back. But if that stereo cast hadn't changed . . . anyway, it did. And those mushybooks of yours finished the job." "Thanks. That makes it all clear." "You know, Phil, I've got a place up in the country . . . fruit ranch. My dadleft it to me. Think I'll look it over." And that's the way it went. But finally, by much liquor and more perspiration, I got some of the story out of him before I gave him an Amytal and put him tobed. Then I hunted up Helen and dug the rest of the story from her, until itmade sense. Apparently as soon as I was gone, Dave had turned her on and made preliminarytests, which were entirely satisfactory. She had reacted beautifully-so wellthat he decided to leave her and go down to work as usual. Naturally, with all her untried emotions, she was filled with curiosity, andwanted him to stay. Then he had an inspiration. After showing her what herduties about the house would be, he set her down in front of the stereovisor, tuned in a travelogue, and left her to occupy her time with that. The travelogue held her attention until it was finished, and the station switched over to a current serial with Larry Ainslee, the same cute emoterwho'd given us all the trouble with the twins. Incidentally, he lookedsomething like Dave. Helen took to the serial like a seal to water. This play-acting was a perfectoutlet for her newly excited emotions. When that particular episode finished, she found a love story on another station, and added still more to hereducation. The afternoon programs were mostly news and music, but by thenshe'd found my books; and I do have rather adolescent taste in literature. Dave came home in the best of spirits. The front alcove was neatly swept, andthere was the odor of food in the air that he'd missed around the house for weeks. He had visions of Helen as the super-efficient housekeeper. So it was a shock to him to feel two strong arms around his neck from behindand hear a voice all aquiver coo into his ears, "Oh, Dave, darling. I'vemissed you so, and I'm so thrilled that you're back." Helen's technique mayhave lacked polish, but it had enthusiasm, as he found when he tried to stopher from kissing him. She had learned fast and furiously-also, Helen waspowered by an atomotor. Dave wasn't a prude, but he remembered that she was only a robot, after all. The fact that she felt, acted, and looked like a young goddess in his armsdidn't mean much. With some effort, he untangled her and dragged her off tosupper, where he made her eat with him to divert her attention. After her evening work, he called her into the study and gave her a thoroughlecture on the folly of her ways. It must have been good, for it lasted threesolid hours, and covered her station in life, the idiocy of stereos, andvarious other miscellanies. When he finished, Helen looked up with dewy eyesand said wistfully, "I know, Dave, but I still love you." That's when Dave started drinking. It grew worse each day. If he stayed downtown, she was crying when he camehome. If he returned on time, she fussed over him and threw herself at him. Inhis room, with the door locked, he could hear her downstairs pacing up anddown and muttering; and when he went down, she stared at him reproachfullyuntil he had to go back up. I sent Helen out on a fake errand in the morning and got Dave up. With hergone, I made him eat a decent breakfast and gave him a tonic for his nerves. He was still listless and moody. "Look here, Dave," I broke in on his brooding. "Helen isn't human, after all. Why not cut off her power and change a few memory coils? Then we can convinceher that she never was in love and couldn't get that way." "You try it. I had that idea, but she put up a wail that would wake Homer. Shesays it would be murder- and the hell of it is that I can't help feeling thesame about it. Maybe she isn't human, but you wouldn't guess it when she putson that martyred look and tells you to go ahead and kill her." "We never put in substitutes for some of the secretions present in man duringthe love period." "I don't know what we put in. Maybe the heterones backfired or something. Anyway, she's made this idea so much a part of her thoughts that we'd have toput in a whole new set of coils." "Well, why not?" "Go ahead. You're the surgeon of this family. I'm not used to fussing withemotions. Matter of fact, since she's been acting this way, I'm beginning tohate work on any robot. My business is going to blazes." He saw Helen coming up the walk and ducked out the back door for the monorailexpress. I'd intended to put him back in bed, but let him go. Maybe he'd bebetter off at his shop than at home. "Dave's gone?" Helen did have that martyred look now. "Yeah. I got him to eat, and he's gone to work." "I'm glad he ate." She slumped down in a chair as if she were worn out, thoughhow a mech could be tired beat me. "Phil?" "Well, what is it?" "Do you think I'm bad for him? I mean, do you think he'd be happier if Iweren't here?" "He'll go crazy if you keep acting this way around him." She winced. Those little hands were twisting about pleadingly, and I felt likean inhuman brute. But I'd started, and I went ahead. "Even if I cut out yourpower and changed your coils, he'd probably still be fcaunted by you." "I know. But I can't help it. And I'd make him a good wife, really I would, Phil." I gulped; this was getting a little too far. "And give Mm strapping sons toboot, I suppose. A man wants flesh and blood, not rubber and metal." "Don't, please! I can't think of myself that way; to me, I'm a woman. And youknow how perfectly-I'm made to imitate a real woman ... in all ways. Icouldn't give him sons, but in every other way ... I'd try so hard, I know I'dmake him a good wife." I gave up. Dave didn't come home that night, nor the next day. Helen was fussing andfuming, wanting me to call the hospitals and the police, but I knew nothinghad happened to him. He always carried identification. Still, when he didn'tcome on the third day, I began to worry. And when Helen started out for hisshop, I agreed to go with her. Dave was there, with another man I didn't know. I parked Helen where hecouldn't see her, but where she could hear, and went in as soon as the otherfellow left. Dave looked a little better and seemed glad to see me. "Hi, Phil-just closingup. Let's go eat." Helen couldn't hold back any longer, but came trooping in. "Come on home, Dave. I've got roast duck with spice stuffing, and you know you love that." "Scat!" said Dave. She shrank back, turned to go. "Oh, all right, stay. Youmight as well hear it, too. I've sold the shop. The fellow you saw just boughtit, and I'm going up to the old fruit ranch I told you about, Phil. I can'tstand the mechs any more." "You'll starve to death at that," I told him. "No, there's a growing demand for old-fashioned fruit, raised out of doors. People are tked of this water-culture stuff. Dad always made a living out ofit. I'm leaving as soon as I can get home and pack." Helen clung to her idea. "I'll pack, Dave, while you eat. I've got applecobbler for dessert." The world was toppling under her feet, but she stillremembered how crazy he was for apple cobbler. Helen was a good cook; in fact she was a genius, with all the good points of awoman and a mech combined. Dave ate well enough, after he got started. By thetime supper was over, he'd thawed out enough to admit he liked the duck andcobbler, and to thank her for packing. In fact, he even let her kiss' himgood-bye, though he firmly refused to let her go to the rocket field with him. Helen was trying to be brave when I got back, and we carried on a stumblingconversation about Mrs. van Styler's servants for a while. But the talk beganto lull, and she sat staring out of the window at nothing most of the time. Even the stereo comedy lacked interest for her, and I was glad enough to haveher go off to her room. She could cut her power down to simulate sleep whenshe chose. As the days slipped by, I began to realize why she couldn't believe herself arobot. I got to thinking of her as a girl and companion myself. Except for oddintervals when she went off by herself to brood, or when she kept going to thetelescript for a letter that never came, she was as good a companion as a man could ask. There was something homey about the place that Lena had never putthere. I took Helen on a shopping trip to Hudson and she giggled and purred over thewisps of silk and glassheen that were the fashion, tried on endless hats, andconducted herself as any normal girl might. We went trout fishing for a day, where she proved to be as good a sport and as sensibly silent as a man. Ithoroughly enjoyed myself and thought she was forgetting Dave. That was beforeI came home unexpectedly and found her doubled up on the couch, threshing herlegs up and down and crying to the high heavens. It was then I called Dave. They seemed to have trouble in reaching him, andHelen came over beside me while I waited. She was tense and fidgety as an oldmaid trying to propose. But finally they located Dave. "What's up, Phil?" he asked as his face came on the vkwplate. "I was justgetting my things together to-" I broke him off. "Things can't go on the way they are, Dave. I've made up mymind. I'm yanking Helen's coils tonight. It won't be worse than what she'sgoing through now." Helen reached up and touched my shoulder. "Maybe that's best, Phil. I don'tblame you." Dave's voice cut in. "Phil, you don't know what you're doing!" "Of course, I do. It'll all be over by the time you can get here. As youheard, she's agreeing." There was a black cloud sweeping over Dave's face. "I won't have it, Phil. She's half mine and I forbid it!" "Of all the-" "Go ahead, call me anything you want. I've changed my mind. I was packing tocome home when you called." Helen jerked around me, her eyes glued to the panel. "Dave, do you . . . areyou-" "I'm just waking up to what a fool I've been, Helen. Phil, I'll be home in acouple of hours, so if there's anything-" He didn't have to chase me out. But I heard Helen cooing something aboutloving to be a rancher's wife before I could shut the door. Well, I wasn't as surprised as they thought. I think I knew when I called Davewhat would happen. No man acts the way Dave had been acting because he hates agirl; only because he thinks he does-and thinks wrong. No woman ever made a lovelier bride or a sweeter wife. Helen never lost her flair for cooking and making a home. With her gone, the old house seemedempty, and I began to drop out to the ranch once or twice a week. I supposethey had trouble at times, but I never saw it, and I know the neighbors neversuspected they were anything but normal man and wife. Dave grew older, and Helen didn't, of course. But between us, we put lines inher face and grayed her hair without letting Dave know that she wasn't growingold with him; he'd forgotten that she wasn't human, I guess. I practically forgot, myself. It wasn't until a letter came from Helen thismorning that I woke up to reality. There, in her beautiful script, just atrifle shaky in places, was tlie inevitable that neither Dave nor I had seen. Dear Phil, As you know, Dave has had heart trouble for several years now. We expected himto live on just the same, but it seems that wasn't to be. He died in my armsjust before sunrise. He sent you his greetings and farewell. I've one last favor to ask of you, Phil. There is only one thing for me to dowhen this is finished. Acid will burn out metal as well as flesh, and I'll bedead with Dave. Please see that we are buried together, and that themorticians do not find my secret. Dave wanted it th at way, too. Poor, dear Phil. I know you loved Dave -as a brother, and how you felt aboutme. Please don't grieve too much for us, for we have had a happy life together, and both feel that we should cross this last bridge side by side. With love and thanks from Helen It had to come sooner or later, I suppose, and the first shock has worn offnow. I'll be leaving in a few minutes to carry out Helen's last instructions. Dave was a lucky man, and the best friend I ever had. And Helen-well, as Isaid, I'm an old man now, and can view things more sanely; I should havemarried and raised a family, I suppose. But . . . there was only one HelenO'Loy. The Day Is DoneHWOOGH SCRATCHED THE hair on his stomach and watched the sun climb up over thehill. He beat listlessly on his chest and yelled at it timidly, then grumbledand stopped. In his youth, he had roared and stumped around to help the godup, but now it wasn't worth the effort. Nothing was. He found a fine flake ofsweaty salt under his hair, licked it off his fingers, and twisted over tosleep again. But sleep wouldn't come. On the other side of the hill there was a hue andcry, and somebody was beating a drum in a throbbing chant. The oldNeanderthaler grunted and held his hands over his ears, but the Sun-Warmer'schant couldn't be silenced. More ideas of the Talkers. In his day, it had been a lovely world, full of hairy grumbling people; peoplea man could understand. There had been game on all sides, and the caves abouthad been filled with the smoke of cooking fires. He had played with the fewyoung that were born-though each year fewer children had come into the tribe- and had grown to young manhood with the pride of achievement. But that wasbefore the Talkers had made this valley one of their hunting grounds. Old traditions, half-told, half-understood, spoke of the land in the days ofold, when only his people roamed over the broad tundra. They had filled thecaves and gone out in packs too large for any animals to withstand. And theanimals swarmed into the land, driven south by the Fourth Glaciation. Then thegreat cold had come again, and tunes had been hard. Many of his people haddied. But many had lived, and with the coming of the warmer, drier climate, again, they had begun to expand before the Talkers arrived. After that-Hwooghstirred, uneasily-for no good reason he could see, the Talkers took more andmore of the land, and his people retreated and diminished before them. Hwoogh's father had made it understood that their little band in the valleywas all that was left, and that this was the only place on the great flatearth where Talkers seldom came. Hwoogh had been twenty when he first saw them, great long-legged men, swift offoot and eye, stalking along as if they owned the earth, with their incessantmouth noises. In the summer that year, they pitched their skin-and-wattletents at the back of the hill, away from the caves, and made magic to theirgods. There was magic on their weapons, and the beasts fell their prey. Hwoogh's people had settled back, watching fearfully, hating numbly, finallyresorting to begging and stealing. Once a young buck had killed the child of aTalker, and been flayed and sent out to die for it. Thereafter, there had beena truce between Cro-Magnon and Neanderthaler. Now the last of Hwoogh's people were gone, save only himself, leaving nochildren. Seven years it had been since Hwoogh's brother had curled up in thecave and sent his breath forth on the long journey to his ancestors. He hadalways been dispirited and weak of will, but he had been the only friend leftto Hwoogh. The old man tossed about and wished that Keyoda would return. Maybe she wouldbring food from the Talkers. There was no use hunting now, when the Talkershad already been up and killed all the easy game. Better that a man shouldsleep all the tune, for sleep was the only satisfying thing left in the topsy turvy world; even the drink the tall Cro-Magnons made from mashed roots left aheadache the next day. He twisted and turned in his bed of leaves at the edge of the cave, gruntingsurlily. A fly buzzed over his head provocatively, and he lunged at it. Surprise lighted his features as his fingers closed on the insect, and heswallowed it with a momentary flash of pleasure. It wasn't as good as thegrubs hi the forest, but it made a tasty appetizer. The sleep god had left, and no amount of lying still and snoring would lurehim back. Hwoogh gave up and squatted down on his haunches. He had beenmeaning to make a new head for his crude spear for weeks, and he rummagedaround in the cave for materials. But the idea grew further away the closer heapproached the work, and he let his eyes roam idly over the little creek belowhim and the fleecy clouds in the sky. It was a warm spring, and the sun madeidleness pleasant. The sun god was growing stronger again, chasing the cold fog and mist away. For years, he had worshiped the sun god as his, and now it seemed to growstrong again only for the Talkers. While the god was weak, Hwoogh's people hadbeen mighty; now that its long sickness was over, the Cro-Magnons spread outover the country like the fleas on his belly. Hwoogh could not understand it. Perhaps the god was mad at him, since gods areutterly unpredictable. He grunted, wishing again for his brother who hadunderstood such things better. Keyoda crept around the boulder in front of the cave, interrupting hisbrooding. She brought scraps of food from the tent village and the half-chewedleg of a horse, which Hwoogh seized on and ripped at with his strong teeth. Evidently the Talkers had made a big kill the day before, for they were lavishwith their gifts. He grunted at Keyoda, who sat under the cave entrance in thesun, rubbing her back. Keyoda was as hideous as most of the Talkers were to Hwoogh, with her longdangling legs and short arms, and the ungainly straightness of her carriage. Hwoogh remembered the young girls of his own day with a sigh; they had beenbeautiful, short and squat, with forward-jutting necks and nice low foreheads. How the flat- faced Cro-Magnon women could get mates had been a puzzle to Hwoogh, but theyseemed to succeed. Keyoda had failed, however, and in her he felt justified in his judgment. There were times when he' felt almost in sympathy with her, and in his own wayhe was fond of her. As a child, she had been injured, her back made uselessfor the work of a mate. Kicked around by the others of her tribe, she hadgradually drifted away from them, and when she stumbled on Hwoogh, hishospitality had been welcome to her. The Talkers were nomads who followed theherds north in the summer, south in the winter, coming and going with theseasons, but Keyoda stayed with Hwoogh in his cave and did the few desultorytasks that were necessary. Even such a half-man as the Neanderthaler waspreferable to the scornful pity of her own people, and Hwoogh was not unkind. ^ "Hwunkh?" asked Hwoogh. With his stomach partly filled, he felt more kindlytoward the world. "Oh, they come out and let me pick up their scraps- me, who was once a chiefsdaughter!-same as they always do." Her voice had been shrewish, but theweariness of failure and age had taken the edge from it. " 'Poor, poorKeyoda,' thinks they, 'let her have what she wants, just so it don't meannothin' we like.' Here." She handed him a roughly made spear, flaked on bothsides of the point, but with only a rudimentary barb, unevenly made. "One of'em give me this-it ain't the like of what they'd use, I guess, but it's goodas you could make. One of the kids is practicing." Hwoogh examined it; good, he admitted, very good, and the point was fixed nicely in the shaft. Even the boys, with their long limber thumbs that couldtwist any which way, made better weapons than he; yet once, he had been famousamong his small tribe for the nicety of his flint work. Making the sign of horses, he got slowly to his feet. The shape of his jaw andthe attachment of his tongue, together with the poorly developed left frontallobe of his brain, made speech rudimentary, and he supplemented hjs glottalsand labials with motions that Keyoda understood well enough. She shrugged and waved him out, gnawing on oneofthe bones. Hwoogh wandered about without much spirit, conscious that he was growing old. And vaguely, he knew that age should not have fallen upon him for many snows; it was not the number of seasons, but something else, something that he couldfeel but not understand. He struck out for the hunting fields, hoping that hemight find some game for himself that would require little effort to kill. Thescornful gifts of the Talkers had become bitter in his mouth. But the sun god climbed up to the top of the blue cave without Hwoogh'sstumbling on anything. He swung about to return, and ran into a party of Cro- Magnons returning with the carcass of a reindeer strapped to a pole on theirshoulders. They stopped to yell at him. "No use, Hairy One!" they boasted, their voices light and gay. "We caught allthe game this way. Turn back to your cave and sleep." Hwoogh dropped his shoulders and veered away, his spear dragging limply on theground. One of the party trotted over to him lightly. Sometimes Legoda, thetribal magic man and artist, seemed almost friendly, and this was one of thetimes. "It was my kill, Hairy One," he said tolerantly. "Last night I drew strongreindeer magic, and the beast fell with my first throw. Come to my tent andI'll save a leg for you. Keyoda taught me a new song that she got from herfather, and I would repay her." Legs, ribs, bones! Hwoogh was tired of the outer meat. His body demanded thefiner food of the entrails and liver. Already his skin was itching with arash, and he felt that he must have the succulent inner parts to make himwell; always before, that had cured him. He grunted, between appreciation andannoyance, and turned off. Legoda pulled him back. "Nay, stay, Hairy One. Sometimes you bring good fortune to me, as when I foundthe bright ocher for my drawing. There is enough in the camp for all. Why hunttoday?" As Hwoogh still hesitated, he grew more insistent, not from kindness, but more from a wish to have his own way. "The wolves are running near today, and one is not enough against them. We carve the reindeer at the camp as soonas it comes from the pole. I'll give you first choice of the meat!" Hwoogh grunted a surly acquiescence and waddled after the party. The dole ofthe Talkers had become gall to him, but liver was liver-if Legoda kept hisbargain.' They were chanting a rough marching song, trotting easily under theload of the reindeer, and he lumbered along behind, breathing hard at the pacethey set. As they neared the village of the nomads, its rough skin tents and burningfires threw out a pungent odor that irritated Hwoogh's nostrils. The smell ofthe long-limbed Cro-Magnons was bad enough without the dirty smell of a campand the stink of their dung-fed fires. He preferred the accustomed moldystench of his own musty cave. Youths came swarming out at them, yelling with disgust at being left behind onthis easy hunt. Catching sight of the Neanderthaler, they set up a howl ofglee and charged at him, throwing sticks and rocks and jumping at him withplay fury. Hwoogh shivered and crouched over, menacing them with his spear, and giving voice to throaty growls. Legoda laughed. "In truth, O Hairy Chokanga, your voice should drive them from you. But see, they fear it not. Kuch, you two-legged pests! Out and away! Kuch, I say!" They leaped back at his voice and dropped behind, still yelling. Hwoogh eyed themwarily, but so long. as it suited the pleasure of Legoda, he was safe fromtheir pranks. Legoda was in a good mood, laughing and joking, tossing his quips at the womenuntil his young wife came out and silenced it. She sprang at the reindeer withher flint knife, and the other women joined her. "Heya," called Legoda. "First choice goes to Chokanga, the Hairy One. By myword, it is his." "O fool!" There was scorn in her voice and in the look she gave Hwoogh. "Sincewhen do we feed the beasts of the caves and the fish of the river? Art mad, Legoda. Let him huntfor, himself." Legoda tweaked her back with the point of his spear, grinning. "Aye, I knewthou'dst cry at that. But then, we owe his kind some pay-this was his huntingground when we were but pups, straggling into this far land. What harm to giveto an old man?" He swung to Hwoogh and gestured. "See, Chokanga, my word isgood. Take what you want, but see that it is not more than your belly and thatof Keyoda can hold this night." Hwoogh darted in and came out with the liver and the fine sweet fat from theentrails. With a shrill cry of rage, Legoda's mate sprang for him, but themagic man pushed her back. "Nay, he did right! Only a fool would choose the haunch when the heart of themeat was at hand. By the gods of my father, and I expected to eat of thatmyself! O Hairy One, you steal the meat from my mouth, and I like you for it. Go, before Hey a gets free." Tomorrow, Hwoogh knew, Legoda might set the brats on him for this day's act, but tomorrow was in another cave of the sun. He drew his legs under him andscuttled off to the left and around the hill, while the shrill yells of Heyaand the lazy good humor of Legoda followed. A piece of liver dangled loose, and Hwoogh sucked on it as he went. Keyoda would be pleased, since she usuallyhad to do the begging for both of them. And a little of Hwoogh's self-respect returned. Hadn't he outsmarted Legodaand escaped with the choicest meat? And had Keyoda ever done as well when shewent to the village of the Talkers? Ayeee, they had a thing yet to learn fromthe cunning brain of old Hwoogh! Of course the Talkers were crazy; only fools would act as Legoda had done. Butthat was none of his business. He patted the liver and fat fondly and grinnedwith a slight return ,of good humor. Hwoogh was not one to look a gift horsein the mouth. The fire had shrunk to a red bed of coals when he reached the cave, and Keyodawas curled up on his bed, snoring loudly, her face flushed. Hwoogh smelled herbreath, and his suspicions were confirmed. Somehow, she had drunk of the devilbrew of the Talkers, and her sleep was dulled with its stupor. He prodded herwith his toe, and she sat up bleary-eyed. "Oh, so you're back. Ayeee, and with liver and fat! . But that never came fromyour spear throw; you been to the village and stole it. Oh, but you'll catchit!" She grabbed at the meat greedily and stirred up the fire, spitting theliver over it. Hwoogh explained as best he could, and she got the drift of it. "So? Eh, thatLegoda, what a prankster he is, and my own nephew, too." She tore the liveraway, half-raw, and they fell to eagerly, while she chuckled and cursed byturns. Hwoogh touched her nose and wrinkled his face up. "Well, so what if I did?" Liquor had sharpened her tongue. "That no-good sonof the chief come here, after me to be telling him stories. And to make my oldtongue free, he brings me the root brew. Ah, what stories I'm telling-and someof them true, too!" She gestured toward a crude pot. "I reckon he steals it, but what's that to us? Help yourself, Hairy One. It ain't ever' day we're getting the brew." Hwoogh remembered the headaches of former experiments, but he smelled itcuriously, and the lure of the magic water caught at him. It was the veryessence of youth, the fire that brought life to his legs and memories to hismind. He held it up to his mouth, gasping as the beery liquid ran down histhroat. Keyoda caught it before he could finish and drained the last quart. "Ah, it strengthens my back and puts the blood arun-ning hot through meagain." She swayed on her feet and sputtered out the fragments of an old skin- scraping song. "Now, there you go-can't you never learn not to drink it all toonce? That way, it don't last so long, and you're out before you get tofeeling good." Hwoogh staggered as the brew took hold of him, and his knees bent ever fartherunder him. The bed came upin his face, his head was full of bees buzzing merrily, and the cave spunaround him. He roared at the cave, while Keyoda laughed. "Heh! To hear you ayelling, a body might think you was the only Chokanga lefton earth. But you ain't-no, you ain't!" "Hwunkh?" That struck home. To the best of Hwoogh's knowledge, there were noothers of his kind left on earth. He grabbed at her and missed, but she felland rolled against him, her breath against his face. "So? Well, it's the truth. The kid up and told me. Legoda found three of 'em, just like you, he says, up the land to the east, three springs ago. You'llhave to ask him-I dunno nothing about it." She rolled over against him, grunting half-formed words, and he tried to think of this new information. Butthe brew was too strong for his head, and he was soon snoring beside her. Keyoda was gone to the village when he awoke, and the sun was a spear lengthhigh on the horizon. He rummaged around for a piece of the liver, but theflavor was not as good as it had been and his stomach protested lustily atgoing to work again. He leaned back until his head got control of itself, thenswung down to the creek to quench a thirst devil that had seized on him in thenight. But there was something he should do, something he half remembered from lastnight. Hadn't Keyoda said something about others of his people? Yes, three ofthem, and Legoda knew. Hwoogh hesitated, remembering that he had bested Legodathe day before; the young man might resent it today. But he was filled with anoverwhelming curiosity, and there was a strange yearning in his heart. Legodamust tell him. Reluctantly, he went back to the cave and fished around in a hole that was asecret even from Keyoda. He drew out his treasures, fingering them reverently, and selecting the best. There were bright shells and colored pebbles, aroughly drilled necklace that had belonged to his father, a sign of completedmanhood, bits of this and that with which he had intended to make himselfornaments. But the quest for knowledge wasstronger than the pride of possession; he dumped them out into his fists andstruck out for the village. Keyoda was talking with the women, whining the stock formula that she haddeveloped, and Hwoogh skirted around the camp, looking for the young artist. Finally he spotted the Talker out behind the camp, making odd motions with twosticks. He drew near cautiously, and Legoda heard him coming. "Come near, Chokanga, and see my new magic." The young man's voice was filledwith pride, and there was no threat to it. Hwoogh sighed with relief, butsidled up slowly. "Come nearer, don't fear me. Do you think I'm sorry of thegift I made? Nay, that was my own stupidity. See." He held out the sticks and Hwoogh fingered them cautiously. One was long andspringy, tied end to end with a leather thong, and the other was a littlespear with a tuft of feather on the blunt end. He grunted a question. "A magic spear, Hairy One, that flies from the hand with wings, and kills beyond the reach of other spears." Hwoogh snorted. The spear was too tiny to kill more than rodents, and the bigstick had not even a point. But he watched as the young man placed the sharpstick to the tied one, and drew back on it. There was a sharp twang, and thelittle spear sailed out and away, burying its pouit in the soft bark of a treemore than two spear throws away. Hwoogh was impressed. "Aye, Chokanga, a new magic that I learned in the south last year. There aremany there who use it, and with it they can throw the point farther and betterthan a full-sized spear. One man may kill as much as three!" Hwoogh grumbled; already they killed all the good game, and yet they must findnew magic to increase their power. He held out his hand curiously, and Legodagave him the long stick and another spear, showing him how it was held. Againthere was a twang, and the leather thong struck at his wrist, but the weaponsailed off erratically, missing the tree by yards. Hwoogh handed it backglumly-such magic was not for hiskind. His thumbs made the handling of it even more difficult. Now, while the magic man was pleased with his superiority, was a good time toshow the treasure. Hwoogh spread it out on the bare earth and gestured atLegoda, who looked down thoughtfully. "Yes," the Talker conceded. "Some of it is good, and some would make nicetrinkets for the women. What is it you want-more meat, or one of the newweapons? Your belly was filled yesterday; and with my beer, that was stolen, Ithink, though for that I blame you not. The boy has been punished already. Andthis weapon is not for you." Hwoogh snorted, wriggled and fought for expression, while the young manstared. Little by little, his wants were made known, partly by signs, partlyby the questions of the Cro-Magnon. Legoda laughed. "So, there is a call of the kind in you, Old Man?" He pushed the treasure backto Hwoogh, except one gleaming bauble. "I would not cheat you, Chokanga, butthis I take for the love I bear you, as a sign of our friendship." His grinwas mocking as he stuck the valuable in a flap of his clout. Hwoogh squatted down on his heels, and Legoda sat on a rock as he began. "There is but little to tell you, Hairy One. Three years ago I did run onto afamily of your kind-a male and his mate, with one child. They ran from us, butwe were near their cave, and they had to return. We harmed them not, andsometimes gave them food, letting them accompany us on the chase. But theywere thin and scrawny, too lazy to hunt. When we returned next year, they weredead, and so far as I know, you are the last of your kind." He scratched his head thoughtfully. "Your people die too easily, Chokanga; nosooner do we find them and try to help them than they cease hunting and becomebeggars. And then they lose interest in life, sicken and die. I think yourgods must be killed off by our stronger ones." Hwoogh grunted a half-assent, and Legoda gathered up his bow and arrows, turning back toward camp. Butthere was a strange look on the Neanderthaler's face that did not escape theyoung man's eyes. Recognizing the misery in Hwoogh's expression, he laid ahand on the old man's shoulder and spoke more kindly. "That is why I would see to your well-being, Hairy One. When you are gone, there will be no more, and my children will laugh at me and say I lie when Ispin the tale of your race at the feast fire. Each time that I kill, you shallnot lack for food." He swung down the single street toward the tent of his family, and Hwooghturned slowly back toward his cave. The assurance of food should have cheeredhim, but it only added to his gloom. Dully he realized that Legoda treated himas a small child, or as one whom the sun god had touched with madness. Hwoogh heard the cries and laughter of children as he rounded the hill, andfor a minute he hesitated before going on. But the sense of property was well developed in him, and he leaped forward grimly. They had no business near hiscave. They were of all ages and sizes, shouting and chasing each other about in acrazy disorder. Having been forbidden to come on Hwoogh's side of the hill, and having broken the rule in a bunch, they were making the most of theirrevolt. Hwoogh's fire was scattered down the side of the hill into the creek, and they were busily sorting through the small store of his skins and weapons. Hwoogh let out a savage yell and ran forward, his spear held out in jabbingposition. Hearing him, they turned and jumped back from the cave entrance, clustering up into a tight group. "Go on away, Ugly Face," one yelled. "Goscare the wolves! Ugly Face, Ugly Face, waaaah!" He dashed in among them, brandishing his spear, but they darted back on theirnimble legs, slipping easily from in front of him. One of the older boysthrust out a leg and caught him, tripping him down on the rocky ground. Another dashed in madly and caught his spear away, hitting him roughly withit. From the tune of the first primate, the innate cruelty of thoughtlessness had changed little hichildren. , Hwoogh let out a whooping bellow, scrambled up clumsily and was in among them. But they slipped nimbly out of his clutching hands. The little girls weredancing around gleefully, chanting: "Ugly Face ain't got no mother, Ugly Face, ain't got no wife, waaaah on Ugly Face!" Frantically he caught one of theboys, swung him about savagely, and tossed him on the ground, where the youthlay white and silent. Hwoogh felt a momentary glow of elation at his strength. Then somebody threw a rock. The old Neanderthaler was tied down crudely when he swam back toconsciousness, and three of the boys sat on his chest, beating the ground withthen" heels hi time to a victory chant. There was a dull ache in his head, andbruises were swelling on his arms and chest where they had handled himroughly. He growled savagely, heaving up, and tumbled them off, but the cordswere too strong for him. As surely as if grown men had done it, he wascaptured. For years they had been his enemies, ever since they had found that Hwooghbaiting was one of the pleasant occupations that might relieve the tedium ofcamp life. Now that the old feud was about finished, they went at the businessof subduing him with method and ingenuity. While the girls rubbed his face with soft mud from the creek, the boysransacked the cave and tore at his clothes. The rough bag in which he had puthis valuables came away in their hands, and they paused to distribute this newwealth. Hwoogh howled madly. But a measure of sanity was returning to them, now that the first fury of thefight was over, and Kechaka, the chief's eldest son, stared at Hwooghdoubtfully. "If the elders hear of this," he muttered unhappily, "there willbe trouble. They'd not like our bothering Ugly Face." Another grinned. "Why tell them? He isn't a man, anyway, but an animal; seethe hair on his body! Tossold Ugly Face in the river, clean up his cave, and hide these treasures. Who'sto know?" There were half-hearted protests, but the thought of the beating waiting forthem added weight to the idea. Kechaka nodded finally, and set them tostraightening up the mess they had made. With broken branches, they eliminatedthe marks of their feet, leaving only the trail to the creek. Hwoogh tossed and pitched in their arms as four of them picked him up; thebindings loosened somewhat, but not enough to free him. With somesatisfaction, he noted that the boy he had caught was still retching andmoaning but that was no help to his present position. They waded relentlesslyinto the water, laid him on it belly down, and gave him a strong push that sent him gliding out through the rushing stream. Foaming and gasping, hefought the current, straggling against his bonds. His lungs ached for air, andthe current buffeted him about; blackness was creeping up on his mind. With a last desperate effort he tore loose the bonds and pushed up madly forthe surface, gulping in air greedily. Water was unpleasant to him, but hecould swim, and struck out for the bank. The children were disappearing downthe trail, and were out of sight as he climbed from the water, bemoaning hislost fire that would have warmed him. He lumbered back to his cave and sank soddenly on the bed. He, who had been a mighty warrior, bested by a snarling pack of Cro-Magnonbrats! He clenched his fcts savagely and growled, but there was nothing hecould do. Nothing! The futility of his own effort struck down on him like aburning knife. Hwoogh was an old man, and the tears that ran from his eyeswere the bit-tar, aching tears that only age can shed. Keyoda returned late, cursing when she found the fire gone, but her voicesoftened as she spied him huddled in his bed, staring dully at the wall of thecave. Her old eyes spotted the few footprints the boys had missed, and sheswore with a vigor that was almost youthful be-Inre she turned back to Hwoogh. "Come, Hairy One, get out of that cold, wet fur!" Her hands were gentle orfthe straps, but Hwoogh shook her aside. "You'll be sick, lying there on themfew leaves, all wet like that. Get off that fur, and I'll go back to thevillage for fire. Them kids! Wait'11 I tell Legoda!" Seeing there was nothing he would let her do for him, she turned away down thetrail. Hwoogh sat up to change his furs, then lay back. What was the use? Hegrumbled a little, when Keyoda returned with the fire, but refused thedelicacies she had wheedled at the village, and tumbled over into a fitfulsleep. The sun was long up when he awoke to find Legoda and Keyoda fussing over him. There was an unhappy feeling in his head, and he coughed. Legoda patted hisback. "Rest, Hairy One. You have the sickness devil that burns the throat andruns at the nose, but that a man can throw off. Ayeee, how the boys werewhipped! I, personally, attended to that, and this morning not one is lesssore than you are. Before they bother you again, the moon will eat up thesun." Keyoda pushed a stew of boiled liver and kidneys at him, but he shoved itaway. Though the ache in his head had gone down, a dull weight seemed to reston his stomach, and he could not eat. It felt as though all the boys he hadfought were sitting on his chest and choking him. Legoda drew out a small painted drum and made heavy magic for his recovery, dancing before the old man and shaking the magic gourd that drove out allsickness. But this was a stronger devil. Finally the young man stopped andleft for the village, while Keyoda perched on a stone to watch over the sickman. Hwoogh's mind was heavy and numb, and his heart was leaden in his breast. She fanned the flies away, covering his eyes with a bit of skin, singing himsome song that the mothers lulled their children with. He slept again, stirring about in a nightmare of Talker mockery, with a feverflushing his face. But when Legoda came back at night, the magic man swore heshould be well in three days. "Let him sleep and feedhim. The devil will leave him soon. See, there is scarce a mark where thestone hit him." Keyoda fed him, as best she could, forcing the food that she begged at thevillage down his throat. She lugged water from the creek as often as he criedfor it, and bathed his head and chest when he slept. But the three days cameand went, and still he was not well. The fever was little higher, and the coldlittle worse than he had gone through many times before. But he did not throwit off as he should have done. Legoda came again, bringing his magic and food, but they were of little help. As the day drew to a close, he shook his head and spoke low words to Keyoda. Hwoogh came out of a half-stupor and listened dully. "He tires of life, Keyoda, my father's sister." The young man shrugged. "See, he lies there not fighting. When a man will not try to live, he cannot." "Ayyeah!" Her voice shrilled dolefully. "What man will not live if he can? Thou are foolish, Legoda." "Nay. His people tire easily of life, O Keyoda. Why, I know not. But it takeslittle to make them die." Seeing that Hwoogh had heard, he drew closer to theNeander-thaler. "O Chokanga, put away your troubles, and take another bite outof life. It can still be good, if you choose. I have taken your gift as a signof friendship, and I would keep my word. Come to my fire, and hunt no more; Iwill tend you as I would my father." Hwoogh grunted. Follow the camps, eat from Lego-da's hunting, be paraded as afreak and a half-man! Legoda was kind, sudden and warm in his sympathy, butthe others were scornful. And if Hwoogh should die, who was to mourn him? Keyoda would forget him, and not one Chokanga would be there to show them theritual for burial. Hwoogh's old friends had come back to him in his dreams, visiting him andshowing the hunting grounds of his youth. He had heard the grunts andgrumblings of the girls of his race, and they were awaiting him. That worldwas still empty of the Talkers, where a man could do great things and make hisown kills, without hearing the laughter of the Cro-Magnons. Hwoogh sighedsoftly. He was tired, too tired to care what happened. The sun sank low, and the clouds were painted a harsh red. Keyoda was wailingsomewhere, far off, and Legoda beat on his drum and muttered his magic. Butlife was empty, barren of pride. The sun dropped from sight, and Hwoogh sighed again, sending his last breathout to join the ghosts of his people. The CoppersmithIN THE SLANTING rays of the morning sun, the figure trudging along the pathseemed out of place so near the foothills of the Adirondacks. His scant threefeet of stocky height was covered by a tattered jerkin of brown leather thatfell to his knees, and above was a russet cap with turned-back brim and high, pointed crown. Below, the dusty sandals were tipped up at the toes and tiedback to the ankles, and on each a little copper bell tinkled lightly as hewalked. Ellowan Coppersmith moved slowly under the weight of the bag he bore on hisshoulders, combing out his beard with a stubby brown hand and humming in timewith the jingling bells. It was early still and a whole day lay before him inwhich to work. After the long sleep, back in the hills where his people laydormant, work would be good again. The path came to an end where it joined a well-kept highway, and the elf easedthe bag from his shoulder while he studied the signpost. There was littlemeaning for him in the cryptic marker that bore the cabalistic 30, but thearrow below indicated that Wells lay half a mile beyond. That must be thevillage he had spied from the path; a very nice little village, Ellowanjudged, and not unprosperous. Work should be found in plenty there. But first, the berries he had picked in the fieldswould refresh him after the long walk. His kindly brown eyes lighted withpleasure as he pulled them from his bag and sat back against the signpost. Surely even these few so late in the season were an omen of good fortune tocome. The elf munched them slowly, savoring their wild sweetness gratefully. When they were finished, he reached into his bag again and brought forth ahandful of thin sticks, which he tossed on the ground and studied carefully. "Six score years in sleep," he muttered. "Eh, well, though the runes forecastthe future but poorly, they seldom lie of the past. Six score years it mustbe." He tossed the runes back into the bag and turned toward a growing noise thathad been creeping up on him from behind. The source of the sound seemed to bea long, low vehicle that came sweeping up the road and flashed by him sorapidly that there was only time to catch a glimpse of the men inside. "These men!" Ellowan picked up his bag and headed toward the village, shakinghis head doubtfully. "Now they have engines inside their carriages, andstrange engines at that, from the odor. Even the air of the highway must bepolluted with the foul smell of machines. Next it's flying they'll be. Methinks 'twere best to go through the fields to the village." He pulled out his clay pipe and sucked on it, but the flavor had dried outwhile he had lain sleeping, and the xtobacco in his pouch had molded away. Well, there'd be tobacco in the village, and coppers to buy it with. He washumming again as he neared the town and studied its group of houses, amongwhich the people were just beginning to stir. It would be best to go fromhouse to house rather than disturb them by crying his services from thestreet. With an expectant smile on his weathered old face, Ellowan rappedlightly and waited for a response. "Whatta you want?" The woman brushed back her stringy hair with one hand whileholding the door firmly with the other, and her eyes were hard as she caughtsight of the elf's bag. "We don't want no magazines. You're just wastin' yourtime!" From the kitchen came the nauseating odor of scorching eggs, and the door wasslammed shut before Ellowan could state his wants. Eh, well, a town without ashrew was a town without a house. A bad start and a good ending, perchance. But no one answered his second knock, and he drew no further response thanfaces pressed to the window at the third. A young woman came to the next door, eyeing him' curiously, but answering hissmile. "Good morning," she said doubtfully, and the elf's hopes rose. "A good morning to you, mistress. And have you pots to mend, pans or odds thatyou wish repaired?" It was good to speak the words again. "I'm a wonderfultinker, none better, mistress. Like new they'll be, and the better for theknack that I have and that which I bring in my bag." "I'm sorry, but I haven't anything; I've just been married a few weeks." Shesmiled again, hesitantly. "If you're hungry, though . . . well, we don'tusually feed men who come to the door, but I guess it'd be all right thistime." "No, mistress, but thank'ee. It's only honest labor I want." Ellowan heavedthe bag up again and moved down the steps. The girl turned to go in, glancingback at him with a feeling of guilt that there was no work for the strangelittle fellow. On impulse, she called after him. "Wait!" At her cry, he faced her again. "I just thought; Mother might havesomething for you. She lives down the street-the fifth house on the right. Hername's Mrs. Franklin." Ellowan's face creased in a twinkling smile. "My thanks again, mistress, andgood fortune attend you." Eh, so, his luck had changed again. Once his skill was known, there'd be nolack of work for him. "A few coppers here and a farthing there, from many akettle to mend; with solder and flux and skill to combine, there's many acopper to spend." He was still humming as he rounded the house and found Mrs. Franklin hangingout dish towels on the back porch to dry. She was a somewhat stout woman, with the expressionof''fatigue that grows habitual in some cases, but her smile was as kindly asher daughter's when she spied the elf. "Are you the little man my daughter said mended things?" she asked. "Susanphoned me that you'd be here-she took quite a fancy to you. Well, come up hereon the porch and I'll bring out what I want fixed. I hope your rates aren't too high?" "It's very reasonable you'll find them, mistress." He sank down on a three- legged stool he pulled from his bag and brought out a little table, while shewent inside for the articles that needed repairs. There were knick-knacks, askillet, various pans, a copper wash boiler, and odds and ends of all sorts; enough to keep him busy till midday. She set them down beside him. "Well, that's the lot of them. I've been meaningto throw most of them away, since nobody around here can fix them, but itseems a shame to see things wasted for some little hole. You just call me whenyou're through." Ellowan nodded briskly and dug down into his seemingly bottomless bag. Outcame his wonderful fluxes that could clean the thickest tarnish away in atwinkling, the polish that even the hardest grease and oldest soot couldn'tdefy, the bars of solder that became one with the metal, so that the sharpesteye would fail to note the difference; and out came the clever little toolsthat worked and smoothed the repair into unity with the original. Last of all, he drew forth a tiny anvil and a little charcoal brazier whose coals began toburn as he set it down. There was no fan or bellows, yet the coals in thecenter glowed fiercely at white heat. The little elf reached out for the copper boiler, so badly dented that theseam had sprung open all the way down. A few light taps on his anvilstraightened it back into smoothness. He spread on his polish, blew on itvigorously, and watched the dirt and dullness disappear, then applied hisflux, and drew some of the solder onto it with a hot iron, chuckling as theseams became waterproof again. Surely now, even the long sleep had costhim none of his skill. As he laid it down, there was no sign to show that theboiler had not come freshly from some shop, or new out of the maker's hands. The skillet was bright and shiny, except for a brown circle on the bottom, andgleamed with a silvery luster. Some magic craftsman must have made it, the elfthought, and it should receive special pains to make sure that the spellholding it so bright was/not broken. He rubbed a few drops of polish over itcarefully, inspected the loose handle, and applied his purple flux, swabbingoff the small excess. Tenderly he ran the hot iron over the solder and beganworking the metal against the handle. But something was very wrong. Instead of drawing firmly to the skillet, thesolder ran down the side in little drops. Such as remained was loose andrefused to stick. With a puzzled frown, Ellowan smelled his materials andtried again; there was nothing wrong with the solder or flux, but they stillrefused to work. He muttered softly and reached out for a pan with a phi holein it Mrs. Franklin found him sitting there later, his tools neatly before him, thepots and pans stacked at his side, and the brazier glowing brightly. "Allfinished?" she asked cheerfully. "I brought you some coffee and a cinnamon bunI just baked; I thought you might like them." She set them down before the elfand glanced at the pile of utensils again. Only the boiler was fixed. "What-" she began sharply, but softened her question somewhat as she saw thebewildered frustration on bis face. "I thought you said you could fix them?" Ellowan nodded glumly. "That I did, mistress, and that I tried to do. But mysolder and flux refused all but the honest copper, yonder, and there's never athing I can make of them. Either these must be wondrous metals indeed, or myart has been bewitched." "There's nothing very wonderful about aluminum and enamelware-nor stainless, steel, either, except the prices they charge." She picked up the wash boilerand inspected his work. "Well, you did do this nicely, and you're not the onlyone who can't solder aluminum, Iguess, so cheer up. And eat your roll before it's cold!" "Thank'ee, mistress." The savory aroma of the bun had been tantalizing his stomach, but he had been waiting to make certain that he was welcome to it. "It's sorry I am to have troubled you, but it's a long time ago that Itinkered for my living, and this is new to me." Mrs. Franklin nodded sympathetically; the poor little man must have beenliving with a son, or maybe working in a side show-he was short enough, andhis costume was certainly theatrical. Well, hard times were hard times. "Youdidn't trouble me much, I guess. Besides, I needed the boiler tomorrow forwash day, so that's a big help, anyway. What do I owe you for it?" "Tu'pence ha'penny," Ellowan said, taking out for the bun. Her look wasuncertain, and he changed it quickly. "Five pence American, that is, mistress." "Five cents! But it's worth ten .times that!" "It's but an honest price for the labor, mistress." Ellowan was putting thetools and materials back in his bag. "That's all I can take for the small bitI could do." "Well-" She shrugged. "All right, if that's all you'll take, here it is." Thecoin she handed him seemed strange, but that was to be expected. He pocketedit with a quick smile and another "thank'ee," and went in search of a store hehad noticed before. The shop was confusing in the wide variety of articles it carried, but Ellowanspied tobacco and cigars on display and walked in. Now that he had eaten thebun, the tobacco was a more pressing need than food. "Two pennies of tobacco, if it please you," he told the clerk, holding out thelittle leather pouch he carried. "You crazy?" The clerk was a boy, much more interested in his oiled hair thanin the customers who might come in. "Cheapest thing I can give you is Duke'sMixture, and it'll cost you five cents, cash." Regretfully Ellowan watched the nickel vanish over the counter; tobacco wasindeed a luxury at the price. He picked up the small cloth bag, and thepasteboard folder the boy thrust at him. "What might this be?" he asked, holding up the folder. "Matches." The boy grinned in fine superiority. "Where you been all your life? Okay, you do this . . . see? Course, if youdon't want 'em-" "Thank'ee." The elf pocketed the book of matches quickly and hurried towardthe street, vastly pleased with his purchase. Such a great marvel as thematches alone surely was worth the price. He filled his clay pipe and struckone of them curiously, chuckling in delight as it flamed up. When he droppedthe flame regretfully,-he noticed that the tobacco, too, was imbued withmagic, else surely it could never have been cured to such a mild andsatisfying flavor. It scarcely bit his tongue. But there was no time to be loitering around admiring his new treasures. Without work there could be no food, and supper was still to be taken care of. Those aluminum and enamelware pans were still in his mind, reminding him thatcoppers might be hard to get. But then, Mrs. Franklin had mentioned stainlesssteel, and only a mighty wizard could prevent iron from rusting; perhaps herhusband was a worker in enchantments, and the rest of the village might beserved in honest copper and hammered pewter. He shook his shoulders in forcedoptimism and marched down the street toward the other houses, noting theprices marked in a store window as he passed. Eh, the woman was right; he'dhave to charge more for his services to eat at those rates. The road was filled with the strange carriages driven by engines, and Ellowanstayed cautiously off the paving. But the stench from their exhausts and thedust they stirred up were still thick in his nostrils. The elf switched thebag from his left shoulder to his right and plodded on grimly, but there wasno longer a tune on his lips, and the little bells refused to tinkle as hewalked. The sun had set, and it was already growing darker, bringing the long slow dayto a close. His last call would be at the house ahead, already showing lightsburning, and it was still some distance off. Ellowan pulled hisbelt tighter and marched toward it, muttering in slow time to his steps. "Al-u-mi-num and en-am-el-ware and stain-less STEEL!" A row of green pans, redpots and ivory bowls ran before his eyes, and everywhere there was a glint ofsilvery skillets and dull white kettles. Even the handles used were no longerhonest wood, but smelled faintly resinous. Not one proper kettle in the whole village had he found. The housewives cameout and looked at him, answered his smile, and brought forth their work forhim in an oddly hesitant manner, as if they were unused to giving out suchjobs at the door. It spoke more of pity than of any desire to have their waresmended. "No, mistress, only copper. These new metals refuse my solder, and them Icannot mend." Over and again he'd repeated the words until they were as woodenas his knocks had grown; and always, there was no copper. It was almost akindness when they refused to answer his knock. He had been glad to quit the village and turn out on the road to the country, even though the houses were farther apart. Surely among the farming people, the older methods would still be in use. But the results were no different. They greeted him kindly and brought out their wares to him with less hesitancythan in the village-but the utensils were enamelware and aluminum andstainless steel! Ellowan groped for his pipe and sank down on the ground to rest, noting thateight miles still lay between him and Northville. He measured out the tobaccocarefully, and hesitated before using one of the new matches. Then, as he litit, he watched the flame dully and tossed it listlessly aside. Even thetobacco tasted flat now, and the emptiness of his stomach refused to be fooledby the smoke, though it helped to take his mind away from his troubles. Eh, well, there was always that one last house to be seen, where fortune mightsmile on him long enough to furnish a supper. He shouldered the bag with agrunt and moved on. A large German shepherd came bounding out at theelf as he turned in the gate to the farmhouse. The dog's bark was gruff andthreatening, but Ellowan clucked softly and the animal quieted, walking besidehim toward the house, its tail wagging slowly. The farmer watched theperformance and grinned. "Prinz seems to like you," he called out. "Tain't everyone he takes to likethat. What can I do for you, lad?" Then, as Ellowan drew nearer, he lookedmore sharply. "Sorry-my mistake. For a minute there, I thought you was a boy." "I'm a tinker, sir. A coppersmith, that is." The elf stroked the dog's headand looked up at the farmer wistfully. "Have you copper pots or pans, or oddsof any kind, to be mended? I do very good work on copper, sir, and I'll beglad to work for only my supper." The farmer opened the door and motioned him in. "Come on inside, and we'llsee. I don't reckon we have, but the wife knows better." He raised his voice. "Hey, Louisa, where are you? In the kitchen?" "In here, Henry." The voice came from the kitchen, and Ellowan followed theman back, the dog nuzzling his hand companionably. The woman was washing thelast few dishes and putting the supper away as they entered, and the sight offood awoke the hunger that the elf had temporarily suppressed. "This fellow says he's good at fixin' copper dishes, Louisa," Henry told hiswife. "You got anything like that for him?" He bent over her ear and spoke inan undertone, but Ellowan caught the words. "If you got anything copper, helooks like he needs it, Lou. Nice little midget, seems to be, and Prinz tookquite a shine to him." Louisa shook her head slowly. "I had a couple of old copper kettles, only I threw them away when we got the aluminum cooking set. But if you're hungry, there's plenty of food still left. Won't you sit down while I fix it for you?" Ellowan looked eagerly at the remains of the supper, and his mouth wateredhotly, but he managed a smile, and his voice was determined. "Thank'ee kindly, mistress, but I can't. It's one of the rules I must live by notto beg or take what I cannot earn. But I'll be thanking you both for thethought, and wishing you a very good night." They followed him to the door, and the dog trotted behind him until itsmaster's whistle called it back. Then the elf was alone on the road again, hunting a place to sleep. There was a haystack back off the road that wouldmake a good bed, and he headed for that. Well, hay was hardly nourishing, butchewing on it was better than nothing: Ellowan was up with the sun again, brushing the dirt off his jerkin. As anexperiment, he shook the runes out on the ground and studied them for a fewminutes. "Eh, well," he muttered, tossing them back in the bag, "they speakwell, but it's little faith I'd have in them for what is to come. It's tooeasy to shake them the way I'd want them to be. But perchance there'll be aberry or so in the woods yonder." There were no berries, and the acorns were still green. Ellowan struck thehighway again, drawing faint pleasure from the fact that few cars were on theroad at that hour. He wondered again why their fumes, though unpleasant, bothered him as little as they did. His brothers, up in the grotto hidden inthe Adirondacks, found even the smoke from the factories a deadening poison. The smell of a good wood fire, or the fumes from alcohol in the glass-blower'slamp were pleasant to them. But with the coming of coal, a slow lethargy hadcrept over them, driving them back one by one into the hills to sleep. It hadbeen bad enough when coal was burned in the hearths, but that Scotchman, Watts, had found that power could be drawn from steam, and the factories beganspewing forth the murky fumes of acrid coal smoke. And the Little Folk hadfled hopelessly from the poison, until Ellowan Coppersmith alone was left. Intime, even he had joined his brothers up in the hills. Now he had awakened again, without rhyme or reason, when the stench of theliquid called gasoline wasadded to that of coal. All along the highway were pumps that supplied it tothe endless cars, and the taint of it in the air was omnipresent. "Eh, well," he thought. "My brothers were ever filled with foolish pranksinstead of honest work, while I found my pleasure in labor. Methinks thepranks weakened them against the poison, and the work gives strength; it wasonly after I hexed the factory owner that the sleep crept into my head, andsix score years must surely pay the price of one such trick. Yet, when I firstawakened, it's thinking I was that there was some good purpose that drew, meforth." The sight of an orchard near the road caught his attention, and the elfsearched carefully along the strip of grass outside the fence in the hope thatan apple might have been blown outside. But only inside was there fruit, andto cross the fence would be stealing. He left the orchard reluctantly andstarted to turn in at the road leading to the farmhouse. Then he paused. After all, the farms were equipped exactly as the city now, and such faintluck as he'd had yesterday had been in the village. There was little sense inwasting his effort among the scattered houses of the country, in the unlikelychance that he might find copper. In the city, at least, there was little timewasted, and it was only by covering as many places as he could that he mighthope to find work. Ellowan shrugged, and turned back on the highway; he'd savehis time and energy until he reached Northville. It was nearly an hour later when he came on the boy, sitting beside the roadand fussing over some machine. Ellowan stopped as he saw the scattered partsand the worried frown on the lad's face. Little troubles seemed great to twelve-year-olds. "Eh, now, lad," he asked, "is it trouble you've having there? And what mightbe that contrivance of bars and wheels?" "It's a bicycle; ever'body knows that." From the sound of the boy's voice, tragedy had reared a large and ugly head. "And I've only had it since lastChristmas. Now it's broke and I can't fix it." He held up a piece that had come from the hub of the rear wheel. "See? That'sthe part that swells up when I brake it. It's all broken, and a new coasterbrake costs five dollars." Ellowan took the pieces and smelled them; his eyes had not been deceived. Itwas brass. "So?" he asked. "Now that's a shame, indeed. And a very prettymachine it was. But perchance I can fix it." The boy looked up hopefully as he watched the elf draw out the brazier andtools. Then his face fell. "Naw, mister. I ain't got the money. All I got's aquarter, and I can't get it, 'cause it's in my bank, and mom won't let me openit." The elf's reviving hopes of breakfast faded away, but he smiled casually. "Eh, so? Well, lad, there are other things than money. Let's see what we'll bemaking of this." His eyes picked out the relation of the various parts, and his admiration forthe creator of the machine rose. That hub was meant to drive the machine, toroll free, or to brake as the user desired. The broken piece was a splitcylinder of brass that was arranged to expand against the inside of the hubwhen braking. How it could have been damaged was a mystery, but the ability ofboys to destroy was no novelty to Ellowan. Under his hands, the rough edges were smoothed down in a twinkling, and he ranhis strongest solder into the break, filling and drawing it together, thenscraping and abrading the metal smooth again. The boy's eyes widened. "Say, mister, you're good! Them fellers in the city can't do it like that, andthey've got all kinds of tools, too." He took the repaired piece and beganthreading the parts back on the spindle. "Gosh, you're little. D'you come outof a circus?" Ellowan shook his head, smiling faintly. The questions of children had alwaysbeen candid, and honest replies could be given them. "That I did not, lad, andI'm not a midget, if that's what you'd be thinking. Now didn't yourgrandmother tell you the old tales of the elves?" "An elf!" The boy stopped twisting the nuts back on. "Go on! There ain't suchthings-I don't guess." His voice grew doubtful, though, as he studied thelittle brown figure. "Say, you do look like the pi'tures I seen, at that, andit sure looked like magic the way you fixed my brake. Can you really domagic?" "It's never much use I had for magic, lad. I had no time for learning it, whenbusiness was better. The h6n-est tricks of my trade were enough for me, with acertain skill that was ever mine. And I wouldn't be mentioning this to yourparents, if I were you." "Don't worry, I won't; they'd say I was nuts." The boy climbed on the saddle, and tested the brake with obvious satisfaction. "You goin' to town? Hop on andput your bag in the basket here. I'm goin' down within a mile of there-if youcan ride on the rack." "It would be a heavy load for you, lad, I'm thinking." Ellowan was none toosure of the security of such a vehicle, but the ride would be most welcome. "Naw. Hop on. I've carried my brother, and he's heavier'n you. Anyway, that'sa Mussimer two-speed brake. Dad got it special for Christmas." He reached overfor Ellowan's bag, and was surprised by its lightness. Those who help an elfusually found things easier than they expected. "Anyway, I owe you sumpin' forfixin'it." Ellowan climbed on the luggage rack at the rear and clutched the boy tightly at first. The rack was hard, but the paving smoothed out the ride, and it wasfar easier than walking. He relaxed and watched the road go by in a quarter ofthe time he could have traveled it on foot. If fortune smiled on him, breakfast might be earned sooner than he had hoped. "Well, here's where I stop," the boy finally told him. "The town's down thereabout a mile. Thanks for fixin' my bike." Ellowan dismounted cautiously, and lifted out his bag. "Thank'ee for helpingme so far, lad. And I'm thinking the brake will be giving you little troublehereafter." He watched the boy ride off on a side road, andstarted toward the town, the serious business of breakfast uppermost in hisminds Breakfast was still in his mind when midday had passed, but there was no signthat it was nearer his stomach. He came out of an alley and stopped for a fewdraws on his pipe and a chance to rest his shoulders. He'd have to stopsmoking soon; on an empty stomach, too much tobacco is nauseating. Over thesmell of the smoke, another odor struck Ms nose, and he turned around slowly. It was the clean odor of hot metal in a charcoal fire, and came from asprawling old building a few yards away. The sign above was faded, but he madeout the words: MICHAEL DONAHUE-HORSESHOEING AND AUTO REPAIRS. The sight of ablacksmith shop aroused memories of pleasanter days, and Ellowan drew nearer. The man inside was in his fifties, but his body spoke of strength and cleanliving, and the face under the mop of red hair was open and friendly. At themoment, he was sitting on a stool, finishing a sandwich. The odor of the foodreached out and stirred the elf's stomach again, and he scuffed his sandalsagainst the ground uneasily. The man looked up. "Saints presarve us!" Donahue's generous mouth opened to its widest. "Sure, and it's one o' the Little Folk, the loike as my feyther tolt me. Now fwhat- Ochs now, but it's hungry ye'd be from the look that ye have, and me eatin'before ye! Here now, me hearty, it's yer-self as shud have this bread." "Thank'ee." Ellowan shook his head with an effort, but it came harder thistune. "I'm an honest worker, sir, and it's one of the rules that I can't betaking what I cannot earn. But there's never a piece of copper to be found inall the city for me to mend." He laid his hands on a blackened bench to easethe ache in his legs. "Now that's a shame." The brogue dropped from Donahue's speech, now that thesurprise of seeing the elf was leaving him. "It's a good worker you are, too, if what my father told me was true. He came over from the old country when Iwas a bit of a baby, and hisfather told him before that. Wonderful workers, he said you were." "I am that." It was a simple statement as Ellowan made it; boasting requires acertain energy, even had he felt like it. "Anything of brass or copper I canfix, and it'll be like new when I finish." "Can you that?" Donahue looked at him with interest. "Eh, maybe you can. I'vea notion to try you out. You wait here." He disappeared through the door thatdivided his smithy from the auto servicing department and came back with alarge piece of blackened metal hi his hand. The elf smelled it questioninglyand found it was brass. Donahue tapped it lightly. "That's a radiator, m'boy. Water runs through thesetubes here and these little fins cool it off. Old Pete Yaegger brought it inand wanted it fixed, but it's too far ruined for my hands. And he can't afforda new one. You fix that now, and I'll be giving you a nice bit of money forthe work." "Fix it I can." Ellowan's hands were trembling as he inspected the corrodedmetal core, and began drawing out his tools. "I'll be finished within thehour." Donahue looked doubtfully at the elf, but nodded slowly. "Now maybe you will. But first, you'll eat, and we'll not be arguing about that. A hungry man never did good work, and I'm of the opinion the same applies to yourself. There'sstill a sandwich and a bit of pie left, if you don't mind washing it down withwater." The elf needed no water to wash down the food. When Donahue looked at him next, the crumbs had been licked from the paper, and Ellowan's deft hands wereworking his clever little tools through the fins of the radiator, and his facewas crinkling up into its usual merry smile. The metal seemed to run and flowthrough his hands with a will of its own, and he was whistling lightly as heworked. Ellowan waited intently as Donahue inspected the finished work. Where theblackened metal had been bent and twisted, and filled with holes, it was nowshining and new. The smith could find no sign to indicatethat it was not all one single piece, now, for the seams were joinedinvisibly. "Now that's craftsmanship," Donahue admitted. "I'm thinking we'll do a deal ofbusiness from now on, the two of us, and there's money in it, too. Ellowan, m'boy, with work like that we can buy up old radiators, remake them, and at anice little profit for ourselves we can sell them again. You'll be searchingno further for labor." The elf's eyes twinkled at the prospect of long lines of radiators needing tobe fixed, and a steady supply of work without the need of searching for it. For the first tune, he realized that industrialization might have itsadvantages for the worker. Donahue dug into a box and came out with a little metal figure of a greyhound, molded on a threaded cap. "Now, while I get something else for you, you mightbe fixing this," he said. " Tis a godsend that you've come to me. . . . Eh, now that I think of it, what brings you here, when I thought it'd be in theold country you worked?" "That was my home," the elf agreed, twisting the radiator cap in his hands andstraightening out the broken threads. "But the people became too poor hi thecountry, and the cities were filled with coal smoke. And then there was wordof a new land across the sea, so we left, such of us as remained, and it washere we stayed until the smoke came again, and sent us sleeping into thehills. Eh, it's glad I am now to be awake again." Donahue nodded. "And it's not sorry I am. I'm a good blacksmith, but there'snever enough of that for a man to live now, and mostly I work on the autos. And there, m'boy, you'll be a wonderful help to be sure. The parts I likeleast are the ignition system and generator, and there's copper in them whereyour skill will be greater than mine. And the radiators, of course." Ellowan's hands fumbled on the metal, and he set it down suddenly. "Thoseradiators, now-they come from a car?" "That they do." Donahue's back was turned as he drew a horseshoe out of theforge and began hammering it on the anvil. He could not see the twinkle fadefrom the elf's eyes and the slowness with which the small fingers picked up theradiator cap. Ellowan was thinking of his people, asleep in the hills, doomed to lie thereuntil the air should be cleared of the poisonous fumes. And here he was, working on parts of the machines that helped to make those fumes. Yet, sincethere was little enough else to do, he had no choice but to keep on; cars orno cars, food was still the . prime necessity. Donahue bent the end of a shoe over to a calk and hammered it into shape, evenwith the other one. "You'll be wanting a place to sleep?" he asked casually. "Well, now, I've a room at the house that used to be my boy's, and it'll justsuit you. The boy's at college and won't be needing it." "Thank'ee kindly." Ellowan finished the cap and put it aside distastefully. "The boy'll be a great engineer some day," the smith went on with a glow of pride. "And not have to follow his father in the trade. And it's a good thing, I'm thinking. Because some day, when they've used up all their coal and oil, there'll be no money in the business at all, even with the help of thesenewfangled things. My father was a smith, and I'm by way of being smith andmechanic-but not the boy." "They'll use up all the coal and oil-entirely?" "They will that, now. Nobody knows when, but the day's acoming. And thenthey'll be using electricity or maybe alcohol for fuel. It's a changing world, lad, and we old ones can't change to keep with it." Ellowan picked up the radiator cap and polished it again. Eh, so. One daythey'd use up all the sources of evil, and the air would be pure again. Themore cars that ran, the sooner that day would come, and the more he repaired, the more would run. "Eh, now," he said gayly. "I'll be glad for more of those radiators to mend. But until then, perchance I could work a bit of yonder scrap brass into moresuch ornaments as this one." Somehow, he was sure, when his people came forth again, there'd be work forall. Hereafter, Inc. PHINEAS THEOPHILUS POTTS, who would have been the last to admit and the firstto believe he was a godly man, creaked over in bed and stuck out one scrawnyarm wrathfully. The raucous jangling of the alarm was an unusually painfulcancer in his soul that morning. Then his waking mind took over and he checkedhis hand, bringing it down on the alarm button with precise, but gentle, firmness. Would he never learn to control these little angers? In this worldone should bear all troubles with uncomplaining meekness, not rebel againstthem; otherwise- But it was too early in the morning to think of that. He wriggled out of bed and gave his thoughts over to the ritual of rememberingyesterday's sins, checking to make sure all had been covered and wiped out thenight before. That's when he got his first shock; he couldn't rememberanything about the day before-bad, very bad. Well, no doubt it was anothertrap of the forces conspiring to secure Potts' soul. Teh, tch. Terrible, buthe could circumvent even that snare. There was no mere mumbling by habit to his confession; word after word rolledoff his tongue carefully with full knowledge and unctuous shame until hereached the concluding lines. "For the manifold sins which I have committedand for this greater sin whichnow afflicts me, forgive and guide me to sin no more, but preserve me inrighteousness all the days of my life. Amen." Thus having avoided the pitfalland saved himself again from eternal combustion, he scrubbed hands withhimself and began climbing into his scratchy underclothes and cheap blacksuit. Then he indulged in a breakfast of dry toast and buttermilk flavoredwith self-denial and was ready to fare forth into the world of ' temptationaround him. The telephone jangled against his nerves and he jumped, grabbing for itimpatiently before he remembered; he addressed the mouthpiece contritely. "Phineas Potts speaking." It was Mr. Sloane, his lusty animal voice barking out from the receiver. " 'Lo, Phin, they told me you're ready to come down to work today. Business isbooming and we can use you. How about it?" "Certainly, Mr. Sloane. I'm not one to shirk my duty." There was no reason forthe call that Potts could see; he hadn't missed a day in twelve years. "Youknow-" "Sure, okay. That's fine. Just wanted to warn you that we've moved. You'll seethe name plate right across the street when you come out-swell place, too. Sure you can make it all right?" "I shall be there in ten minutes, Mr. Sloane," Phineas assured him, and remembered in time to hang up without displaying distaste. Tch, poor Sloane, wallowing in sin and ignorant of the doom that awaited him. Why, the last timePhineas had chided his employer-mildly, too-Sloane had actually laughed athim! Dear. Well, no doubt he incurred grace by trying to save the poor lostsoul, even though his efforts seemed futile. Of course, there was danger inconsorting with such people, but no doubt his sacrifices would be dulyrecorded. There was a new elevator boy, apparently, when he came out of his room. Hesniffed pointedly at the smoke from the boy's cigarette; the boy twitched hislips, but did not throw it away. "Okay, bub," he grunted as the doors clanked shut, grating across Phineas' nerves, "I don't like it no bet-ter'n you will, buthere We are." Bub! Phineas glared at the shoulders turned to him and shuddered. He'd seeMrs. Biddle about this later. Suppressing his feelings with some effort, he headed across the lobby, scarcely noting it, and stepped out onto the street. Then he stopped. That wasthe second jolt. He swallowed twice, opened his eyes and lifted them for thefirst time in weeks, and looked again. It hadn't changed. Where there shouldhave been a little twisted side street near the tenements, he saw instead abroad gleaming thoroughfare, busy with people and bright in warm goldensunshine. Opposite, the ugly stores were replaced with bright, new officebuildings, and the elevated tracks were completely missing. He swung slowlyabout, clutching his umbrella for support as he faced the hotel; it was stilla hotel-but not his- definitely not his. Nor was the lobby the same. Hefumbled back into it, shaken and bewildered. The girl at the desk smiled up at him out of dancing eyes, and she certainlywasn't the manager. Nor would prim Mrs. Biddle, who went to his church, havehired this brazen little thing; both her lips and fingernails were brightcrimson, to begin with, and beyond that he preferred not to go. The brazen little thing smiled again, as if glorying in her obvious idolatry. "Forget something, Mr. Potts?" "I . . . uh . . ; no. That is ... you know who I am?" She nodded brightly. "Yes indeed, Mr. Potts. You moved in yesterday. Room 408. Is everything satisfactory?" Phineas half nodded, gulped, and stumbled out again. Moved in? He couldn'trecall it. Why should he leave Mrs. Biddle's? And 408 was his old room number; the room was identical with the one he had lived in, even to the gray streakon the wallpaper that had bothered his eyes for years. Something was horriblywrong-first the lack of memory, then Sloane's peculiar call, now this. He wastoo upset even to realize that this was probably another temptation set beforehim. Mechanically, Phineas spied Sloane's name plate on one of the new buildingsand crossed over into it. "Morning, Mr. Potts," said the elevator boy, andPhineas jumped. He'd never seen this person before, either. "Fourth floor, Mr. Potts. Mr. Sloane's office is just two doors down." Phineas followed the directions automatically, found the door marked G. R. SLOANE-ARCHITECT, and pushed1 into a huge room filled with the almostunbearable clatter of typewriters and Comptometers, the buzz of voices, andthe jarring thump of an addressing machine. But this morning the familiarityof the sound seemed like a haven out of the wilderness until he looked around. Not only had Sloane moved, but he'd apparently also expanded and changed mostof his office force. Only old Callahan was left, and Callahan- Strange, hefelt sure Callahan had retired or something the year before. Oh, well, thatwas the least of his puzzles. Callahan seemed to sense his stare, for he jumped up and brought a hamlikefist down on Phineas' back, almost knocking out the ill-fitting false teeth. "Phin Potts, you old doom-monger! Welcome back!" He thumped again and Pottscoughed, trying to reach the spot and rub out the sting. Not only did Callahanhave to be an atheist-an argumentative one-but he had to indulge in this grosshorseplay. Why hadn't the man stayed properly retired? "Mr. Sloane?" he managed to gurgle. Sloane himself answered, his rugged face split in a grin. "Hi, Phin. Let himalone, Callahan. Another thump like that and I'll have to hire a newdraftsman. Come on, Phin, there's the devil's own amount of work piled up foryou now that you're back from your little illness." He led him around a bunchof tables where bright-painted hussies were busily typing, down a hall, andinto the drafting room, exchanging words with others that made Phineas wince. Really, his language seemed to grow worse each day. "Mr. Sloane, would you please-" "Mind not using such language," Sloane finished, and grinned. "Phin, I can'thelp it. I feel too good. Business is terrific and I've got the world by thetail. How do you feel?" "Very well, thank you." Phineas fumbled and caught the thread of formerconversation that had been bothering him. "You said something about-illness?" "Think nothing of it. After working for me twelve years, I'm not going to dockyour pay for a mere month's absence. Kind of a shame you had to be off justwhen I needed you, but such things will happen, so we'll just forget it, eh?" He brushed aside the other's muttered attempt at questioning and dug into theplans. "Here, better start on this-you'll notice some changes, but it's a lotlike what we used to do; something like the Oswego we built in '37. Only thingthat'll give you trouble is the new steel they put out now, but you can followspecifications on that." Phineas picked up the specifications, ran them over, and blinked. This wouldnever do; much as he loathed the work, he was an excellent draftsman, and heknew enough of general structural design to know this would never do. "But, two-inch I-beams here-" " 'Sail right, Phin, structural strength is about twelve times what you'reused to. Makes some really nice designing possible, too. Just follow thethings like I said, and I'll go over it all later. Things changed a littlewhile you were delirious. But I'm in a devil of a rush right flow. See you." He stuck his body through the door, thrust his head back inside and cocked aneyebrow. "Lunch? Need somebody to show you around, I guess." "As you wish, Mr. Sloane," agreed Phineas. "But would you please mind-" "Not swearing. Sure, okay. And no religious arguments this time; if I'mdamned, I like it." Then he was gone, leaving Phineas alone-he couldn't workwith the distraction of others, and always had a room to himself. So he'd been sick had he, even delirious? Well, that might explain things. Phineas had heard that such things sometimes produced a hiatus in the memory, and it was a better explanation than nothing. With some relief, he put it out ofhis mind, remembering only to confess how sinfully he'd lost his trust indivine guidance this morning, shook his head mournfully, and began work withdutiful resignation. Since it had obviously been ordained that he should makehis simple living at drafting, draft he would, with no complaints, and therewould be no fault to be found with him there. Then the pen began to scratch. He cleaned and adjusted it, finding nothingwrong, but still it made little grating sounds on the paper, lifting up theraw edges of his nerves. Had Phineas believed in evolution, he'd have said thehair his ancestors had once grown was trying to stand on end, but he had nouse for such heretical ideas. Well, he was not one to complain. He unclenchedhis teeth and sought forbearance and peace within. Then, outside, the addressograph began to thump again, and he had to forcehimself not to ruin the lines as his body tried to flinch. Be patient, all these trials would be rewarded. Finally, he turned to the only anodyne heknew, contemplation of the fate of heretics and sinners. Of course, he wassorry for them roasting eternally and crying for water which they would neverget-very sorry for the poor deluded creatures, as any righteous man should be. Yet still they had been given their chance and not made proper use of it, soit was only just. Picturing morbidly the hell of his most dour Puritanancestors-something very real to him-he almost failed to notice the ache ofhis bunion where the cheap shoes pinched. But not quite. Callahan was humming out in the office, and Phineas could just recognize thetune. Once the atheist had come in roaring drunk, and before they'd sent himhome, he'd cornered Phineas and sung it through, unex-purgated. Now, hi tunewith the humming^ the words insisted in trickling through the suffering littleman's mind, and try as he would, they refused to leave. Prayer did no good. Then he added Callahan to the tortured sinners, and that worked better. "Pencils, shoestrings, razor blades?" The words behind him startled him, andhe regained his balance onthe stool with difficulty. Standing just inside the door was a one-leggedhunch-back with a handful of cheap articles. "Pencils?" he repeated. "Only anickel. Help a poor cripple?" But the grin on his face belied the words. "Indeed no, no pencils." Phineas shuddered as the fellow hobbled over to awindow and rid himself of a chew of tobacco. "Why don't you try the charities? Furthermore, we don't allow beggars here." "Ain't none," the fellow answered with ambiguous cheerfulness, stuffing in anew bite. "Then have faith in the Lord and He will provide." Naturally, man had beendestined to toil through the days of his life in this mortal sphere, and toilhe must to achieve salvation. He had no intention of ruining this uncouthperson's small chance to be saved by keeping him in idleness. The beggar nodded and touched his cap. "One of them, eh? Too bad. Well, keepyour chin up, maybe it'll be better later." Then he went off down the hall, whistling, leaving Phineas to puzzle over his words and -give it up as a badjob. Potts rubbed his bunion tenderly, then desisted, realizing that pain was onlya test, and should be borne meekly. The pen still scratched, the addressingmachine thumped, and a bee had buzzed in somehow and went zipping about. Itwas a large and active bee. Phineas cowered down and made himself work, sweating a little as the beelighted on his drafting board. Then, mercifully, it flew away and for a fewminutes he couldn't hear it. When it began again, it was behind him. Hestarted to turn his head, then decided against it; the bee might take themotion as an act of aggression, and declare war. His hands on the pen weremoist and clammy, and his fingers ached from gripping it too tightly, butsomehow, he forced himself to go on working. The bee was evidently in no hurry to leave. It flashed by his nose, buzzing, making him jerk back and spatter a blob of ink into the plans, then wentzooming around his head and settled on his bald spot. Phineas held hisbreath and the bee stood pat. Ten, twenty, thirty seconds. His breath went outsuddenly with a rush. The insect gave a brief buzz, evidently deciding thenoise was harmless, and began strolling down over his forehead and out ontohis nose. It tickled; the inside of his nose tickled, sympathetically. "No, no," Phineas whispered desperately. "N- AcheeOOl EEOW!" He grabbed forhis nose and' jerked violently, bumping his shins against the desk andsplashing more ink on the plans. "Damn, oh, da-" It was unbelievable; it couldn't be true! His own mouth had betrayed him! Withshocked and leaden fingers he released the pen and bowed his head, but nosense of saving grace would come. Too well he could remember that even thesmallest sin deserves just damnation. Now he was really sweating, and the visions of eternal torment came trooping back; but this time he was inCallahan's place, and try as he would, he couldn't switch. He was doomed! Callahan found him in that position a minute later, and his rough, mockinglaugh cut into Phineas' wounded soul. "Sure, an angel as I live and breathe." He dumped some papers onto the desk and gave another backbreaking thump. "Gotthe first sheets done, Phin?" Miserably, Phineas shook his head, glancing at the clock. They should havebeen ready an hour ago. Another sin was piled upon his burden, beyond all hopeof redemption, and of all people, Callahan had caught him not working when hewas already behind. But the old Irishman didn't seem to be gloating. "There now, don't take it so hard, Phin. Nobody expects you to work like ahorse when you've been sick. Mr. Sloane wants you to come out to lunch withhim now." "I-uh-" Words wouldn't come. Callahan thumped him on the back again, this time lightly enough to rattleonly two ribs. "Go along with you. What's left is beginner's stuff and I'llfinish it while you're eating. I'm ahead and got nothing to do, anyhow. Goon." He practically picked the smaller man off thestool and shoved him through the door. "Sloane's waiting. Heck, I'll be gladto do it. Feel so good I can't find enough to keep me busy." Sloane was flirting with one of the typists as Phineas plodded up, but hewound up that business with a wink and grabbed for his hat. " 'Smatter, Phin? You look all in. Bad bruise on your nose, too. Well, a good lunch'll fix upthe first part, at least. Best damned food you ever ate, and right around thecorner." "Yes, Mr. Sloane, but would you . . . uh!" He couldn't ask that now. Hehimself was a sinner, given to violent language. Glumly he followed the otherout and into the corner restaurant. Then, as he settled into the seat, herealized he couldn't eat; first among his penances should be giving uplunches. "I ... uh ... don't feel very hungry, Mr. Sloane. I'll just have a cup of tea, I think." The odors of the food in the clean little restaurant that broughttwinges to his stomach would only make his penance that much greater. But Sloane was ordering for two. "Same as usual, honey, and you might as wellbring a second for my friend here." He turned to Phineas. "Trouble with you, Phin, is that you don't eat enough. Wait'11 you get a whiff of the ham theyserve here-and the pie! Starting, now, you're eating right if I have to stuffit down you. Ah!" Service was prompt, and the plates began to appear before the little man'seyes. He could feel his mouth watering, and had to swallow to protest. Thenthe look in Sloane's eye made him decide not to. Well, at least he could fastmorning and night instead. He nodded to himself glumly, wishing his cravenappetite wouldn't insist on deriving so much pleasure from the food. "And so," Sloane's voice broke in on his consciousness again, "after this, you're either going to promise me you'll eat three good meals a day or I'llcome around and stuff it down you. Hear?" "Yes, Mr. Sloane, but-" "Good. I'm taking that as a promise." Phineas cringed. He hadn't meant it thatway; it couldn't go through as a promise. "But-" "No buts about it. Down there I figured you had as good a chance of beingright as I did, so I didn't open my mouth on the subject. But up here, that'sdone with. No reason why you can't enjoy life now." That was too much. "Life," said Phineas, laying' down his knife and preparingfor siege, "was meant to give us a chance to prepare for the life to come, notto be squandered in wanton pleasure. Surely it's better to suffer through afew brief years, resisting temptations, than to be forever damned toperdition. And would you sacrifice heaven for mere mundane cravings, transient and worthless?" "Stow it, Phin. Doesn't seem to me I sacrificed much to get here." Then, atPhineas' bewildered look. "Don't tell me you don't realize where you are? Theytold me they were sending a boy with the message; well, I guess he just missedyou. You're dead, Phin! This is heaven! We don't talk much about it, butthat's the way it is!" "No!" The world was rolling in circles under Phineas'seat. He stared uncomprehendingly at Sloane, finding no slightest sign ofmockery on the man's face. And there was the hole in the memory of sins, andthe changes, and-Callahan! Why, Callahan had died and been buried the yearbefore; and here he was, looking ten years younger, and hearty as ever. But itwas all illusion; of course, it was all illusion. Callahan wouldn't be inheaven. "No, it can't be." "But it is, Phin. Remember? I was down your way to get you for overtime work, and yelled at you just as you came out of your house. Then you started tocross, I yelled again-Come back now?" There'd been a screeching of tires, Sloane running toward him suddenly wavingfrantically, and-blackout! "Then it hit? And this . . . is-" "Uh-huh. Seems they picked me up with a shovel, but it took a month to finishyou off." Sloane dug into the pie, rolling it on his tongue and grinning. "Andthis is Hereafter. A darned good one, too, even if nobody meets you at the gate tosay 'Welcome to Heaven.' " • Phineas clutched'at the straw. "They didn't tell you it was heaven, then? Oh." That explained everything. Of course, he should have known. This wasn't heavenafter all; it couldn't be. And though it differed from his conceptions, itmost certainly could be the other place; there'd been that bee! Teh, it wasjust like Callahan and Sloane to enjoy perdition, misguided sinners, gloryingin their unholiness. Slowly the world righted itself, and Phineas Potts regained his normal state. To be sure, he'd used an ugly word, but what could be expected of him in thisvile place? They'd never hold it against him under the circumstances. Helowered his eyes thankfully, paying no attention to Sloane's idle remarksabout unfortunates. Now if he could just find the authorities of this placeand get the mistake straightened out, all might yet be well. He had alwaysdone his best to be righteous. Perhaps a slight delay, but not long; and then- no Callahan, no Sloane, no drafting, or bees, or grating noises! He drew himself up and looked across at Sloane, sadly, but justly doomed tothis strange Gehenna. "Mr. Sloane," he asked firmly, "is there some place herewhere I can find ... uh ... authorities to ... umm-" "You mean you want to register a complaint? Why sure, a big white buildingabout six blocks down; Adjustment and Appointment office." Sloane studied himthoroughly. "Darned if you don't look like you had a raw deal about something, at that. Look, Phin, they made mistakes sometimes, of course, but if they'vehanded you the little end, we'll go right down there and get it put right." Phineas shook his head quickly. The proper attitude, no doubt was to leaveSloane in ignorance of the truth as long as possible, and that meant he'd haveto go alone. "Thank you, Mr. Sloane, but I'll go by myself, if you don't mind. And ... uh ... if I don't come back . . . uh-" "Sure, take the whole afternoon off. Hey, wait, aren't you gonna finishlunch?" But Ph'ineas Potts was gone, his creaking legs carrying him out into themellow noon sunlight and toward the towering white building that must be hisdestination. The fate of a man's soul is nothing to dally over, and he wasn'tdallying. He tucked his umbrella close under his arm to avoid contact with thehost of the damned, shuddering at the thought of mingling with them. Still, undoubtedly this torture would be added to the list of others, and his rewardbe made that much greater. Then he was at the Office of Administration, Appointments, and Adjustments. There was another painted Jezebel at .the desk marked INFORMATION, and heheaded there, barely collecting his thoughts in time to avoid disgracefulexcitement. She grinned at him and actually winked! "Mr. Potts, isn't it? Oh, I'm so sorry you left before our messenger arrived. But if there's somethingwe can do now-" "There is," he told her firmly, though not too unkindly; after all, herpunishment was ample without his anger. "I wish to see an authority here. Ihave a complaint; a most grievous complaint." "Oh, that's too bad, Mr. Potts. But if you'll see Mr. Alexander, down thehall, third door left, I'm sure he can adjust it." He waited no longer, but hurried where she pointed. As he approached, thethird door opened and a dignified-looking man in a gray business suit steppedto it. The man held out a hand instantly. "I'm Mr. Alexander. Come in, won'tyou? Katy said you had a complaint. Sit right over there, Mr. Potts. Ah, so. Now^if you'll tell me about it, I think we can straighten it all out." Phineas told him-in detail. "And so," he concluded firmly-quite firmly, "Ifeel I've been done a grave injustice, Mr. Alexander. I'm positive mydestination should have been the other place." "The other place?" Alexander seemed surprised. "Exactly so. Heaven, to be more precise." Alexander nodded thoughtfully. "Quite so, Mr. Potts. Only I'm afraid there's been a little misunderstanding. You see ... ah ... this is heaven. Still, I can see you don't believe me yet, so we've failed toplace you properly. We really want to make people happy here, you know. So, ifyou'll just tell me what you find wrong, we'll do what we can to rectify it." "Oh." Phineas considered. This might be a trick, of course, but still, if theycould make him happy here, give him his due reward for the years filled withtemptation resisted and noble suffering in meekness and humility, there seemednothing wrong with it. Possibly, it came to him, there were varying degrees ofblessedness, and even such creatures as Callahan and his ilk were granted thelower ones-though it didn't seem quite just. But certainly his level wasn'tCallahan's. "Very well," he decided. "First, I find myself living in that room with thegray streak on the wallpaper, sir, and for years I've loathed it; and thealarm and telephone; and-" Alexander smiled. "One at a time please. Now, about the room. I really feltwe'd done a masterly job on that, you know. Isn't it exactly like your room onthe former level of life? Ah, I see it is. And didn't you choose and furnishthat room yourself?" "Yes, but-" "Ah, then we were right. Naturally, Mr. Potts, we assumed that since it was ofyour own former creation, it was best suited to you. And besides, you need thealarm and telephone to keep you on time and in contact with your work, youknow." "But I loathe drafting!" Phineas glanced at this demon who was trying to traphim, expecting it to wilt to its true form. It didn't. Instead, the thing thatwas Mr. Alexander shook its head slowly and sighed. "Now that is a pity; and we were so pleased to find we could even give you thesame employer as before. Really, we felt you'd be happier under him than astranger. However, if you don't like it, I suppose we could change. What otherkind of work would you like?" Now that was more like it, and perhaps he had even misjudged Alexander. Workwas something Phineas hadn't expected, but-yes, that would be nice, if itcould be arranged here. "I felt once I was called," he suggested. "Minister, you mean? Now that's fine. Never get too many of them, Mr. Potts. Wonderful men, do wonderful work here. They really add enormously to the happiness' of our Hereafter, you know. Let me see, what experience have youhad?" He beamed at Potts, who thawed under it; then he turned to a bookshelf, selected a heavy volume and consulted it. Slowly the beam vanished, and worrytook its place. "Ah, yes, Phineas Theophilus Potts. Yes, entered training 1903. Hmmm. Dismissed after two years of study, due to. a feeling he might . . . might notbe quite temperamentally suited to the work and that he was somewhat too fana... ahem! . . . overly zealous in his criticism of others. Then transferred tohis uncle's shop and took up drafting, which was thereafter his life's work. Umm. Really, that's too bad." Alexander turned back to Phineas. "Then, Mr. Potts, I take it you never had any actual experience at this sort of work?" Phineas squirmed. "No, but-" "Too bad." Alexander sighed. "Really, I'd like to make things more to yoursatisfaction, but after all, no experience-afraid it wouldn't do. Tell youwhat, we don't like to be hasty hi our judgments; if you'll just pictureexactly the life you want-no need to describe ft, I'll get it if you merelythink it-maybe we can adjust things. Try hard now." With faint hope, Phineas tried. Alexander's voice droned out at him. "A littleharder. No, that's only a negative picture of what you'd like not to do. Ah . . , van, no. I thought for a minute you had something, but it's gone. I thinkyou're trying to picture abstractions, Mr. Potts, and you know one can't dothat; I get something very vague, but it makes no sense. There! That'sbetter." He seemed to listen for a few seconds longer, andPhineas was convinced now it was all sham; he'd given up trying. What was theuse? Vague jumbled thoughts were all he had left, and now Alexander's voicebroke in on them. "Really, Mr. Potts, I'm afraid there's nothing we can do for you. I get a veryclear picture now, but it's exactly the life we'd arranged for you, you see. Same room, same work. Apparently that's the only life you know. Of course, ifyou want to improve we have a great many very fine schools located throughoutthe city." Phineas jerked upright, the control over his temper barely on. "You mean-youmean, I've got to go on like that?" "Afraid so." "But you distinctly said this was heaven." "It is." "And I tell you," Phineas cried, forgetting all about controlling his temper, "that this is hell!" "Quite so, I never denied it. Now, Mr. Potts, I'd like to discuss thisfurther, but others are waiting, so I'm afraid I'll have to ask you to leave." Alexander looked up from his papers, and as he' looked, Phineas found himselfoutside the door, shaken-and sick. The door remained open as the girl calledKaty came up, looked at him in surprise, and went in. Then it closed, butstill he stood there, unable to move, leaning against the wooden frame forsupport. There was a mutter of voices within, and his whirling thoughts seized on themfor anchor. Katy's voice first. "-seems to take it terribly hard, Mr. Alexander. Isn't there something we can do?" Then the low voice of Alexander. "Nothing, Katy. It's up to him now. Isuggested the schools, but I'm afraid he's another unfortunate. Probably evennow he's out there convincing himself that all this is merely illusion, madeto try his soul and test his ability to remain unchanged. If that's the case, well, poor devil, there isn't much we can do, you know." But Phineas wasn't listening then. He clutched the words he'd heard savagelyto his bosom and went stifflyout and back toward the office of G. R. Sloane across from the little room, No. 408. Of course he should have known. All this was merely illusion, made totry his soul. Illusion and test, no more. Let them try him, they would find him humble in his sufferings as always, notcomplaining, resisting firmly their temptations. Even though Sloane denied himthe right to fast, still he would find some other way to do proper penance forhis sins; though Callahan broke his back, though a thousand bees attacked himat once, still he would prevail. "Forgive and guide me to sin no more, but preserve me in righteousness all thedays of my life," he repeated, and turned into the building where there wasmore work and misery waiting for him. Sometime he'd be rewarded. Sometime. Back in his head a small shred of doubt sniggered gleefully. The Wings of Night"DAMN ALL MARTIANS!" Fats Welch's thin mouth bit out the words with all the malice of an offended member of a superior race. "Here we are, loaded downwith as sweet a high-rate cargo of iridium as ever came out of the asteroids, just barely over the moon, and that injector starts mismetering again. If Iever see that bulbous Marshy-" "Yeah." Slim Lane groped back with his right hand for the flexible-shaftwrench, found it, and began wriggling and grunting forward into the mess ofmachinery again. "Yeah. I know. You'll make mince meat out of him. Did youever figure that maybe you were making your own trouble? That maybe Martiansare people after all? Lyro Bmachis told you it would take two days to make theoverhaul of the injector control hookup, so you knocked him across the field, called his ancestors dirty dogs, and gave him just eight hours to finishrepairs. Now you expect his rush job to be a labor of love for you- Oh, skipit, Fats, and give me the screwdriver." What was the use? He'd been over it all with Fats a dozen times before, and itnever got him anywhere. Fats was a good rocket man, but he couldn't stretchhis imagination far enough to forget the hogwash the Reconstruction Empire wasdishing out about the Destiny of Man and the Divine Plan whereby humans werecreated 64 to exploit all other races. Not that it would do Fats much good if he did. Slim knew the value of idealism- none better. He'd come out of college with a bad dose of it and an inherited fortune bigenough for three men, filled with the old crusading spirit. He'd written andpublished books, made speeches, interviewed administrators, lobbied, joinedand organized societies, and been called things that weren't complimentary. Now he was pushing freight from Mars to Earth for a living, quarter owner of aspace-worn freighter. And Fats, who'd come up from a tube cleaner without thehelp of ideals, owned the other three quarters. Fats watched him climb out of the hold. "Well?" "Nothing. I can't fix it-don't know enough about electronics. There'ssomething wrong with the relays that control the time interval, but theindicators don't show where, and I'd hate to experiment out here." "Make it to Earth-maybe?" Slim shook his head. "I doubt it, Fats. Better set us down on Luna somewhere, if you can handle her that far. Then maybe we can find out what's wrong beforewe run out of air." Fats had figured as much and was already braking (he ship down, workingagainst the spasmodic flutter of die blasts, and swearing at the effects ofeven the moon's weak gravity. But the screens showed that he was makingprogress toward the spot he'd chosen-a •mall flat plain with an area in thecenter that seemed unusually clear of debris and pockmarks. "Wish they'd at least put up an emergency station out here," he muttered. "They had one once," Slim said. "But nobody ever goes to Luna, and there's noreason for passenger ships to land there; takes less fuel for them to coast down on their fins through Earth's atmosphere than to jet down fcere. Freighters like us don't count, anyway. Funny fcow regular and flat that placeis; we can't be over a mile up, and I don't see even a meteor scar." "Luck's with us, then. I'd hate to hit a baby craterand rip off a tube or poke a hole in the shell." Fats glanced at the radioaltimeter and fall indicator. "We're gonna hit plenty hard. If- Hey, what thedeuce!" Slim's eyes flicked to the screen just in time to see the flat plain splitinto two halves and slide smoothly out from under them as they seemed about totouch it; then they were dropping slowly into a crater of some sort, seeminglybottomless and widening out rapidly; the roar of the tubes picked up suddenly. Above them, the over-screens showed a pair of translucent slides closingtogether again. His eyes stared at the height indicator, neither believing nordoubting. "Hundred and sixty miles down and trapped in! Tube sounds show air in someamount, at least, even up here. This crazy trap can't be here. There's noreason for it." "Right now, who cares? We can't go through that slide up there again, so we godown and find out, T guess. Damn, no telling what kind of landing field we'llfind when we reach bottom." Fats' lack of excess imagination came in handy incases like this. He went about the business of jockeying down the enormouscrater as if he were docking at York port, too busy with the uncertain blastto worry about what he might find at the bottom. Slim gazed at him in wonder, then fell back to staring at the screen for some indication of the reasonbehind this obviously artificial trap. Lhin scratched idly through the pile of dirt and rotten shale, pried a thinscrap of reddened stone out from where his eyes had missed it the first time, and rose slowly to his feet. The Great Ones had been good to him, sending arockslide just when the old beds were wearing thin and poor from repeateddigging. His sensitive nostrils told him there was magnesium, ferrous matter, and sulphur in abundance, all more than welcome. Of course, he'd hoped theremight be copper, even as little as the end of his finger, but of that thereseemed to be no sign. And without copper- He shrugged the thought aside as he had done a thousand times before, andpicked up his crude basket, now filled half with broken rock and half with the li-chenlike growth thatfilled this end of the crater. One of his hands ground a bit of rottenstonetogether with shreds of lichen and he popped the mixture into his mouth. Graceto the Great Ones who had sent the slide; the pleasant flavor of magnesiumtickled his tongue, and the lichens were full-flavored from the new richnessof the soil around them. Now, with a trace of copper,' there would have beennothing left to wish for. With a rueful twitch of his supple tail, Lhin grunted and turned back towardhis cave, casting a cursory glance up at the roof of the cavern. Up there, long miles away, a bright glare lanced down, diffusing out as it piercedthrough the layers of air, showing that the long lunar day was nearing noon, when the sun would lance down directly through the small guarding gate. It wastoo high to see, but he knew of the covered opening where the sloping walls ofthe huge valley ended and the roof began. Through all the millennia of hisrace's slow defeat, that great roof had stood, unsupported except for thewalls that stretched out around in a circle of perhaps fifty miles indiameter, strong and more lasting than even the crater itself; the one abidingmonument to the greatness that had been his people's. He knew without having to think of it that the roof was artificial, built whenthe last thin air was deserting the moon, and the race had sought a finalrefuge here in the deepest crater, where oxygen could be trapped and kept fromleaking away. In a vague way, he could sense the ages that had passed since then and wonder at the permanence of the domed roof, proof against all time. Once, as the whole space about him testified, his had been a mighty race. Buttime had worked on them, aging the race as it had individuals, removing thevigor of their youth and sending in the slow creepers of hopelessness. Whatgood was existence here, cooped up in one small colony, away from their world? Their numbers had diminished and some of their skill had gone from them. Theirmachines had crumbled and vanished, unreplaced, and they had fallen back tothe primitive, digging out the rocks of the crater walls and the lichensthey had cultured to draw energy from the heat and radioactive phosphorescenceof the valley instead of sunlight. Fewer young were planted each year, and ofthe few, a smaller percentage proved fertile, so that their original millionfell to thousands, then to hundreds, and finally to a few grubbingindividuals. Only then had they awakened to the danger of extinction, to find it too late. There had been three elders when Lhin was grown, his seed being the onlyfertile one. Now the elders were gone long years since, and Lhin had the- entire length and breadth of the crater to . himself. And life was a longseries of sleeps and food forages, relieved only by the same thoughts that hadbeen , in his mind while his dead world turned to the light and away more thana thousand times. Monotony had slowly killed off his race, but now that itswork was nearly done, it" had ended. Lhin was content with his type of life; he was habituated, and immune to boredom. His feet had been moving slowly along with the turning of his thoughts, and hewas out of the valley proper, near the door of the shelter carved into therocky walls which he had chosen from the many as his home. He munched anothermouthful of rock and lichen and let the diffused sunlight shine on him for afew minutes more, then turned into the cave. He needed no light, since therock walls about had all been rendered radioactive in the dim youth of hisrace, and his eyes were adapted to wide ranges of light conditions. He passedquickly through the outer room, containing his woven lichen bed and few simplefurnishings, and back into the combination nursery and workshop, an illogicalbut ever-present hope drawing him back to the far corner. But as always, it was reasonless. The box of rich earth, pulped to a fine loamand watered carefully, was barren of life. There was not even the beginning ofa small red shoot to awaken him to hope for the future. His seed wasinfertile, and the time when all life would be extinct was growing near. Bitterly he turned his back on the nursery bed. So little lacking, yet so much! A few hundred molecules of copper salt to eat, and the seeds he grew wouldbe fertile; or those same copper molecules added to the water would render thepresent seeds capable of growing into vigorous manhood-or womanhood; Lhin'speople carried both male and female elements within each member, and couldgrow the seeds that became their children either alone or with another. Solong as one member of the race lived, as many as a hundred young a year couldbe reared in the carefully tended incubating soil-if the vital hormonecontaining copper could be made. But that, it seemed, was not to be. Lhin went over his laboriously constructedapparatus of hand-cut rock bowls and slender rods bound together into tubes, and his hearts were heavy within him. The slow fire of dried lichen and gummytar burned still, and slowly, drop by drop, liquid oozed from the last tubeinto a bowl. But even in that there was no slightest odor of copper salts. Well, he had tried that and failed. The accumulation of years of refining hadgone into the water that kept the nursery soil damp, and in it there had beentoo little of the needed mineral for life. Almost dispassionately he threw thepermanent metal rolls of his race's science back into their cylinders andbegan disassembling the chemical part of his workshop. That meant the other solution, harder, and filled with risks, but necessary now. Somewhere up near the roof, the records indicated, there was copper insmall amounts, but well past the breathable concentration of air. That meant ahelmet and tanks for compressed air, along with hooks and grapples to bridgethe eroded sections of the old trail and steps leading up, instruments todetect the copper, and a pump to fill the tanks. Then he must carry tanksforward, cache them, and go up to make another cache, step by step, until hissupply line would reach the top and-perhaps-he could find copper for a newbeginning. He deliberately avoided thinking of the tune required and the chances offailure. His foot came down on the little bellows and blue flames licked upfrom his crude forge as he drew out the hunks of refined metal andbegan heating them to malleability. Even the shaping of it by hand to thepatterns of the ancient records was almost impossible, and yet, somehow, hemust accomplish it correctly. His race must not die! He was still working doggedly hours later when a high-pitched note shotthrough the cave. A meteor, coming into the fields around the sealing slidesof the roof, and a large one! In all Lhin's life there had been none bigenough to activate the warning screens, and he had doubted that the mechanism, though meant to be ageless and draw sun power until the sun died, was stillfunctioning. As he stood staring at the door senselessly, the whistling notecame again. Now, unless he pressed his hand over the inductance grid, the automatic forceswould come into play, twisting the meteor aside and beyond the roof. But hegave no thought to that as he dashed forward and slapped his fingers againstthe grille panel. It was for that he had chosen his rock house, once thequarters of the Watchers who let the few scouting rockets of the dim past agesin and out. A small glow from the grid indicated the meteor was through, andhe dropped his hand, letting the slides close again. Then he waited impatiently for it to strike, moving out to the entrance. Perhaps the Great Ones were kind and were answering his prayers at last. Sincehe could find no copper here, they were sending a token from outer space tohim, and who knew what fabulous amounts it might contain-perhaps even as muchas he could hold in one hand! But why hadn't it struck? He scanned the roofanxiously, numb with a fear that he had been too late and the forces hadthrown it aside. No, there was a flare above-but surely not such as a meteor that size shouldmake as it sliced down through the resisting air! A sharp stinging whine hithis ears finally, flickering off and on; and that was not the sound a meteorwould logically make. He stared harder, wondering, and saw that it wassettling downward slowly, not in a sudden rush, and that the flare struck downinstead of fading out behind. That meant-could only mean-intelligent control. A rocket! Lhin's mind spun under the shock, and crazy ideas of his ancestors' return, ofanother unknown refuge, of the Great Ones' personal visit slid into histhoughts. Basically, though, he was severely logical, and one by one herejected them. This machine could not come from the barren moon, and that leftonly the fabled planet lying under the bottom of his world, or those thatwandered around the sun in other orbits. Intelligence there? His mind slid over the records he had read, made when his ancestors hadcrossed space to those worlds, long before the refuge was built. They had beenunable to colonize, due to the oppressive pull of gravity, but they hadobserved in detail. On the second planet were only squamous things that slidthrough the water and curious fronds on the little dry land; on his ownprimary, gigantic beasts covered the globe, along with growth rooted to theground. No intelligence on those worlds. The fourth, though, was peopled bymore familiar life, and like his own evolutionary forerunners, there was nodivision into animal and vegetable, but both were present in all. Ball-shaped blobs of life had already formed into packs, guided by instinct, with no meansof communication. Yet, of the other worlds known, that seemed the mostprobable as a source of intelligence. If, by some miracle, they came from thethird, he abandoned hope; the blood lust of that world was too plainly writtenin the records, where living mountainh'ke beasts tore at others through allthe rolls of etched pictures. Half filled with dread, half with anticipation, he heard the ship land somewhere near, and started toward it, his tail curvedtightly behind him. He knew, as he caught sight of the two creatures outside the opened lock ofthe vessel that his guess had been wrong. The creatures were bifurcate, likehimself, though massive and much larger, and that meant the third world. Hehesitated, watching carefully as they stared about, apparently keenly enjoyingthe air around them. Then one spoke to the other, and his mind shook under anew shock. The articulation and intonation were intelligent, butthe sounds were a meaningless babble. Speech-that! It must be, though thewords held no meaning. Wait-in the old records-Slha the Freethinker hadtouched on some such thought; he had written of remote days when the Lunariteshad .had no speech and postulated that they had invented the sounds and giventhem arbitrary meaning, and that only by slow ages of use had they becomeinstinctive in the new-grown infants-had even dared to question that the GreatOnes had ordered speech and sound meanings as the inevitable complement ofintelligence. And now, it seemed, he was right. Lhin groped up through the fogof his discovery and tightened his thoughts into a beam. Again, shock struck at him. Their minds were hard to reach, and once he didfind the key and grope forward into their thoughts, it was apparent that theycould not read his! Yet they were intelligent. But the one on whom histhoughts centered noticed him finally, and grabbed at the other. The wordswere still harsh and senseless, but the general meaning reached the moon man. "Fats, what's that?" The other turned and stared at Lhin's approach. "Search me. Looks like ascrawny three-foot monkey. Reckon it's harmless?" "Probably, maybe even intelligent. It's a cinch no band of political refugeesbuilt this place-nonhuman construction. Hi there!" The one who thought ofhimself as Slim-massive though he appeared-turned to the approaching Lunarite. "What and who are you?" "Lhin," he answered, noting surprised pleasure in Slim's mind. "Lhin-me areLhin." Fats grunted. "Guess you're right, Slim. Seems to savvy you. Wonder who camehere and taught him English." Lhin fumbled clumsily, trying to pin down the individual sounds to then'meanings and remember them. "No sahffy Enlhis. No who came here. You-" He ranout of words and drew nearer, making motions toward Slim's head, then his own. Surprisingly, Slim got it. "He means he knows what we're thinking, I guess. Telepathy." "Yeah? Marshies claim they can do it among themselves, but I never saw oneread a human mind. They claim we don't open up right. Maybe this Ream monkey'slying to you." "I doubt it. Take another look at the radioactivity meter in the viabilitytester-men wouldn't come here and go home without spreading the good word. Anyway, his name isn't Ream. Lean comes closer to the sound he made, thoughwe'll never get it right." He half sent a thought to Lhin, who dutifullypronounced his name again. "See? His liquid isn't . . . it's a glottal stop. And he makqb the final consonant a labial, though it sounds something like ourdental. We can't make sounds like that. Wonder how intelligent he is." He turned back into the ship before Lhin could puzzle out some kind of answer, and was out a moment later with a small bundle under his arm. "Space English code book," he explained to Fats. "Same as they used to teach the MartiansEnglish a century ago." Then to Lhin: "Here are the six hundred most useful words of our language, organized, so it'll beat waiting for you to pick them up bit by bit. You lookat the diagrammed pictures while I say and think the word. Now. One-w-uh-nn; two-tuh-ooo. Getting it?" Fats watched them for a while, half-amused, then grew tired of it. "Okay, Slim, you mollycoddle the native a while and see what you learn. I'm goingover to the walls and investigate that radioactive stuff until you're ready tostart repairs. Wish radios weren't so darned limited in these freighters andwe could get a call through." He wandered off, but Lhin and Slim were hardly aware of it. They were goingthrough the difficult task of organizing a means of communication, with almostno common background, which should have been worse than impossible in terms ofhours. Yet, strange as the word associations and sounds were, and odd as theirorganization into meaningful groups, they were still only speech, after all. And Lhin had grown into life with a highly complex speech as natural to nun asbreathing. I He twisted his lips over the sounds and nailed the meanings down in his mind, one by one, indelibly. Fats finally found them in Lhin's cave, tracing them by the sound of theirvoices, and sat down to watch, as an adult might watch a child playing with adog. He bore Lhin no ill will, but neither could he regard the Moon man asanything but some clever animal, like the Martians or the primitives of Venus; if Slim enjoyed treating them as equals, let him have his way for the time. Lhin was vaguely conscious of those thoughts and others more disturbing, buthe was too wrapped up in the new experience of having some living mind tocommunicate with, after nearly a century of being alone with himself. Andthere were more important things. He wriggled his tail, spread his arms, andfought over the Earth sounds, while Slim followed as best he could. Finally the Earth man nodded. "I think I get it. All of them died off exceptyou, and you don't like the idea of coming to a dead end. Umm. I wouldn'teither. So now you hope these Great Ones of yours-we call 'em God-have sent usdown here to fix things up. How?" Lhin beamed, his face contorting into a furrowed grimace of pleasure before herealized Slim misinterpreted the gesture. Slim meant well. Once he knew whatwas needed, perhaps he Would even give the copper gladly, since the oldrecords showed that the third world was richest of all in minerals. "Nra is needed. Life comes from making many simple things one not-simplething-air, drink stuff, eat stuff, all that I have, so I live. But to beginthe new life, Nra is needed. It makes things begin. The seed has no life-withNra it lives. But I have no word." He waited impatiently while Slim digested that. "Sort of a vitamin or hormone, something like Vitamin E6, eh? Maybe we could make it, but-" Lhin nodded. Surely the Great Ones were kind. His hearty were warm as hethought of the many seeds carefully wrapped and stored that could be made togrowwith the needed copper. And now the Earth man was willing to help. A littlelonger and all would be well. "No need to make/' he piped happily. "Simple stuff. The seed or I can make it, in us. But we, need Nra to make it. See." He pulped a handful of rock from thebasket lying near, chewed it carefully, and indicated that it was beingchanged inside him. Fats awoke to greater attention. "Do that again, monkey!" Lhin obliged, curious to note that they apparently ate nothing other life hadnot prepared for them. "Darn. Rocks-just plain rocks-and he eats them. Has he got a craw like a bird, Slim?" "He digests them. If you've read of those half-plant, half-animal things theMartians came from, you'll know what his metabolism's like. Look, Lhin, I takeit you mean an element. Sodium, calcium, chlorine? No, I guess you'd have allthose. Iodine, maybe? Hmmm." He went over a couple of dozen he could imaginehaving anything to do with life, but copper was not among them, by accident, and a slow fear crept up into the Lunarite's thoughts. This strange barrier tocommunication-would it ruin all? He groped for the answer-and relaxed. Of course, though no common wordexisted, the element itself was common in structure. Hurriedly, he flipped thepages of the code book to a blank one and reached for the Earth man's pencil. Then, as Slim and Fats stared curiously, he began sketching in the atomicstructure of copper, particle by particle, from the center out, as the masterphysicists of his race had discovered it to be. It meant nothing to them. Slim handed the paper back, shaking his head. "Fella, if I'm right in thinking that's a picture of some atom, we've got alot to learn back on earth. Wheeoof Fats twistecf his lips. "If that's an atom, I'm a fried egg. Come on, Slim, it's sleepy time and you've fooled away half a day. Anyhow, I want to talkthat radioactive business over with you. It's so strong it'd cook us in halfan hour if we weren't wearing these portable nullifiers- yet the monkey seems to thrive on it.-I got an idea." Slim came back from his brown study and stared at his watch. "Darn it! Look, Lhin, don't give up yet, we'll talk all this over tomorrow again. But Fats isright; it's time for us to sleep. So long, fella." Lhin nodded a temporary farewell in his own tongue and slumped back on hisrough bed. Outside, he heard Fats extolling a scheme of some kind for gettingout the radioactives with Lhin's help, somehow, and Slim's protesting voice. But he paid no attention. The atomic structure had been right, he knew, butthey were only groping toward it in their science, and their minds knew toolittle of the subject to enable them to grasp his pictures. Chemical formulae? Reactions that would eliminate others, one by one? If theywere chemists, perhaps, but even Slim knew too little for that. Yet, obviously,, unless there was no copper on Earth, there was an answersomewhere. Surely the Great Ones whom they called God would never answergenerations of faithful prayer with a mockery! There was an answer, and whilethey slept, he would find it, though he had to search through every recordroll for clues. Hours later he was trudging across the plain toward the ship, hope high again. The answer, once found, was simple. All elements formed themselves intofamilies and classes. Slim had mentioned sodium, and copper was related in themore primitive tables, such as Earth might use. More important, its atomicnumber was twenty-nine by theory elementary enough for any race that couldbuild rockets. The locks were open, and he slipped through both, the wavering half-formedthoughts of the men leading him to them unerringly. Once hi their presence, hestopped, wondering about their habits. Already he had learned that what heldtrue for his people was not necessarily the rule with them, and they might notapprove of his arousing a sleeper. Finally, torn between politeness andimpatience, he squatted on the metal floor, clutching the record roll, his nostrils sampling the metals around him. Copperwas not there; but he hadn't expected so rare an element, though there wereothers here that he failed completely to recognize and guessed were among theheavy ones almost lacking on the moon. Fats gurgled and scrimmaged around with his arms, yawned, sat up, still halfasleep. His thoughts were full of some Earth person of the female elementwhich Lhin had noted was missing in these two, and what he'd do "when he got rich." Lhin was highly interested in the thought pictures until he realizedthat it would be best not to intrude on these obviously secret things. Hewithdrew his mind just as the man noted him. Fats was never at his best while waking up. He came to his feet with a bellowand grabbed for something. "Why, you sneaking little monkey! Trying to slip upand cut our-" Lhin squealed and avoided the blow that would have left him a shapeless blob, uncertain of how he had offended, but warned by caution to leave. Physicalfear was impossible to him-too many generations had grown and died with noneed of it. But it came as a numbing shock that these beings would actuallykill another intelligent person. Was life so cheap on Earth? "Hey! Hey, Fats, stop it!" Slim had awakened at the sound of the commotion, and a hasty glance showed Lhin that he was holding the other's arms. "Lay off, will you? What's going on?" But now Fats was fully awake and calming down. He dropped the metal bar andgrinned wryly. "I dunno. I gsess he meant all right, but he was sitting therewith that metal thing in his hands, staring at me, and I figured he meant tocut my throat or something. I'm all right now. Come on back, monkey; it's allright." Slim let his partner go and nodded at Lhin. "Sure, come back, fella. Fats hassome funny ideas about non-humans, but he's a good-hearted egg, on the whole. Be a good doggie and he won't kick you-he might even scratch your ears." "Nuts." Fats was grinning, good nature restored. Heknew Slim meant it as a crack, but it didn't bother him; what was wrong withtreating Marshies and monkeys like what they were? "Whatcha got there, monkey? More pictures that mean nothing?" Lhirt nodded in imitation of their assent gesture and held out the roll toSlim; Fats' attitude was no longer unfriendly, but he was an unknown quantity, and Slim seemed the more interested. "Pictures that mean much, I hope. Here isNra, twenty-nine, under sodium." "Eight column periodic table," Slim told Fats. "At least, it looks like one. Get me the handbook, will you? Ummm. Under sodium, No. 29. Sodium, potassium, copper. And it's No. 29, all right. That it, Lhin?" Lhin's eyes were blazing with triumph. Grace to the Great Ones. "Yes, it iscopper. Perhaps you have some? Even a gram, perhaps?" "Ten thousand grams, if you like. According to your notions, we're lousy withthe stuff. Help yourself." Fats cut in. "Sure, monkey, we got copper, if that's the stuff you've beenyelling about. What'll you pay for it?" "Pay?" "Sure, give in return. We help you; you help us. That's fair, isn't it?" It hadn't occurred to Lhin, but it did seem fair. But what had he to give? Andthen he realized what was in the man's mind. For the copper, he was to work, digging out and purifying the radioactives that gave warmth and light and lifeto the crater, so painfully brought into being when the place was firstconstructed, transmuted to meet the special needs of the people who were tolive there. And after him, his sons and their sons, mining and sweating forEarth, and being paid in barely enough copper to keep Earth supplied withlaborers. Fats' mind filled again with dreams of the other Earth creature. Forthat, he would doom a race to life without pride or hope or accomplishment. Lhin found no understanding in it. There were so many of those creatures onEarth-why should his enslavement be necessary? Nor was enslavement all. Eventually, doom was ascertain that way as the other, once Earth was glutted with the radioactives, or when the supply here dropped below the vital point, great as the reservewas. He shuddered under the decision forced upon him. Slim's hand fell on his shoulder. "Fats has things slightly wrong, Lhin. Haven't you, Fats?" There was something in Slim's hand, something Lhin knew dimly was a weapon. The other man squirmed, but his grin remained. "You're touched, Slim, soft. Maybe you believe all this junk about otherraces' equality, but you won't kill me for it. I'm standing pat-I'm not givingaway my copper." And suddenly Slim was grinning, too, and putting the weapon back. "Okay, don't. Lhin can have my copper. There's plenty on the ship in forms we canspare, and don't forget I own a quarter of it." Fats' thoughts contained no answer to that. He mulled it over slowly, thenshrugged. Slim was right enough about it, and could do as he wanted with hisshare. Anyhow- "Okay, have it your way. I'll help you pry it off wherever itis, or dig it out. How about that wire down hi the engine locker?" Lhin stood silently watching them as they opened a small locker and rummagedthrough it, studying the engines and controls with half his mind, the otherhalf quivering with ecstasy at the thought of copper-not just a handful, butall he could carry, in pure form, eas-fly turned into digestible sulphate withacids he had already prepared for his former attempt at collecting it. In ayear, the crater would be populated again, teeming with life. Perhaps three orfour hundred sons left, and as they multiplied, more and yet more. A detail of the hookup he was studying brought thatt part of his mind uppermost, and he tugged at Slim'sftrouser leg. "The . . . that ... is not good, is it?" "Huh? No, it isn't, fella. That's what brought us here. Why?" "Then, without radioactives, I can pay. I will fix it." A momentary doubt struck him. "That is to pay, is it not?" Fats heaved a coil of wonderful-smelling wire out of the locker, wiped offsweat, and nodded. "That's to pay, all right, but you let those things alone. They're bad enough, already, and maybe even Slim can't fix it." "I can fix." "Yeah. What school did you get your degree in electronics from? Two hundredfeet in this coil, makes fifty for him. You gonna give it all to him, Slim?" "Guess so." Slim was looking at Lhin doubtfully, only half-watching as theother measured and cut the wire. "Ever touched anything like that before, Lhin? Controls for the ion feed and injectors are pretty complicated in theseships. What makes you think you can do it-unless your people had things likethis and you studied the records." Lhin fought for words as he tried to explain. His people had nothing likethat-their atomics had worked from a different angle, since uranium was almostnonexistent on the moon, and they had used a direct application of it. But theprinciples were plain to him, even from what he could see outside; he couldfeel the way it worked in his head. "I feel. When I first grew, I could fix that. It is the way I think, not theway I learn, though I have read all the records. For three hundred million ofyour years, my people have learned it-now I feel-it." "Three hundred million years! I knew your race was old when you told me youwere born talking and reading, but-galloping dinosaurs!" "My people saw those things on your world, yes," Lhin assured him solemnly. "Then I shall fix?" Slim shook his head in confusion and handed over a tool kit without another word. "Three hundred million years, Fats, and during almost all that time theywere further ahead than we are now. Figure that one out. When we were littlecrawling things living off dinosaur eggs, they were flitting from planet toplanet-only I don't suppose they could stay very long; six tunes normalgravity for them. And now, just because they hadto stay on a light world and their air losses made them gather here where things weren't normal, Lhin's all that's left." "Yeah, and how does that make him a mechanic?" "Instinct. In the same amountof time, look at the instincts the animals picked up-what to eat, enemysmells, caring for their young ... He has an instinct for machinery; hedoesn't know all about it, probably, but he can instinctively feel how a thingshould work.1 Add to that the collection of science records he was showing meand the amount of reading he's probably done, and there should be almostnothing he couldn't do to a machine." There wasn't much use hi arguing, Fats decided, as he watched what washappening. The monkey either fixed things or they never would leave now. Lhinhad taken snips and disconnected the control box completely; now he was takingthat to pieces, one thing at a time. With a curious deftness, he unhookedwires, lifted out tubes, and uncoupled transformers. It seemed simple enough to him. They had converted energy from the atomicfuel, and they used certain forces to ionize matter, control the rate ofionization, feed the ions to the rocket tubes, and force them outward at highspeed through helices. An elementary problem in applied electronics, to governthe rate and control the ionization forces. With small quick hands he bent wires into coils, placed other coils hirelation, and coupled a tube to the combination. Around the whole, other coilsand tubes took shape, then a long feeder connected to the pipe that carriedthe compound to be ionized, and bus bars to the energy intakes. The injectorsthat handled the feeding of ions were needlessly complicated, but he let themalone, since they were workable as they were. It had taken him less thanfifteen minutes. "It will work now. But use care when you first try it. Now it makes all work, not a little as it did before." Slim inspected it. "That all? What about this pile of stuff you didn't use?" "There was no need. It was very poor. Now it isgood." As best he could he explained to Slim what happened when it was usednow; before, it would have taken a well-trained technician to describe, evenwith the complicated words at his command. But what was there now was theproduct of a science that had gone beyond the stumbling complications of firstattempts. Something was to be done, and was done, as simply as possible. Slim's only puzzle was that it hadn't been done that way in the first place-anormal reaction, once the final simplification is reached. He nodded. . "Good. Fats, this is the business. You'll get about 99.99 percent efficiencynow, instead of the 20 percent maximum before. You're all right, Lhin." Fats knew nothing of electronics, but it had sounded right as Lhin explained, and he made no comment. Instead, he headed for the control room. "Okay, we'llleave here, then. So long, monkey." Slim gathered up the wire and handed it to Lhin, accompanying him to the airlock. On the ground, as the locks closed, the Moon man looked up and managedan Earth smile. "I shall open the doors above for you to go through. And youare paid, and all is fan:, not so? Then-so long, Slim. The Great Ones loveyou, that you have given my people back to me." "Adios," Slim answered, and waved, just before the doors came shut. "Maybewe'll be back sometime and see how you make out." Back in the cave, Lhin fondled the copper and waited for the sounds therockets would make, filled with mixed emotions and uncertainties. The copperwas pure ecstasy to him, but there were thoughts in Fats' mind which were notall clear. Well, he had the copper for generations to come; what happened tohis people now rested on the laps of the Great Ones. He stood outside the entrance, watching the now-steady rocket blast upward andaway, carrying with it the fate of his race. If they told of the radioactives, slavery and extinction. If they remained silent, perhaps a return to formergreatness, and passage might be resumed to other planets, long deserted even at the heightof their progress; but now planets bearing life and intelligence instead ofmere jungles. Perhaps, in time, and with materials bought from other worldswith ancient knowledge, even a solution that would let them restore theirworld to its ancient glory, as they had dreamed before hopelessness and thedark wings of a race's night had settled over them. As he watched, the rocket spiraled directly above him, cutting the light offand on with a shadow like the beat of wings from the mists of antiquity, whenwinged life had filled the air of the moon. An omen, perhaps, those sablewings that reached up and passed through the roof as he released the slides, then went skimming out, leaving all clear behind. But whether a good omen orill, he had not decided. He carried the copper wire back to the nursery. And on the ship, Slim watched Fats wiggle and try to think, and there wasamusement on his face. "Well, was he good? As good as any human, perhaps?" "Yeah. All right, better. I'll admit anything you want. He's as good as I am- maybe he's better. That satisfy you?" "No." Slim was beating the iron while it was hot. "What about thoseradioactives?" Fats threw more power into the tubes, and gasped as the new force behind therockets pushed him back into his seat. He eased up gently, staring straightahead. Finally he shrugged and turned back to Slim. "Okay, you win. The monkey keeps his freedom and I keep my lip buttoned. Satisfied now?" "Yeah." Slim was more than satisfied. To him, also, things seemed an omen ofthe future, and proof that idealism was not altogether folly. Some day thewings of dark prejudice and contempt for others might lift from all Earth'sEmpire, as they were lifting from Fats' mind. Perhaps not in his time, buteventually; and intelligence, not race, would rule. "Well satisfied, Fats," he said. "And you don't need to worry about losing toomuch. We'll make all the money we can ever spend from the new principles ofLhin's hookup; I've thought of a dozen applications already. What do you figure on doing with your share?" Fats grinned. "Be adamned fool. Help you start your propaganda again and; go around kissingMarshies and monkeys. Wonder what our little monkey's thinking?" Lhin wasn'tthinking, then; he'd solved the riddle of the factors hi Fats' mind, and heknew what the decision would be. Now he was making copper sulphate, and seeingdawn come up where night had been too long. There's something beautiful aboutany dawn, and this was very lovely to him. Into Thy HandsSIMON AMES WAS old, and his face was bitter as only that of a confirmedidealist can be. Now a queer mixture of emotions crossed it momentarily, as hewatched the workmen begin pouring cement to fill the small opening of thedomelike structure, but his eyes returned again to the barely visible robotwithin. "The last Ames' Model Ten," he said ruefully to his son. "And even then Icouldn't put in full memory coils! Only the physical sciences here; biologicals hi the other male form, humanities in the female. I had to fallback on books and equipment to cover the rest. We're already totally convertedto soldier robots, and no more humanoid experiments. . . . Dan, is there noconceivable way war can be avoided?" The young Rocket Force captain shrugged, and his mouth twitched unhappily. "None, Dad. They've fed thek people on the glories of carnage and loot so longthey have to find some pretext to use their hordes of warrior robots." "Mmm . . . The stupid, blind idiots!" The old man shuddered. "Dan, it soundslike old wives' fears, but this time it's true; unless we somehow avoid or winthis war quickly, there'll be no one left to wage another. I've spent my life on robots; I know what they can do-and should never be made to do! Do youthink I'd waste a fortune on these storehouses on a mere whim?" "I'm not arguing, Dad. God knows, I feel the same!" Dan watched the workmenpour the last concrete, to leave no break in the twenty-foot thick walls. "Well, at least if anyone does survive, you've done all you can for them. Nowit's in the hands of God!" Simon Ames nodded, but there was no satisfaction on his face as he turned backwith his son. "All we could- and never enough! And God? I wouldn't even knowto pray for the survival of which of the three-science, life, or culture. . . ." The words sighed into silence, and his eyes went back to the filled-intunnel. Behind them, the ugly dome hugged the ground while the rains of God and ofman's destruction washed over it. Snow covered it and melted, and other thingsbuilt up that no summer sun could disperse, until the ground was level withits top. The forest crept forward, and the seasons flicked by in unchangingchanges that pyramided decade upon century. Inside, the shining case of SA-10waited immovably. And at last the lightning struck, blasting through a tree, downward into thedome, to course through a cable, short-circuit a ruined timing switch, andspend itself on the ground below. Above the robot, a cardinal burst into song, and he looked up, his stolid facesomehow set in a look of wonder. For a moment, he listened, but the bird hadflown away at the sight of his lumbering figure; With a tired little sigh, hewent on, crashing through the brush of the forest until he came back near theentrance to his cave. The sun was bright above, and he studied it thoughtfully; the word he knew, and even the complex carbon-chain atomic breakdown that went on within it. Buthe did not know how he knew, or why. For a second longer he stood there silently, then opened his mouth for a longwailing cry. "Adam! Adam, come forth!" But there were doubts in the oft- repeated call now and the pose of his head as he waited. And again only thebusy sounds of the forest came back to him. "Or God? God, do You hear me?" But the answer was the same. A field mouse slipped out from among the grassand a hawk soared over the woods. The wind rustled among the trees, but therewas no sign from the Creator. With a lingering backward look, he turned slowlyto the tunnel he had made and wriggled back down it into his cave. Inside, light still came from a single unbroken bulb, and he let his eyeswander from the jagged breach in the thick wall across to where some ancientblast had tossed crumpled concrete against the opposite side. Between lay onlyruin and dirt. Once, apparently, that half had been filled with books andfilms, but now there were only rotted fragments of bindings and scraps ofuseless plastic tape mixed with broken glass in the filth of the floor. Only on the side where he had been was the ruin less than complete. Therestood the instruments of a small laboratory, many still useful, and he namedthem one by one, from the purring atomic generator to the projector and screenset up on one table. Here, in his mind, were order and logic, and the world above had conformed toan understandable pattern. He alone seemed to be without purpose. How had hecome here, and why had he no memory of himself? If there was no purpose, whywas he sentient at all? The questions held no discoverable answers. There were only the cryptic words on the scrap of plastic tape preservedinside the projector. But what little of them was understandable was all hehad; he snapped off the light and squatted down behind the projector, staringintently at the screen as he flicked the machine on. There was a brief fragment of some dark swirling, and then dots and brightspheres, becoming suns and planets that spun out of nothing into a celestial pattern. "In the beginning," said a voice quietly, "God created the heavensand the earth." And the screen filled with that, and the beginnings of life. "Symbolism?" the robot muttered. Geology and astronomy were part of hisknowledge, at least; and yet, m a mystic beauty, this was true enough. Eventhe life forms above had fitted with those being created on the screen. Then a new voice, not unlike his own in resonant power, filled the speaker. "Let Us go down and create man in Our Image!" And a shifting mist of lightthat symbolized God appeared, shaping man from the dust of the ground andbreathing life into him. Adam grew lonely, and Eve was made from his rib, tobe shown Eden and tempted by the serpentine mist of darkness; and she temptedthe weak Adam, until God discovered their sin and banished them. But thebanishment ended in a blur of ruined film as the speaker went dead. The robot shut it off, trying to read its meaning. It must concern him, sincehe alone was here to see it. And how could that be unless he were one of its characters? Not Eve or Satan, but perhaps Adam; but then God should haveanswered him. On the other hand, if he were God, then perhaps the record wasunfulfilled and Adam not yet formed, so that no answer could be given. He nodded slowly to himself. Why should he not have rested here with this filmto remind him of his plan, while the world readied itself for Adam? And now, awake again, he must go forth and create man in his own image! But first, thedanger of which the film had warned must be removed. He straightened, determination coming into his steps as he squirmedpurposefully upward. Outside the sun was still shining, and he headed towardit into the grossly unkempt Eden forest. Now stealth came to him as he movedsilently through the undergrowth, like a great metal wraith, with eyes thatdarted about and hands ready to snap forward at lightning speed. And at last he saw it, curled up near a large rock. It was smaller than he hadexpected, a mere six feet of black, scaly suppleness, but the shape and forkedtongue were unmistakable. He was on it with a blurr of motion and a cry ofelation; and when he moved away, the lifeless object on the rock was foreverpast corrupting the most naive Eve. The morning sun found the robot bent over what hadonce been a wild pig, a knife moving precisely in his hand. Delicately heopened the heart and manipulated it, studying the valve action. Life, he wasdeciding, was highly complex, and a momentary doubt struck him. It had seemedeasy on the film! And at times he wondered why he should know the complexorder of the heavens but nothing of this other creation of his. But at last he buried the pig's remains, and settled down among thevaricolored clays he had collected, his' fingers moving deftly as he rolled awhite type into bones for the skeleton, followed by a red clay heart. The tinynerves and blood vessels were beyond his means, but that could not be helped; and surely if he had created the gigantic sun from nothing, Adam could risefrom the crudeness of his sculpturing. The sun climbed nigher, and the details multiplied. Inside, the last organ wascomplete, including the grayish lump that was the brain, and he began the redsheathing of muscles. Here more thought was required to adapt what he hadlearned of the pig to the longer limbs and different structure of this newbody; but his mind pushed grimly on with the mathematics involved, and at lastit was finished. Unconsciously he began a crooning imitation of the bird songs as his fingersmolded the colored clays to hide the muscles and give smooth symmetry to thebody. He had been forced to guess at the color, though the dark lips on thefilm had obviously been red from blood within them. Twilight found him standing back, nodding approval of the work. It was afaithful copy of the film Adam, waiting only the breath of life; and that mustcome from him, be a part of the forces that flowed through his own metal nerves and brain. Gently he fastened wires to the head and feet of the day body; then he threwback his chest plate to fasten the other ends to his generator terminals, willing the current out into the figure lying before him. Weakness floodedthrough him instantly, threatening to black out his consciousness, but he didnot begrudge the energy. Steam was spurting up and covering the figure as amist had covered Adam, but it slowly subsided, and he stopped the current, stealinga second for relief as the full current coursed back through him. Then softlyhe unhooked the wires and drew them back. "Adam!" The command rang through the forest, vibrant with his urgency. "Adam, rise up! I, your creator, command it!" But the figure lay still, and now he saw great cracks in it, while the noblesmile had baked into a gaping leer. There was no sign of life! It was dead, asthe ground from which it came. He squatted over it, moaning, weaving from side to side, and his fingers triedto draw the ugly cracks together, only to cause greater ruin. At last he stoodup, stamping his feet until all that was left was a varicolored smear on therock. Still he stamped and moaned as he destroyed the symbol of his failure. The moon mocked down at him with a wise and cynical face, and he howled at itin rage and anguish, to be answered by a lonely owl, querying his identity. A powerless God, or a Godless Adam! Things had gone so well in the film asAdam rose from the dust of the ground. . . . But the film was symbolism, and he had taken it literally! Of course he hadfailed. The pigs were not dust, but colloidal jelly complexes. And they knewmore than he, for there had been little ones that proved they could somehowpass the breath of life along. Suddenly he squared his shoulders and headed into the forest again. Adamshould yet rise to ease his loneliness. The pigs knew the secret, and he couldlearn it; what he needed now were more pigs, and they should not be too hardto obtain. But two weeks later it was a worried robot who sat watching his pigs munchcontentedly at their food. Life, instead of growing simpler, had become morecomplicated. The fluoroscope and repaired electron microscope had shown himmuch, but always something was lacking. Life seemed to begin only with life; for even the two basic cells were alive in some manner strangelydifferent from his own. Of course God-life might differ from animal-life, but ... With a shrug he dismissed his metaphysics and turned back to the laboratory, avoiding the piglets that ambled trustingly under his feet. Slowly he drew outthe last ovum from the nutrient fluid in which he kept it, placing it on aslide and under the optical microscope. Then, with a little platinum filament, he brought a few male spermatazoa toward the ovum, his fingers moving surelythrough the thousandths of an inch needed to place it. His technique had grown from failures, and now the sperm cell found andpierced the ovum. As he watched, the round single cell began to lengthen anddivide across the middle. This was going to be one of his successes! Therewere two, then four cells, and his hands made lightening, infinitesimalgestures, keeping it within the microscope field while he changed the slidefor a thin membrane, lined with thinner tubes to carry oxygen, food and tinyamounts of the stimulating and controlling hormones with which he hoped toshape its formation. Now there were eight cells, and he waited feverishly for them to put out atube toward the membrane as they did toward the pig's womb. ... But they didnot! As he watched, another division began, but stopped; the cells had diedagain. All his labor and thought had been futile, as always. He stood there silently, relinquishing all pretensions to godhood. His mind abdicated, letting the dream vanish into nothingness; and there was nothing totake its place and give him purpose and reason-only a vacuum instead of adesign. Dully he unbarred the rude cage and began chasing the grumbling, reluctantpigs out and up the tunnel, into die forest and away. It was a dull morning, with no sun apparent, and it matched his mood as the last one disappeared, leaving him doubly lonely. They had been poor companions, but they hadoccupied his time, and rite little ones had appealed to him. Now even theywere !•"*• Wearily he dropped his six hundred pounds onto the turf, staring at the blackclouds over him. An ant climbed up his body inquisitively, and he watched itwithout interest. Then it, too, was gone. "Adam!" The cry came from the woods, ringing and compelling. "Adam, comeforth!" "God!" With metal limbs that were awkward and unsteady, he jerked upright. Inthe dark hour of his greatest need, God had finally come! "God, here I am!" "Come, forth, Adam, Adam! Come forth, Adam!" With a wild cry, the robot dashed forward toward the woods, an electrictingling suffusing him. He was no longer unwanted, no longer a lost chip inthe storm. God had come for him. He stumbled, tripping over branches, crashingthrough bushes, heedless of his noise; let God know his eagerness. Again thecall came, no longer from straight ahead, and he turned a bit, lumberingforward. "Here I am, I'm coming!" God would ease his troubles and explain why he was so different from the pigs; God would know all that. And then there'd be Eve, and no more loneliness! He'dhave trouble keeping her from the Tree of Knowledge, but he wouldn't mindthat! And from still a different direction the call reached him. . . . Perhaps Godwas not pleased with his noise. The robot quieted his steps and went forwardreverently. Around him the birds sang, and now the call came again, ringingand close. He hastened on, striving to blend speed with quiet in spite of hisweight. The pause was longer this time, but when the call came it was almost overhead. He bowed lower and crept to the ancient oak from which it came, uncertain, half-afraid, but burning with anticipation. "Come forth, Adam, Adam!" The sound was directly above, but God did notmanifest Himself visibly. Slowly the robot looked up through the boughs of thetree. Only a bird was there-and from its open beak the call came forth again. "Adam, Adam!" A mockingbird he'd heard imitating the other birds now mimicking his own voiceand words! And he'd followed that through the forest, hoping to find God! He screeched suddenly atthe bird, his rage so shrill that it leaped from the branch in hasty flight, to perch in another tree and cock its head at him. "God?" it asked in hisvoice, and changed to the raucous call of a jay. The robot slumped back against the tree, refusing to let hope ebb completelyfrom him. He knew so little of God; might not He have used the bird to callhim here? At least the tree was not unlike the one under which God had putAdam to sleep before creating Eve. First sleep, then the coming of God! He stretched out determinedly, trying toimitate the pigs' torpor, fighting back his mind's silly attempts to speculateas to where his rib might be. It was slow and hard, but he persisted grimly, hypnotizing himself into mental numbness; and bit by bit, the sounds of theforest faded to only a trickle in his head. Then that, too, was stilled. He had no way of knowing how long it lasted, but suddenly he sat up groggily, to the rumble of thunder, while a torrent of lashing rain washed in blinding sheets over his eyes. For a second, he glanced quickly at his side, but therewas no scar. Fire forked downward into a nearby tree, throwing splinters of it against him. This was definitely not the way the film had gone! He groped to his feet, flinging some of the rain from his face, to stumble forward toward his cave. Again lightning struck, nearer, and he increased his pace to a driving run. The wind lashed the trees, snapping some with wild ferocity, and it took thefull power of his magnets to forge ahead at ten miles an hour instead of hisnormal fifty. Once the wind caught him unaware, and crashed him down over arock with a wild clang of metal, but it could not harm him, and he stumbled onuntil he reached the banked-up entrance of his muddy tunnel. Safe inside, he dried himself with the infra-red lamp, sitting beside the holeand studying the wild fury of the gale. Syrely its furor held no place forEden, where dew dampened the leaves in the evening under caressing, musicalbreezes! He nodded slowly, his clenched jaws relaxing. Thiscould not be Eden, and God expected him there. Whatever evil knowledge ofSatan had lured him here and stolen his memory did •not matter; all thatcounted was to return, and that should be simple, since the Garden lay amongrivers. Tonight out of the storm he'd prepare here, and tomorrow he'd followthe stream in the woods until it led him where God waited. With the faith of a child, he turned back and began tearing the thin berylitepanels from his laboratory tables and cabinets, picturing his homecoming andEve. Outside the storm raged and tore, but he no longer heard it. Tomorrow hewould start for home! The word was misty in his mind, as all the nicer wordswere, but it had a good sound, free of loneliness, and he liked it. Six hundred long endless years had dragged their slow way into eternity, andeven the tough concrete floor was pitted by those centuries of pacing and.waiting. Time had eroded all hopes and plans and wonder, and now there wasonly numb despair, too old to vent itself even in rage or madness. The female robot slumped motionlessly on the atomic excavator, her eyesstaring aimlessly across the dome, beyond the tiers of books and films and thehulking machines that squatted eternally on the floor. There a pickax lay, andher eyes rested on it listlessly; once, when the dictionary revealed itspicture and purpose, she had thought it the key to escape, but now it was onlyanother symbol of futility. She wandered over aimlessly, picking it up by its two metal handles andstriking the wooden blade against the wall; another splinter chipped from thewood, and century-old dust dropped to the floor, but that offered no escape. Nothing did. Mankind and her fellow robots must have perished long ago, leaving her neither hope for freedom nor use for it if freedom were achieved. Once she had planned and schemed with all her remarkable knowledge ofpsychology to restore man's heritage, but now the note-littered table was onlya mockery; she thrust out a weary hand- And froze into a metal statue! Faintly, through allthe metal mesh and concrete, a dim, weak signal trickled into the radio thatwas part of her! With all her straining energy, she sent out an answering call; but there wasno response. As she stood rigidly for long minutes, the signals grew stronger, but re-. mained utterly aloof and unaware of her. Now some sudden shock seemedto cut through them, raising their power until the thoughts of another robotmind were abruptly clear-thoughts without sense, clothed in madness! And evenas the lunacy registered, they began to fade; second by second, they dimmedinto the distance and left her alone again and hopeless! With a wild, clanging yell, she threw the useless pickax at the wall, watchingit rebound in echoing din. But she was no longer aimless; her eyes had notedchipped concrete breaking away with the sharp metal point, and she caught the pick before it could touch the floor, seizing the nub of wood in small, stronghands. The full force of her magnets lifted and swung, while her feet kickedaside the rubble that came cascading down from the force of her blows. Beyond that rapidly crumbling concrete lay freedom and-madness! Surely therecould be no human life hi a world that could drive a robot mad, but if therewere . . . She thrust back the picture and went savagely on attacking themassive wall. The sun shone on a drenched forest filled with havoc from the storm, to revealthe male robot pacing tirelessly along the banks of the shallow stream. Inspite of the heavy burden he carried, his legs moved swiftly now, and when hecame to sandy stretches, or clear land that bore only turf, his great strideslengthened still further; already he had dallied too long with delusions inthis unfriendly land. Now the stream joined a larger one, and he stopped, dropping his ungainlybundle and ripping it apart. Scant minujtes later, he was pushing an assembledberylite boat out and climbing in. The little generator from the electronmicroscope purred softly and a steam jet began hissing underneath; it wascrude, but efficient, as theboiling wake behind him testified, and while slower than his fastest pace, there would be no detours or impassable barriers to bother him. The hours sped by and the shadows lengthened again, but now the stream waswider, and his hopes increased, though he watched the banks idly, not yetexpecting Eden. Then he rounded a bend to jerk upright and head toward shore, observing something totally foreign to the landscape. As he beached the boat, and drew nearer, he saw a great gaping hole bored into the earth for a hundredfeet in depth and a quarter-mile in diameter, surrounded by obviouslyartificial ruins. Tall bent shafts stuck up haphazardly amid jumbles ofconcrete and bits of artifacts damaged beyond recognition. Nearby a poleleaned at a silly angle, bearing a sign. He scratched the corrosion off and made out dim words: WELCOME TO HOGANVILLE. POP. 1,876. It meant nothing to him, but the ruins fascinated him. This mustbe some old trick of Satan; such ugliness could be nothing else. Shaking his head, he turned back to the boat, to speed on while the stars cameout. Again he came to ruins, larger and harder to see, since the damage wasmore complete and the forest had claimed most of it. He was only sure becauseof the jagged pits in which not even a blade of grass would grow. Andsometimes as the night passed there were smaller pits, as if some singleobject had been blasted out of existence. He gave up the riddle of suchthings, finally; it was no concern of his. When morning came again, the worst rums were behind, and the river was wideand strong, suggesting that the trip must be near its end. Then the faintsalty tang of the ocean reached him, and he whooped loudly, scanning thecountry for an observation point. Ahead, a low hill broke the flat country, topped by a rounded bowl of green, and he made toward it. The boat crunched on gravel, and he was springing offover the turf to the hill, up it, and onto the bowl-shaped top that wascovered with vines. Here the whole lower course of the river was visible, withno more largebranches in the twenty-five miles to the sea. The land was pleasant andgentle, and it was not hard to imagine Eden out there. But now for the first time, as he started down, he noticed that the mound wasnot part of the hill as it had seemed. It was of the same gray-green concreteas the walls of the cave from which he had escaped, like a bird from an egg. And here was another such thing, like an egg un-hatched but already cracking, as the gouged-out pit on its surface near him testified. For a moment, theidea contained in the figure of speech staggered him, and then he was rippingaway the concealing vines and dropping into the hole, reaching for a small plate pinned to an unharmed section nearby. It was a poor tool, but if Evewere trapped inside, needing help to break the shell, it would do. "To you who may survive the holocaust, I, Simon Ames-" The words caught hiseyes, drawing his attention to the plate in spite of his will, their tersestrangeness pulling his gaze across them. "-dedicate this. There is no easyentrance, but you will expect no easy heritage. Force your way, take what iswithin, use it! To you who need it and will work for it, I have left allknowledge that was. ..." Knowledge, Knowledge, forbidden by God! Satan had put before his path theunquestioned thing meant by the Tree of Knowledge symbol, concealed as a falseegg, and he had almost been caught! A few minutes more-! He shuddered, andbacked out, but optimism was freshening inside him again. Let it be the Tree! That meant this was really part of Eden, and being forewarned by God's marker, he had no fear for the wiles of Satan, alive or dead. With long, loping strides he headed down the hill toward the meadows andwoods, leaving the now useless boat behind. He would enter Eden on his ownfeet, as God had made him! Half an hour later he was humming happily to himself as he passed beside lushfields, rich with growingthings, along a little woodland path. Here was order and logic, as they shouldbe. This was surely Eden! And to confirm it catae Eve! She was coming down the trail ahead, her hairfloating behind, and some loose stuff draped over her hips and breasts, butthe form underneath was Woman, beautiful and unmistakable. He drew back out ofsight, suddenly timid and uncertain, only vaguely wondering how she came herebefore him. Then she was beside him, and he moved impulsively, his voice awhisper of ecstasy! "Eve!" "Oh, God! Dan! Dan!" It was a wild shriek that cut the air, and she wasrushing away in panic, into the deeper woods. He shook his head inbewilderment, while his own legs began a more forceful pumping after her. Hewas almost upon her when he saw the serpent, alive and stronger than before! But not for long! As a single gasp broke from her, one of his arms lifted heraside, while the other snapped out to pinch the fanged head completely off thebody. His voice was gently reproving as he put her down. "You shouldn't havefled to the serpent, Eve!" "To-ugh! But . . . you could have killed me before it struck!" The tautwhiteness of fear was fading from her face, replaced by defiance and doubt. "Killed you?" "You're a robot! Dan!" Her words cut off as a brawny figure emerged from theunderbrush, an ax in one hand and a magnificent dog at his heels. "Dan, hesaved me ... but he's a robot!" "I saw, Syl. Steady! Edge this way, if you can. Good! They sometimes getpassive streaks, I've heard. Shep!" "Yeah, Dan?" The dog's thick growl answered, but his eyes remained glued tothe robot. "Get the people; just yell 'robot' and hike back. Okay, scram! You-what do youwant?" SA-10 grunted harshly, hunching his shoulders. "Things that don't exist! Companionship and a chance to use my strength and the science I know. MaybeI'm not supposed to have such things, but that's what I wanted!" "Mmm. There are fairy stories about friendly robots hidden somewhere to helpus, at that. . . . We could use help. What's your name, and where from?" Bitterness crept into the robot's voice as he pointed up river. "From thesunward side. So far, I've only found who I'm not!" "So? Meant to get up there myself when the colony got settled." Dan paused, eying the metal figure specu-latively. "We lost our books in the hell-yearsmostly, and the survivors weren't exactly technicians. So while we do allright with animals, agriculture, medicine and such, we're pretty primitiveotherwise. If you really do know the sciences, why not stick around?" The robot had seen too many hopes shattered like his clay man to believewholly in this promise of purpose and companionship, but his voice caught ashe answered. "You-want me?" "Why not? You're a storehouse of knowledge, Say-Ten, and we-" "Satan?" "Your name-there on your chest." Dan pointed with his left hand, his bodysuddenly tense. "See? Right there!" And now, as SA-10 craned his neck, the foul letters were visible, high on hischest! Ess, aye- His first warning was the ax that crashed against his chest, to rock him backon his heels, and come driving down again, powered by muscles that seemedalmost equal to his own. It struck again, and something snapped inside him. All the strength vanished, and he collapsed to the ground with a jarringcrash, knocking his eyelids closed. Then he lay there, unable even to openthem. He did not try, but lay waiting almost eagerly for the final blows that wouldfinish him. Satan, the storehouse of knowledge, the tempter of men-the oneperson he had learned to hate! He'd come all this way to find a name and apurpose; now he had them! No wonderGod had locked him away in a cave to keep him from men. "Dead! That little fairy story threw him off guard." There was a tense chucklefrom the man. "Hope his generator's still okay. We could heat every house inthe settlement with that. Mmm . . . wonder where his hideout was?" "Like the one up north with all the weapons hidden? Oh, Dan!" A strangesmacking sound accompanied that, and then her voice sobered. "We'd better getback for help in hauling him." Their feet moved away, leaving the robot still motionless but no longerpassive. The Tree of Knowledge, so easily seen without the vine covering overthe hole, was barely twenty miles away, and no casual search could miss it! Hehad to destroy it first! But the little battery barely could maintain his consciousness, and thegenerator ho longer served him. Delicate detectors were sending their messagesthrough his nerves, assuring him it was functioning properly under automaticcheck, but beyond his control. Part of the senseless signaling device withinhim must have been defective, unless the baking of the clay man had somehowoverloaded a part of it, and now it was completely wrecked, shorting aside allthe generator control impulses, leaving him unable to move a finger. Even when he blanked his mind almost completely out, the battery could notpower his hands. His evil work was done; now he would heat their houses, whilethey sought the temptation he had offered them. And he could do nothing tostop it. God denied him the chance even to right the wrong he had done. Bitterly he prayed on, while strange noises sounded near him and he felthimself lifted and carried bumpily at a rapid rate. God would not hear him! And at last he stopped, while the bumping went on to whatever end he wasdestined. Finally, even that stopped, and there were a few moments of absolutequiet. "Listen! I know you still live!" It was a gentle, soothing voice, hypnoticallycompelling, that broke in on the dark swirls of his thoughts. Brief thoughtsof God crossed his mind, but it was a female voice, which must mean that one of thesettlement women believed him and was trying to save him in secret. It cameagain. "Listen and believe me! You can move-a very very little, but enough forme to see. Try to repair yourself, and let me be the strength in your hands. Try! . . . Ah, your arm!" It was inconceivable that she could follow his imperceptible movements, andyet he felt his arm lifted and placed on his chest as the thought crossed hismind. But it was none of his business to question how or why. All his energymust be devoted to mustering his strength before the men could find the Tree! "So-I turn this-this nut. And the other . . . There, the plate is off. What doI do now?" That stopped him. His life force had been fatal to a pig, and probably wouldkill a woman. Yet she trusted him. He dared not move-but the idea must have been father to the act, for his fingers were brushed aside and her armsscraped over his chest, to be followed by an instant flood of strength pouringthrough him. Her fingers had slipped over his eyes, but he did not need them as he rippedthe damaged receiver from its welds and tossed it aside. Now there was worryin her voice, over the crooning cadence she tried to maintain. "Don't be toosurprised at what you may see. Everything's all right!" "Everything's all right!" he repeated dutifully, lingering over the words ashis voice sounded again in his ears. For a moment more, while he reaffixed hisplate, he let her hold his eyes closed. "Woman, who are you?" "Eve. Or at least, Adam, those names will do for us." And the fingerswithdrew, though she remained out of sight behind him. But there was enough for him to see. In spite of the tiers of bookcases andfilm magazines, the machines, and the size of the laboratory, this was plainlythe double of his own cave, circled with the same concrete walls! That couldonly mean the Tree! With a savage lurch, he was facing his rescuer, seeing another robot, smaller, more graceful, and female inform, calling to all the hunger and loneliness he had known! But thoseemotions had betrayed him before, and he forced them back bitterly. Therecould be no doubt while the damning letters spelled out her name. Satan wasmale and female, and Evil had gone forth to rescue its kind! Some of the warring hell of emotions must have shown in his movements, for shewas retreating before him, her hands fumbling to cover the marks at which hestared. "Adam, no! The man read it wrong-dreadfully wrong. It's not a name. We're machines, and all machines have model numbers, like these. Satanwouldn't advertise his name. And I never had evil intentions!" "Neither did I!" He bit the words out, stumbling over the objects on the flooras he edged her back slowly into a blind alley, while striving to master hisown rebellious emotions at what he must do. "Evil must be destroyed! Knowledgeis forbidden to men!" "Not all knowledge! Wait, let me finish! Any condemned person has a right to afew last words. ... It was the Tree of Knowledge of Good and Evil. God calledit that! And He had to forbid them to eat, because they couldn't know whichwas the good. Don't you see, He was only protecting them until they were olderand able to choose for themselves! Only Satan gave them evil fruit-hate andmurder-to ruin them. Would you call healing the sick, good government, orimproving other animals evil? That's knowledge, Adam, glorious knowledge Godwants man to have. . . . Oh, damn it, can't you see?" For a second as she read his answer, she turned to flee; then, with a littlesobbing cry, she was facing him again, unresisting. "All right, murder me! Doyou think death frightens me after being imprisoned here for six hundred yearswith no way to break free? Only get it over with!" Surprise and the sheer audacity of the lie held his hands as his eyes dartedfrom the atomic excavator to a huge drill, and a drum marked as explosives. And yet- even that cursory glance could not overlook the worn floor andthousand marks of age-long occupation, though the surface of the dome had been unbroken a few hours before. Reluctantly, his eyes swung back to the excavator, and hers followed. "Useless! The directions printed on it say to move the thing marked 'OrificeControl' to zero before starting. It can't be moved!" She stopped, abruptly speechless, as his fingers lifted the handle from theratchet and spun it easily back to zero! Then she was shaking her head indefeat and lifting listless hands to help him with the unfastening of herchest plate. There was no color left in her voice. "Six hundred years because I didn't lift a handle! Just because I haveabsolutely no conception of mechanics, while all men have some instinct forit, which they take for granted. They'd have mastered these machines hi timeand learned to read meaning into the books I memorized without evenunderstanding the titles. But I'm like a dog tearing at a door, with a simplelatch over his nose. . . . Well, that's that. Good-by, Adam!" But perversely, now that the terminals lay before him, he hesitated. Afterall, the instructions had not mentioned the ratchet; it was too obvious toneed mention, but ... He tried to picture such ignorance, staring at one ofthe elementary radio books above him, "Application of a Cavity Resonator." Mentally, he could realize that a nonscience translation was meaningless : Useof a sound producer or strengthener in a hole! And then the overlooked factorstruck him. "But you did get out!" "Because I lost my temper and threw the pickax. That's how I found the blade, not the handle, was metal. The only machines I could use were the projectorand typer I was meant to use-and the typer broke!" "Umm." He picked up the little machine, noting the yellowed incomplete pagestill hi it, even as he slipped the carriage tension cord back on its hook. But his real attention was devoted to the cement dust ground into thesplintered handle of the pick. No man or robot could be such a complete and hopeless dope, and yet he no longer doubted. She was a robot moron! And ifknowledge were evil, then surely she belonged to God! All the horror of hiscontemplated murder vanished, leaving his mind clean and weak before therelief that flooded him as he motioned her out. "All right, you're not evil. You can go." "And you?" And himself? Before, as Satan, her arguments would have been plausible, and hehad discounted them. But now-it had been the Tree of Knowledge of Good andEvil! And yet ... "Dogs!" She caught at him, dragging him to the entrance where the baying soundwas louder. "They're hunting you, Adam-^dozens of them!" He nodded, studying the distant forms of men on horseback, while his fingersbusied themselves with a pencil and scrap of paper. "And they'll be here hitwenty minutes. Good or evil, they must not find what's here. Eve, there's aboat by the river; pull the red handle the way you want to go, hard for fast, a light pull for slow. Here's a map to my cave, and you'll be safe there." Almost instantly, he was back at the excavator and in its saddle, his fingersflashing across its panel; its heavy generator bellowed gustily, and thesquat, heavy machine began twisting through the narrow aisles and rammingobstructions aside. Once outside, where he could use its full force withoutdanger of backwash, ten minutes would leave only a barren hill; and thegenerator could be overdriven by adjustment to melt itself and the machineinto useless slag. "Adam!" She was spraddling into the saddle behind him, shouting over the roarof the thin blade of energy that was enlarging the tunnel. "Go on, get away, Eve! You can't stop me!" "I don't want to-they're not ready for such machines as this, yet! And betweenus, we can rebuild everything here, anyhow. Adam?" He grunted uneasily, unable to turn away from the needle beam. It was hardenough trying to think without her distraction, knowing that he dared not takechances and must destroy himself, while her words and the instincts within him foughtagainst his resolution. "You talk too much!" "And I'll talk a lot more, until you behave sensibly! You'll make your mindsick, trying to decide now; come up the river for six months with me. Youcan't do any harm there, even if you are Satan! Then, when you've thought itover, Adam, you can do what you like. But not now!" ' "For the last time, will you go?" He dared not think now, while he was testinghis way through the flawed, cracked cement, and yet he could not quiet hismind to her words that went on and on. "Go!" "Not without you! Adam, my receiver isn't defective; I knew you'd try to killme when I rescued you! Do you think I'll give up so easily now?" He snapped the power to silence with a rude hand, flinging around to face her. "You knew-and still saved me? Why?" "Because I needed you, and the world needs you. You had to live, even if youkilled me!" Then the generator roared again, knifing its way through the last few inches, and he swung out of the dome and began turning it about. As the savage bellowof full power poured out of the main orifice, he turned his head to her andnodded. She might be the dumbest robot in creation, but she was also the sweetest. Itwas wonderful to be needed and wanted! And behind him, Eve nodded to herself, blessing Simon Ames for listingpsychology as a humanity. In six months, she could complete his reeducationand still have time to recite the whole of the Book he knew as a snatch of film. But not yet! Most certainly not Leviticus yet; Genesis would give hertrouble enough. It was wonderful to be needed and wanted! Spring had come again, and Adam sat under one of the budding trees, idlyfeeding one of the new crop of piglets as Eve's hands moved swiftly, finishingwhat were to be his clothes, carefully copied from those of Dan. They were almost ready to go south and mingle with men in the task of leadingthe race back to its heritage. Already the yielding plastic he had synthesizedand she had molded over them was a normal part of them, and the tiny magneticmuscles he had installed no longer needed thought to reveal their emotions inhuman expressions. He might have been only an uncommonly handsome man as hestood up and went over to her. "Still hunting God?" she asked lightly, but there was no worry on her face. The metaphysical binge was long since cured. A thoughtful smile grew on his face as he began donning the clothes. "He isstill where I found Him- Something inside us that needs no hunting. No, Eve, Iwas wishing the other robot had survived. Even though we found no trace of hisdome where your records indicated, I still feel he should be with us." "Perhaps he is, in spirit, since you insist robots have souls. Where's yourfaith, Adam?" But there was no mockery inside her. Souls or not, Adam's God had been verygood to them. And far to the south, an aged figure limped over rubble to the face of acliff. Under his hands, a cleverly concealed door swung open, and he pushedinward, closing and barring it behind him, and heading down the narrow tunnelto a rounded cavern at its end. It had been years since he had been there, butthe place was still home to him as he creaked down onto a bench and beganremoving tattered, travel-stained clothes. Last of all, he pulled a mask andgray wig from his head, to* reveal the dented and worn body of the third robot. He sighed wearily as he glanced at the few tattered books and papers he hadsalvaged from the ruinous growth of stalagmites and stalactites within thechamber, and at the corroded switch the unplanned dampness had shorted sevenhundred years before. And finally, his gaze rested on his greatest treasure. It was faded, even underthe plastic cover, but the bitter face of Simon Ames still gazed out inrecognizable form. The third robot nodded toward it with a strange mixture of old familiarity andever-new awe. "Over two thousand miles in my condition, Simon Ames, to checkon a story I heard in one of the colonies, and months of searching for them. But I had to know. Well, they're good for the world. They'll bring all thethings .1 couldn't, and their thoughts are young and strong, as the race isyoung and strong." For a moment, he stared about the chamber and to the tunnel his adaptedbacteria had eaten toward the outside world, resting again on the picture. Then he cut off the main generator and settled down in the darkness. "Seven hundred years since I came out to find man extinct on the earth," hetold the picture. "Four hundred since I learned enough to dare attempt hisrecreation, and over three hundred since the last of my su-perfrozen human ovagrew to success. Now I've done my part. Man has an unbroken tradition back toyour race, with no knowledge of the break. He's strong and young and fruitful, and he has new leaders, better than I could ever be alone. I can do no morefor him!" For a moment there was only the sound of his hands sliding against metal, andthen a faint sigh. "Into my hands, Simon Ames, you gave your race. Now, intoThy Hands, God of that race, if You exist as my brother believes, I commendhim-and my spirit." Then there was a click as his hands found the switch to his generator, andfinal silence. And It Comes Out Here No, YOU'RE WRONG. I'm not your father's ghost, even if I do look a bit likehim. But it's a longish story, and you might as well let me in. You will, youknow, so why quibble about it? At least, you always have ... or do ... orwill. I don't know, words get all mixed up. We don't have the right attitudetoward tense for a situation like this. Anyhow, you'll let me in. I did. Thanks. You think you're crazy, of course, but you'll find out you aren't. It's just that things are a bit confused. And don't look at the machine outthere too long-until you get used to it, you'll find it's hard on the eyes, trying to follow where the vanes go. You'll get used to it, of course, but itwill take about thirty years. You're wondering whether to give me a drink, as I remember it. Why not? Andnaturally, since we have the same tastes, you can make the same for me asyou're having. Of course we have the same tastes- we're the same person. I'myou thirty years from now- or you're me. I remember just how you feel-I feltthe same way when he came back to tell me about it, thirty years ago. Here, have one of these cigarettes. You'll get to like them in a couple moreyears. And you can look at the revenue stamp date, if you still doubt mystory. You'll believe it eventually, though, so it doesn't matter. .Right now, you're shocked-it's a bit rugged when a man meets himself for thefirst time. Some kind of telepathy seems to work between two of the samepeople-you sense things. So I'll simply go ahead talking for half an hour orso, until you get over it. After that, you'll come along with me. You know, Icould try to change things around by telling what happened to me; but he toldme what I was going to do, so I might as well do the same. I probably couldn'thelp telling you the same thing in the same words, even if I tried-and I don't intend to try. I've gotten past that stage in worrying about things. So let's begin when you get up in half an hour and come out with me. You'lltake a closer look at the machine, then. Yeah, it'll be pretty obvious it mustbe a time machine-you'll sense that, too. You've seen it- just a small littlecage with two seats, a luggage compartment, and a few buttons on a dash. You'll be puzzling over what I'll fell you, and you'll be getting used to theidea that you are the guy who makes atomic power practical. Jerome Boell, justplain engineer, the man who put atomic power in every home. You won't exactlybelieve it, but you'll want to go along. I'll be tired of talking by then, and in a hurry to get going. So I cut offyour questions, and get you inside. I snap on a green button, and everythingseems to cut off around us-you can see a sort of foggy nothing surrounding thecockpit; it is probably the field that prevents passage through time fromaffecting us. The luggage section isn't protected, though. You start to say something, but by then I'm pressing a black button, andeverything outside will disappear. You look for your house, but it isn'tthere. There is exactly nothing there-in fact, there is no there. You arecompletely outside of time and space, as best you can guess how things are. You can't feel any motion, of course. You try to reach a hand out through thefield into the nothing around you-and your hand goes out, all right, butnothing happens. Where the screen ends, your hand just turns over and pokesback at you. Doesn't hurt, andwhen you pull your arm back, you're still sound and uninjured. But it looksodd, and you don't try it again. Then it comes to you slowly that you're actually traveling in time. You turnto me, getting used to the idea. "So this is the fourth dimension?" Then you feel silly, because you'll remember that I said you'd ask that. Well, I asked it after I was told, then I came back and told it to you, and I stillcan't help answering when you speak. "Not exactly," I try to explain. "Maybe it's no dimension-or it might be thefifth; if you're going to skip over the so-called fourth without travelingalong it, you'd need a fifth. Don't ask me. I didn't invent the machine, and Idon't understand it." "But . . ." I let it go, apd so do you. That's a good way of going crazy. You'll see why Icouldn't have invented the machine later. Of course, there may have been astart for all this once. There may have been a time when you did invent themachine-the atomic motor first, then the time machine. And when you closed theloop by going back and saving yourself the trouble, it got all tangled up. Ifigured out once that such a universe would need some seven or eight time andspace dimensions. It's simpler just to figure that this is the way time gotkinked on itself. Maybe there is no machine, and it's just easier for us toimagine it. When you spend thirty years thinking about it, as I did-and youwill-you get further and further from an answer. Anyhow, you sit there, watching nothing all around you-and no time, apparently, though there is a time effect back in the luggage space. You lookat your watch, and it's still running. That means you either carry a smalltime field with you, or you are catching a small increment of time from themain field. I don't know, and you won't think about that then, either. I'm smoking, and so are you, and the air in the machine is getting a bitstale. You suddenly realize that everything in the machine was wide open, yetyou haven't seen any effects of air loss. "Where are we getting our air?" you ask. "Or why don't we lose it?" "No place for it to go," I explain. There isn't-out there is neither time norspace, apparently. How could the air leak out? You still feel gravity, but Ican't explain that, either. Maybe the machine has a gravity field built in-ormaybe the time that makes your watch run is responsible for gravity. In spite of Einstein, you have always had the idea that time is an effect of gravity, and I sort of agree, still. Then the machine stops-at least, the field around us cuts off. You feel adankish sort of air replace the stale air, and you breathe easier, thoughwe're in complete darkness, except for the weak light in the machine, whichalways burns, and a few feet of rough dirty cement floor around. You takeanother cigarette from me and you get out of the machine, just as I do. I've got a bundle of clothes, and I start changing. It's a sort of simple, short-limbed, one-piece affair I put on, but it looks comfortable. "I'm staying here," I tell you. "This is like the things they wear in thiscentury, as near as I can remember it, and I should be able to pass fairlywell. I've had all my fortune-the one you make on that atomic generator- invested in such a way I can get it on using some identification I've got withme, so I'll do all right. I know they still use some kind of money-you'll seeevidence of that. And it's a pretty easy-going civilization, from what I couldsee. We'll go up, and I'll leave you. I like the looks of things here, and Iwon't be coming back with you." You nod, remembering I've told you about it. "What century is this, anyway?" I'd told you that, too, but you've forgotten. "As near as I can guess, it'sabout 2150. He told me, just as I'm telling you, that it's an interstellarcivilization." You take another cigarette from me, and follow me. Fve ^ot a small flashlight, and we grope through a pile of rubbish, and out into a corridor. This is asub-sub-subbasement. We have to walk up a flight of stairs, andthere is an elevator waiting, fortunately with the door open. c"What about the time machine?" you ask. "Since nobody ever stole it, it's safe." We get in the elevator, and I say "first" to it. It gives out a coughingnoise, and the basement openings begin to click by us. There's no feeling ofacceleration-some kind of false gravity they use in the future. Then the dooropens, and the elevator says "first" back at us. It's obviously a service elevator, and we're in a dim corridor, with nobodyaround. I grab your hand and shake it. "You go that way. Don't worry aboutgetting lost; you never did, so you can't. Find the museum, grab the motor, and get out. And good luck to you." You act as if you're dreaming, though you can't believe it's a dream. You nodat me, and I move out into the main corridor. A second later, you see me goingby, mixed into a crowd that is loafing along toward a restaurant, or somethinglike it, that is just opening. I'm asking questions of a man, who points, andI turn and move off. You come out of the side corridor, and go down a hall, away from therestaurant. There are quiet little signs along the hall. You look at them, realizing that things have changed. STEIJ:NERI, FAUNTEN, Z:RGOT DISPENSERI. The signsare very quiet and dignified. Some of them can be decoded to stationery shops, fountains, and the like. What a zergot is, you don't know. You stop at a signthat announces: TRAV:L BIWROU-F:RST-CLAS TWRZMARZ AND X: TROUDJ:N PLANETS. SPEJ:L REITS TU AOL S:NZ WTXIN 60 LYT IIRZ! But there is only a single picture of a dull-lookingmetal sphere, with passengers moving up a ramp, and the office is closed. Youbegin to get the hang of the spelling they use, though. Now there are people around you, but nobody pays much attention to you. Whyshould they? You wouldn't care if you saw a man in a leopard-skin suit-you'dfigure it was some part in a play, and let it go. Well, people don't changemuch. You get up your courage and go up to a boy selling something that might be papers on tapes. "Where can I find the Museum ofScience?" Downayer rien turn lefa the sign. Stoo bloss," he tells you. Around you, youhear some pretty normal English, but there are others using stuff as garbledas his. You go right until you find a big sign built into the rubbery surfaceof the walk: MIUZI:M :v SYENS. There's an arrow pointing, and you turn left. Ahead of you, two blocks 'on, you can see a pink building, with faint aquatrimming, bigger than most of the others. They are building lower than theyused to, apparently. Twenty floors up seems about the maximum. You head forit, and find the sidewalk is marked with the information that it is the museum. You go up the steps, but you see that it seems to be closed. You hesitate fora moment, then. You're beginning to think the whole affair is a bunch ofnonsense, and you should get back to the tune machine and go home. But then aguard comes to the gate-except for the short legs in his suit, and the grin onhis face, he looks like any other guard. What's more, he speaks pretty clearly. Everyone says things in a sort ofdrawl, with softer vowels, and slurred consonants, but it's rather pleasant. "Help you, sir? Oh, of course. You must be playing in 'Atoms and Axioms.' Themuseum's closed, but I'll be glad to let you study whatever you need for colorin your role. Nice show. I saw it twice." "Thanks," you mutter, wondering what kind of a civilization can produce guardsas polite as that. "I-I'm told I should investigate your display of atomicgenerators." He beams at that. "Of course." The gate is swung to behind you, but obviouslyhe isn't locking it-in fact, there doesn't seem to be a lock. "Must be a newpart. You go down that corridor, up one flight of stairs, and left. Finestdisplay in the worlds. We've got the original of the first thirteen models. Profesor Jonas was using them to check his latest theory of how they work. Toobad he couldn't explain the principle, either. Someone will, some day, though. Lord, the genius of that twentieth century inventor! It's quite a hobby with me, sir. I've read everythingI could get on the period. Oh- congratulations on your pronunciation. Soundsjust like some of our oldest tapes." You get away from him, finally, after some polite thanks. The building seemsdeserted, and you wander up the stairs. There's a room on your right filledwith something that proclaims itself the first truly plastic diamond former, and you go up to it. As you come near, it goes through a crazy wiggle inside, stops turning out a continual row of what seem to be bearings, and slips ahunk of something about the size of a penny toward you. "Souvenir," itannounces in a well-modulated voice. "This is a typical gemstone of thetwentieth century, properly cut to fifty-eight facets, known technically as aJaegger diamond, and approximately twenty carats in size. You can have it madeinto a ring on the third floor during morning hours for one-tenth credit. Ifyou have more than one child, press the red button for the number of stonesyou desire." You put it in your pocket, gulping a little, and get back to the corridor. Youturn left, and go past a big room in which models of space ships-from theoriginal thing that looks like a V-2, and is labeled first lunar rocket, to aten-foot globe, complete with miniature manikins-are sailing about in somekind of orbits. Then there is one labeled WEP:NZ, filled with everything froma crossbow to a tiny little rod four niches long and half the size of apencil, marked FYN:L HAND-ARM. Beyond is the end of the corridor, and a bigplace that bears a sign, MOD:LZ :v ATOMIC PAU:R SORSEZ. By that tune, you're almost convinced. And you've been doing a lot of thinkingabout what you can do. The story I'm telling has been sinking in, but youaren't completely willing to accept it. You notice that the models are all mounted on tables, and that they're a lotsmaller than you thought. They seem to be in chronological order, and thelatest one, marked 2147-RINGS DYN:POT, is about the size of a desk telephone. The earlier ones are larger, of course, but with variations, probablydepending on the poweroutput. A big sign on the ceiling gives a lot of dope on atomic generators, explaining that this is the first invention which sprang full blown intobasically final form. You study it, but it mentions casually the inventor, without giving his name- either they don't know it, or they take it for granted that everyone does, which seems more probable. They call attention to the fact that they have theoriginal model of the first atomic generator built, complete with designdrawings, original manuscript on operation, and full patent application. Theystate that it has all major refinements, operating on any fuel, producingelectricity at any desired voltage up to five million, any chosen cyclic ratefrom direct current to one thousand megacycles, and any amperage up to onethousand, its maximum power output being fifty kilowatts, limited by thecurrent-carrying capacity of the outputs. They also mention that the operatingprinciple is still being investigated, and that only such refinements asbetter alloys and the addition of magnetric and nucleatric current outletshave been added since the original. So you go to the end and look over the thing. It's simply a square box with ahuge plug on each side, and a set of vernier controls on top, plus a littlehole marked in old-style spelling, DROP BB'S OR WIRE HERE. Apparently that'sthe way it's fueled. It's about one foot on a side. "Nice," the guard says over your shoulder. "It finally wore out one of thecathogrids, and we had to replace that, but otherwise it's exactly as thegreat inventor made it. And it still operates as well as ever. Like to have metell you about it?" "Not particularly," you begin, and then realize bad manners seem to be out uphere. While you're searching for an answer, the guard pulls something out ofhis pocket and stares at it. "Fine, fine. The mayor of Altasecarba-Centaurian, you know-is arriving, butI'll be back in about ten minutes. He wants to examine some of the weapons fora monograph on Centaurian primitives compared to nineteenth-century man. You'll pardpn me?" You pardon him all over the place, and he wanders off happily. You go up,, tothe head of the line, to that Rinks Dynapot, or whatever it transliterates to. That's small, and you can carry it. But the darned thing is absolutely fixed. You can't see any bolts, but you can't budge it, either. You work down the line-it'd be foolish to take the early model if you can getone with built-in magnetic current terminals-Ehrenhaft or some otherprinciple?-and nuclear binding-force energy terminals. But they're all helddown by the same whatchamaycallem effect. And finally, you're right back beside the original first model. It's probablybolted down, too-but you try it tentatively, and you find it moves. There's alittle sign under it, indicating you shouldn't touch it, since the gravostaticplate is being renewed. Well, you won't be able to change the time cycle by doing anything I haven'ttold you, but a working model such as that is a handy thing. You lift it-andit weighs about fifty pounds! But it can be carried. You expect a warning bell, but nothing happens. As a matter of fact, if you'dstop drinking so much of that Scotch and staring at the tune machine out therenow, you'd hear what I'm saying, and know what will happen to you. But ofcourse, just as I did, you're going to miss a lot of what I say from now on, and have to find out for yourself. But maybe some of it helps-I've tried toremember how much I remembered, after he told me, but I can't be sure. So I'll keep on talking. I probably can't help it, anyhow. Well, you stagger down the corridor, looking for the guard, but all seemsclear. Then you hear his voice from the weapons room. You bend down and try toscurry past, but you know you're in full view. Nothing happens, though. You stumble down the stairs, feeling all the futuristic rays in the world onyour back, and still nothing happens. Ahead of you, the gate is closed. Youreach it, and it opens obligingly by itself. You breathe a quick sigh ofrelief, and start out onto the street. Then there's a yell behind you. You don't wait. You put one leg in front ofthe other, and you begin moving down the walk, ducking past people, who stareat you with expressions you haven't time to see. There's another yell behindyou. Something goes over your head and drops on the sidewalk just in front of yourfeet, with a sudden ringing sound. You don't wait to find out about that, either. Somebody reaches out a hand to catch you, and you dart past. The street is pretty clear now, and you jolt along, with your arms seeming tocome out of the sockets, and that atomic generator getting heavier at everystep. Out of nowhere, something in a blue uniform about six feet tall and on thebeefy side appears-and the star hasn't changed any. The cop catches your arm, and you know you're not going to get away. So you stop. "You can't exert yourself that hard in this heat, fellow," the cop says. "There are laws against that, without a yellow sticker. Here, let me grab youa taxi." Reaction sets in a bit, and your knees begin to buckle, but you shake yourhead, and come up for air. "I-I left my money home," you begin. The cop nods. "Oh, that explains it. Fine, I won't have to give you anappearance schedule. But you should have come to me." He reaches out and tapsa pedestrian lightly on the shoulder. "Sir, emergency request. Would you helpthis gentleman?" The pedestrian grins, looks at his watch, and nods. "How far?" You did notice the name of the building from which you came, and you mutterit. The stranger nods again, reaches out, and picks up the other side of thegenerator, blowing a little whistle the cop hands him. Pedestrians begin tomove aside, and you and the stranger jog down the street at a trot, with anice clear path, while the cop stands beaming at you both. That way, it isn't so bad. And you begin to see why I decided I might like tostay up here in the future. But all the same, the organized cooperation heredoesn't look too good. The guard .can get the same, and be there before you. And he is. He stands just inside the door of the building as you reach it. Thestranger lifts an eyebrow, and goes off at once when you nod at him, notwaiting for thanks. And the guard comes up, holding some dinkus in his hand, about the size of a big folding camera, and not too dissimilar in other ways. He snaps it open, and you get set to duck. "You forget the prints, monograph, and patent applications," he says. "They gowith the generator-we don't like to have them separated. A good thing I knewthe production offices of 'Atoms and Axioms' were in this building. Just letus know when you're finished with the model, and we'll pick it up. What's itfor-repro for a new skit hi a hurry?" You swallow several sets of tonsils you had removed years before, and take thebundle of papers he hands you out of the little case. He pumps you for somemore information, which you give him at random. But it seems to satisfy youramiable guard friend. He finally smiles in satisfaction, and heads back to themuseum. You still don't believe it, but you pick up the atomic generator and the information sheets, and you head down toward the service elevator. There is nobutton on it. In fact, there's no door there. You start looking for other doors or corridors, but you know this is right-thesigns along the halls are the same as they were. Then there's a sort of cough, and something dilates in the wall. It forms aperfect door, and the elevator stands there waiting. You get in, gulping outsomething about going all the way down, and then wondering how a machinegeared for voice operation can make anything of that.- What the deuce wouldthat lowest basement be called? But the elevator has closed, and is movingdownward in a hurry. It coughs again, and you're at the original level. Youget out-and realize you don't have a light. You'll never know what you stumbled over, but somehow, you move back in thedirection of the time machine, bumping against boxes, staggering here and there, and trying to findthe right place by sheer feel. Then a shred of dim light appears-it's the weaklight in the time machine, and you've located it. You put the atomic generator in the luggage space, throw the papers downbeside it, and climb into the cockpit, sweating and mumbling. You reachforward toward the green button, and hesitate-but there's a' red one besideit, and you finally decide on that. Suddenly, there's a confused yell from the direction of the elevator, and abeam of light strikes against your eyes, with a shout punctuating it. Yourfinger touches the red button. You'll never know what the shouting was about- whether they finally doped outthe fact they'd been robbed, or whether they were trying to help you. Youdon't care then. The field springs up around you, and the next button youtouch-the one on the board that hasn't been used so far-sends you off into thenothingness. There is no beam of light, you can't hear a thing, and you'resafe. It isn't much of a trip back. You sit there smoking and letting your nervessettle back to normal. You notice a third set of buttons, with some pencilmarks over them-PRESS-THESE TO RETURN TO YOURSELF THIRTY YEARS-and you begin waiting for the air to get stale. It doesn't because thereis only one of you this time. Instead, everything flashes off, and you're sitting in the machine in your ownback yard. You'll figure out the cycle in more details later. You get into the machine hifront of your house, go to the future in the subbasement, land in yourbackyard, and then hop back thirty years to pick up yourself, landing hi frontof your house. Just that. But right then, you don't care. You jump out andstart pulling out that atomic generator and taking it inside. It isn't hard to disassemble-but you don't learn a thing; just some plates ofmetal, some spiral coils, and a few odds and ends-all things that can be madeeasily enough, all obviously of common metals. But when you put it togetheragain, about an hour later, you noticesomething-everything in it is brand new, and there's one set of copper wires"missing! It won't work. You put some #12 house wire in, exactly like the seton the other side, drop in some iron filings, and try it again. And with the controls set at 120 volts, 60 cycles, and 15 amperes, you getjust that. You don't need the power company any more. And you feel a littlehappier when you realize that the luggage space wasn't insulated from timeeffects by a field, so the motor has moved backward in time, somehow, and isback to its original youth-minus the replaced wires the guard mentioned-whichprobably wore out because of the makeshift job you've just done. But you begin getting more of a jolt when you find that the papers are all inyour own writing, that your name is down as the inventor, and that the date of the patent application is 1991. Yeah. It will begin to soak in, then. You pick up an atomic generator in thefuture and bring it back to the past-your present-so that it can be put in themuseum with you as the inventor so you can steal it to be the inventor. Andyou do it in a time machine which you bring back to~ yourself to take yourselfinto the future to return to take back to yourself. Who invented anything? And who built them? While your riches from thegenerator are piling in, and little kids from school are coming around tostare at the man who changed history and made atomic power so common that nonation could hope to be anything but a democracy and a peaceful one-after someof the worst times in history for a few years-while your name becomes ascommon as Ampere, or Faraday, or any other spelled without a capital letter, you're thinking of that. And one day, you come across an old poem- something about some folks callingit evolution and others calling it God. You go out, make a few provisions forthe future, and come back to climb into the time machine that's waiting in thebuilding you had put around it. Then you'll be knocking on your own door, thirty years back-or right now, from your view-and telling yourself all thesethings I'm telling you. But now ... Well, the drinks are finished, you're woozy enough to go along with me withoutprotest, and I want to find out just why those people up there came lookingfor you and shouting, before the time machine left. Come on, let's go. The Monster His FEET WERE moving with an automatic monotony along the souncWeadeningmaterial of the flooring. He looked at them, seeing them in motion, andlistened for the little taps they made. Then his eyes moved up along the roughtweed of his trousers to the shorter motion of his thighs. There was somethinggood about the movement, almost a purpose. He tried making his arms move, and found that they accepted the rhythm, theright arm moving forward with the left leg, giving a feeling of balance. Itwas nice to feel the movement, and nice to know that he could walk sosmoothly. His eyes tired of the motion quickly, however, and he glanced along the hallwhere he was moving. There were innumerable doors along it; it was a longhall, with a bend at the end. He reached the bend, and began to wonder how hecould make the turn. But his feet seemed to know better than he, since one ofthem shortened its stride automatically, and his body swung right, beforepicking up the smooth motion again. The new hallway was like the old one, painted white, with the long row ofdoors. He began to wonder idly what might lie behind all the doors. A universeof hallways and doors that branched off into more hallways? It seemedpurposeless to him. He slowed his steps, just as a series of sounds reachedhim from one of the doors. It was speech-and that meant there was someone else in this universe in whichhe had found himself. He stopped outside the door, turning his head to listen. The sounds were muffled, but he could make out most of the words. Politics, his mind told him. The word had some meaning to him, but not much. Someone inside was talking to someone else about the best way to avoid thebattle on the moon, now that both powers had bases there. There was a queertone of fear to the comments on the new iron-chain reaction bombs and what they could do from the moon. It meant nothing to him, except that he was not alone, and that it stirred upknowledge in his head of a world like a ball in space with a moon that circledit. He tried to catch more conversation, but it had stopped, and the otherdoors seemed silent. Then he found one where a speaker was cursing at the idea of introducing robots into a world already a mess, calling someone else byname. That hit the listener, sending shocks of awareness down his consciousness. Hehad no name! Who was he? Where was he? And what had come before he found himself here? He found no answers, savagely though he groped through his reluctant mind. Asingle word emerged- amnesia, loss of memory. Did that mean he had once hadmemories? Then he tried to reason out whether an amnesiac would have a feelingof personality, but could not guess. He could not even be sure he had none. He stared at the knob of the door, wondering if the men inside would know theanswers. His hand moved to the knob slowly. Then, before he could act, therewas the sudden, violent sound of running footsteps down the hall. He swung about to see two men come plunging around the corner and toward him. It hadn't occurred to hfm that legs could move so quickly. One man was thickerthan he was, dressed in a dirty smock of some kind, and the other was neat andtrim, in figure anddress, in a khaki outfit he wore like a badge. The one in khaki opened hismouth." "There he is! Stop him! You-Expeto! Haiti George . . ." Expeto . . . George Expeto! So he did have a name-unless the first namebelonged to the other man. No matter, it was a name. George accepted it andgratitude ran through him sharply. Then he realized the senselessness of theorder. How could he halt when he was already standing still? Besides, therewere those rapid motions. ... The two men let out a yell as George charged into motion, finding his legscould easily hold the speed of a running motion. He stared doubtfully atanother corner, but somehow his responses were equal to it. He started "toslow to a halt-just as something whined by his head and spattered against awhite wall. His mind catalogued it as a bullet from a silent zep-gun, andbullets were used in animosity. The two men were his enemies. He considered it, and found he had no desire to kill them; besides, he had nogun. He doubled his speed, shot down another hall, ran into stairs and tookthem at a single leap. It was a mistake. They led to a narrower hallway, obviously recently blocked off, with a single door. And the man with the zepgun was charging after him as he hesitated. He hit the door with his shoulder and was inside, in a strange room ofmachinery and tables and benches. Most of it was strange to his eyes, thoughhe could recognize a small, portable boron-reactor and generator unit. It wasobviously one of the new hundred-kilowatt jobs. But the place was a blind alley! Behind him, the man in khaki leaped throughthe busted door, his zep-gun ready. But the panting, older figure of the manin the smock was behind him, catching his arm. "No! Man, you'd get a hundred years of Lunar Prison for shooting Expeto. He'sworth his weight in general's stars! If he . . ." "Yeah, if! George, we can't risk it. Security comesfirst. And if he isn't, we can't have another paranoiac running around. Remember the other?" Expeto dropped his shoulders, staring at them and the queer fear that was inthem. "I'm not George?" he asked slowly. "But I've got to be George. I've gotto have a name." The older man nodded. "Sure, George, you're George-George Expeto. Take iteasy, Colonel Kallik! Sure, you're George. And I'm George-George EndersObanion. Take it easy, George, and you'll be all right. We're not going tohurt you. We want to help you." It was a ruse, and Expeto knew it. They didn't want to help-he was somehowimportant, and they wanted him for something. His name wasn't George-justExpeto. The man was lying. But there was nothing else to do; he had no weapons. He shrugged. "Then tell me something about myself." Obanion nodded, catching at the other man's hand. "Sure, George. See thatchart on the wall, there behind you . . . Now!" Expeto had barely time to turn and notice there was no chart on the wallbefore he felt a violent motion at his back, and a tiny catching reaction asthe other's hand hit him. Then he blanked out. He came back to consciousness abruptly, surprised to find that there was nopain in his head. A blow sufficient to knock him out should have leftafterpains. He was alone with his thoughts. They weren't good thoughts. His mind was seizing on the words the others hadused, and trying to dig sense out of them. Amnesia was a rare thing-too rare. But paranoia was more common. A man might first feel others were persecutinghim, then be sure of it, and finally lose all reality in his fantasies ofpersecution and his own importance. Then he was a paranoiac, making npfantastic lies to himself, but cunning enough, and seemingly rational attimes. But they had been persecuting him! There'd been the man with the gun . . . andthey'd said he was important! Or had he only imagined it? If someone important had paranoia, wouldthey deliberately induce amnesia as a curative step? And who was he and where? On the first, he didn't care-George Expeto would do. The second took more care, but he had begun to decide it was a hospital-orasylum. The room here was whitewashed, and the bed was the only furniture. Hestared down at his body. They'd strapped him down, and his arms were encasedin thin metal chains! He tried to recall all he could of hospitals, but nothing came. If he had everbeen sick, there was no memory of it. Nor could he remember pain, or what itwas like, though he knew the word. The door was opening then, cautiously, and a figure in white came in. Expetostared at the figure, and a slow churning began in his head. The words werereluctant this time, but they came, mere surface whispers that he had to fightto retain. But the differences in the figure made them necessary. The longerhair, the softer face, the swelling at the breast, and something about thehips stirred his memories just enough. "You're-woman!" He got the word out, not sure it would come. She jumped at his voice, reaching for the door which she had closed slowly. Fear washed over her face, but she nodded, gulping. "I-of course. But I'm justa technician, and they'll be here, and ... They've fastened you down!" That seemed to bring her back to normal, and she came over, her eyes sweepingover him curiously, while one eyebrow lifted, and she whistled. "Um, not bad. Hi, Romeo. Too bad you're a monster! You don't look mean." "So you came to satisfy your curiosity," he guessed, and his mind puzzled itover, trying to identify the urge that drove men to stare at beasts in cages. He was just a beast to them, a monster-but somehow important. And in thegreater puzzle of it all, he couldn't even resent her remark. Instead, something that had been puzzling him since he'd found the word came to thesurface. "Why are there men and women-and who am I?" She glanced at her watch, her ear to the door. Then she glided over to him. "Iguess you're the most important man in the world-if you're a man, and not puremonster. Here." She found his hand had limited freedom in the chains and moved it over her body, while he stared at her. Her eyes were intent on him. "Well. Now do youknow why there are men and women?" Her stare intensified as he shook his head, and her lips firmed. "My God, it's true-and you couldn't act that well! That'sall I wanted to know! And now they'll take over the whole moon! Look, don't tell them I was here-they'll kill you if you do. Or do you know what death is? Yeah, that's it, kaput! Don't talk, then. Not a word!" She was at the door, Listening. Finally she opened it, and moved out. . . . There was no sound from the zep-gun, but the splaatt of the bullet reachedExpeto's ears. He shuddered, writhing within himself as her exploding bodyjerked back out of sight. She'd been pleasant to look at. Maybe that was whatwomen were for. Obanion was over him then, while a crowd collected in the hall, all wearingkhaki. "We're not going to kill you, Expeto. We knew she'd come-or hoped shewould. Now, if I unfasten your chains, will you behave? We've only got fourhours left. O.K., Colonel Kallik?" The colonel nodded. Behind him, the others were gathering something up andleaving. "She's the spy, all right. That must make the last of them. Clever. I'd havesworn she was O.K. But they tipped their hand in letting Expeto's door stayunbolted before. Well, the trap worked. Sorry about cutting down your time." Obanion nodded, and now it was a group of men in white uniforms who came in, while the khaki-clad men left. They were wheeling in assorted machines, something that might have been an encephalograph, a unitary cerebrotrope, along with other instruments. Expeto watched them, his mind freezing at the implications. But he wasn't insane. His thoughts were lucid. He opened his mouth toprotest, just as Obanion swung around. "Any feeling we're persecuting you, Expeto? Maybe you'd like to get in a fewlicks, to break my skull and run away where you'd be understood. You might getaway with it; you're stronger than I am. Your reaction time is better, too. See, I'm giving you the idea. And you've only got four hours in which to doit." Expeto shook his head. That way lay madness. Let his mind feel he waspersecuted and he'd surely be the paranoiac he'd heard mentioned. There had tobe another answer. This was a hospital-and men were healed in hospitals. Evenof madness. It could only be a test. "No," he denied slowly, and was surprised to find it was true. "No, I don'twant to kill you, doctor. If I've been insane, it's gone. But I can'tremember-I can't remember!" He pulled his voice down from its shriek, shook his head again and tried torestrain himself. "I'll cooperate. Only tell me who I am. What have I donethat makes people call me a monster? My God, give me an anchor to hold mesteady, and then do what you want." "You're better off not knowing, since you seem to be able to guess when I'mlying." Obanion motioned the other men up, and they waited while Expeto tookthe chair they pointed out. Then they began clamping devices on his head. "You're what the girl said-the spy. You're the most important man in the worldright now-if you can stay sane. You're the one man who carries the secret ofhow we can live on the moon, protect Earth from aggressive powers, even get tothe stars some day." "But I can't remember-anything!" "It doesn't matter. The secret's in you and we know how to use it. All right, now I'm going to give you some tests, and I want you to tell me exactly whatcomes into your mind. The instruments will check on it, so lying won't do anygood. Ready?" It went on and on, while new shifts came in. Theclock on the wall indicated only an hour, but it might have been a century, when Obanion sighed and turned his work over to another. Expeto's thoughts were reeling. He grabbed the breather gratefully, let hishead thump back. There must be a way. "What day is this?" he asked. At their silence, he frowned. "Cooperate means both working together. I've been doing my part. Or is it too much to answer asun-pie question?" The new man nodded slowly. "You're right. You deserve some answers, if I cangive them without breaking security. It's June eighth, nineteen ninety-oneeleven P.M." It checked with figures that had appeared in the back of his mind, ruining theone theory he'd had. "The President is William Olsen?" The doctor nodded, killing the last chance at a theory. For a time, he'dthought that perhaps the aggressive countries had won, and that this was theirdictatorship. If he'd been injured in a war . . . but it was nonsense, sinceno change had occurred in his time sense or in the administration. "How'd I get here?" The doctor opened his mouth, then closed it firmly. "Forget that, Expeto. You're here. Get this nonsense of a past off your mind-you never had one, understand? And no more questions. We'll never finish in less than threehours, as it is." Expeto stood up slowly, shaking himself. "You're quite right. You won'tfinish. I'm sick of this. Whatever I did, you've executed your justice inkilling the me that was only a set of memories. And whatever I am, I'll findfor myself. To hell with the lot of you!" He expected zep-guns to appear, and he was right. The walls suddenly opened hipanels, and six men with guns were facing him, wearing the oppressive khaki. But something hi him seemed to take over. He had the doctor in one arm and azep-gun from the hand of a major before anyone else could move. He faced them, waiting for the bullets that would come, but they drewback, awaiting orders. Expeto's foot found the door, kicked at it; the locksnapped. Obanion's voice cut through it all. "Don't! No shooting! Expeto, I'm the oneyou want. Let Smith go, and I'll accompany you, until you're ready to let mego. Fair enough?" Smith was protesting, but the doctor cut him short. "My fault, since I'mresponsible. And the Government be damned. I'm not going to have a bunch ofgood men killed. His reaction's too fast. We can learn things this way, maybebetter. All right, Expeto-or do you want to kill them?" Expeto dropped the gun a trifle and nodded, while the emotions in his headthreatened to make him blank out. He knew now that he could never kill even one of them. But they apparently weren't as sure. "Take me outside, and youcan go back," he told Obanion. The doctor wiped sweat from his forehead, managed a pasty smile and nodded. Surprisingly, he stepped through a different door, and down a short hall, where men with rifles stood irresolutely. Then they were outside. Obanion turned to go back, and then hesitated. Surprisingly, he dropped an armonto Expeto's shoulder. "Come on back inside. We can understand you. Or ... All right, I guess you're going. Thanks for taking my offer." The door closed, and Expeto was alone. Above him, most of the building wasdark, but he saw a few lighted windows, and some with men and women workingover benches and with equipment. There was no sign of beds. All right, so itwas some Government laboratory. The most important monster in the world, the useful paranoiac they'd saved byamnesia. The monster they intended to persecute back to paranoia, in hopeshe'd recover his memory, and the secret they wanted. Let them have the secret- but let him have peace and quiet, where his brain could recover by itself. Then he'd gladly give it to them. Or would he? Would he really be a monsteragain? Or might he learn the strange reason for there being men and women, thepuzzle whichseemed so simple that the woman had felt mere contact would solve it? Funny that there were so many sciences, but no science of life--or was there? Maybe he'd been such a scientist-psychology, zoology, biology, whatever they'dcall it from the Greek. Maybe the secret lay there, and it had completelyburned out that part of his mind. Then he heard the sound of a motor and knew they weren't going to let him go. He wasn't to have a moment of freedom they could prevent. He swung aboutsharply, studying the horizon. There were lights and a town. There'd bepeople, and he could hide among them. He whipped his legs into action, driving on at a full run. The light of themoon was barely enough for him to see the ground clearly, but he managed agood deal more speed than the hallways had permitted. He heard the car behindon the road he found, and doubled his speed, while the sound of the motorslowly weakened as the distance increased. He breathed easier when he hit the outskirts of the town, and slowed to acasual walk, imitating the steps of a few people he saw about. This wasbetter. In the myriad of streets and among the countless others, he would belost. The only trouble was that he was on a main street, and the lights wouldgive him away to anyone who knew him. He picked up a paper from a waste receptacle, and moved off to the left, seeking a less brilliantly lighted street. Now and again he glanced at theprint, looking for some trace. But aside from the news that his mindrecognized as normal for the tunes, there was nothing on any mysterious, all- important person, nor on anyone who was either a monster or a savior. Ahead of him, a lone girl was tapping along on the sidewalk. He quickened hisstep, and she looked back, making the identity complete as her tiny bolerodrifted back in the breeze to expose all but the tip of her breasts. Shehesitated as he caught up with her, looking up uncertainly. "Yes?" She couldn't know the answers. Obviously she hadnever seen him. How could she tell him what he wanted to know? * "Sorry, I thought you were someone else. No, wait. You can tell me something. Where can I find a place to stay?" "Oh. Well, the Alhambra, I guess." She smiled a little. "Back there-see wherethe sign is?" She brushed against his arm as she turned, and a faint gasp sounded. Her handsuddenly contracted on his bare skin, then jerked back sharply, while shebegan stepping slowly away. "No!" It was a small wail as he caught her shoulder. Then she slumped againsthim, wilting as he pulled her toward his face. He released her, to see herfall down in a sagging heap. For a moment, the sickness in him rose in great waves, undulating and horribleas he dropped beside her. But when he felt the pulse in her hand stillbeating, it left. He hadn't killed her, only frightened her intounconsciousness. He stood there, tasting that. Only frightened her that much! And finally he turned about and headed for the Alhambra. There was nothing hecould do for her; she'd recover, in time, and it would be better if she didn'tsee him there. Then maybe she'd decide it was all a fantasy. He watched a streak mount the horizon bitterly, remembering that the men hadbeen discussing the two bases on the moon in the room where he'd first heardvoices. They could face war, such as the rocket he saw being prepared, rainingdown in hell bombs from a quarter of a million miles, and only fear itvaguely. But he could drive someone senseless by touching her! He found the night clerk busy watching a television set with the screen badlyadjusted to an overbalance of red, and signed the register with the full namehe'd hoped once was his. George Expeto, from-make it from New York. Itwouldn't matter. "Twenty dollars," the clerk told him. Dollars? He shook his head slowly, trying to think. Something about dollars and cents. But it made no sense. The clerk's eyes were hard. "No dough, eh? O.K., try to fool someone else. Nobaggage, no dough, no room. Scram." Expeto stood irresolutely, trying to mak& sense out of it still. Dollars- something . . . The clerk had swung back to watching the set, and he reachedout for the scrawny shoulder, drawing the man around. "But look . . ." Then it was no use. The shoulder had crumpled in his handlike a rotten stick, and the man had lapsed into a faint with a single shriek. Expeto stood outside, swaying while the sickness washed away slowly, and hetold himself the doctors would fix the man up; that was what they were for. They'd fix him, and no real harm had been done. He hadn't meant to hurt theman. He'd only meant to ask him what dollars were and how to get them. Then he moved on into a little park and dropped onto a seat. But the sicknesswas still there, a sickness he hadn't noticed, but which had been growing onhim even before he'd hurt the clerk. It was as if something were slowlyeroding his mind. Even the curious memory of ideas and words was going! He was sitting there, his head in his hands, trying to catch himself, when thecar drove up. Obanion and Kal-lik got out, but Obanion came over alone. "Come on, Expeto. It won't work. You might as well come back. And there's onlyan hour left!" Expeto got up slowly, nodding wearily. The doctor was right-there was no placefor such a monster as he in the world. "Left before what?" he asked dully, as he climbed into the rear of the car, and watched Obanion lock the door and the glass slide between him and thefront seat. For a second Obanion hesitated, then he shrugged. "All right. Maybe you shouldknow. In another hour you'll be dead! And nothing can prevent it." Expeto took it slowly, letting the thought sink into the muddying depths ofhis mind. But he was important ... they'd told him so. Or had they? They'dchased him about, bound him down, refused to tell him what he needed, refusedhim even civil decency and told him he was the hope of the world. Or had heonly imagined it? "I never wanted anything but myself. Only myself. And they wouldn't let mehave that-not even for a few hours. They had to hound me . . ." He realized hewas muttering aloud and stopped it. But from the front seat, the voices came back, muffled by the glass, Kallikspeaking first. "See, paranoia all right. Thinks he's being persecuted." "He is." Obanion nodded slowly. "With the time limit the Government insistedon, the ruin of our plans by the spies that got through, and the need to getthe facts, what else could we do? If they'd let us animate him for a week-butsix hours' limit on the vital crystals! We've had to be brutal." "You talk as if he were a human being. Remember the other-XP One? Crazy, killing people, or trying to. I tell you, the robots can't be made trustworthyyet, no matter what you cybernetics boys have found in the last ten years. This one only had six hours instead of ten for the other, and he's alreadythreatened us and hurt two people." "Maybe. We. don't know all the story yet." Obanion wiped his forehead. "Anddamn it, he is human. That's what makes it tough, knowing we've got to treathim like a machine. Maybe we grew his brain out of sili-cones and trick metalcrystals, and built his body in a laboratory, but the mechanical education hegot made him a lot more human than some people, or should have made him so. IfI can prove he isn't crazy . . ." Expeto-Experiment Two-stared at the hands he held before his face. He bent thefingers, looking at the veins and muscles. Then, slowly, with his other hand, he twisted at them, stretching them out and out, until there could be no doubtof the rubbery plastic they were. A monster! A thing grown in a laboratory, made out of mechanical parts, and fed bits of human education from tapes in cybernetics machines! A thing thatwould walk on the moon without air and take over enemybases, or do all men's work-but that could never be taken as a man by humanbeings, who grew from something or other, but were never built. A thing to beanimated for a few hours, and deliberately set to die at the end of that time, as a precaution-because it had no real life, and it wasn't murder to kill abuilt thing! ' A thing that somehow couldn't kill men, it seemed, judging by the sicknesshe'd felt when he'd hurt or threatened them. But a thing of which theycouldn't be sure-until they'd tested him and found he was complete and sane. He rocked back and forth on the seat, moaning a little. He didn't want to die; but already, the eroded places in his brain were growing larger. It didn'tmatter; he had never been anyone; he never could be anyone. But he didn't wantto die! "Hah' an hour left," the cyberneticist, Obanion, said slowly. "And less thanthat, unless we make sure he doesn't exert himself. He's about over." Then the car was coming into the garage, and Obanion got out with Kallik. Expeto went with them quietly, knowing that Obanion was right. Already, he wasfinding it hard to use his legs or control what passed for muscles. They wentback to the room with the instruments and the waiting technicians. For a moment, he looked at the humans there. Oban-ion's eyes were veiled, butthe others were open to his gaze. And there was no pity there. Men don't pitya car that is too old and must go to the scrap heap. He was only a machine, nomatter how valuable. And after him, other machines would see the faces of menturned away from them, generation after generation. Slowly, he kicked at the chair, tipping it over without splintering it, andhis voice came out as high and shrill as his faltering control could force'it. "No! No more! You've persecuted me enough. You've tried to kill me-me, thehope of your puny race! You've laughed at me and tortured me. But I'm smarterthan you- greater than you! I can kill you-all of you-the whole world, with mybare hands." He saw shock on Obanion's face, and sadness, andfor that he was almost sorry. But the smug satisfaction of Kallik as the zepgun came up and the horror on the faces of the others counteracted it. Heyelled once, and charged at them. For a moment, he was afraid that he would not be stopped before he had toinjure at least one of them. But then the zep-gun in Kallik's hand spokesilently, and the bullet smashed against the mockery of Expeto's body. He lay there, watching them slowly recover from their fright. It didn't matterwhen one of them came over and began kicking him senselessly. It didn't evenmatter when Obanion put a stop to it. His senses were fading now, and he knew that the excitement had shortened hisbrief time, and that the crystals were about to break apart and put an end tohis short existence. But in a curious way, while he still hated and feareddeath, he was resigned to it. They'd be better off. Maybe the first experimental robot had known that. Expeto let the thought linger, finding it good. He couldn't believe the otherhad grown insane; it, too, must have found the bitter truth, and tried to dothe only possible thing, even when that involved genuine injury to a few ofthe humans. Now they'd have two such failures, and it would be perhaps years before they'drisk another, when their checks failed to show the reason for the nonexistentflaws. They'd have to solve their own problems of war or peace, withoutmechanical monsters to make them almost gods in power, while teaching them thedisregard of devils for life other than their own. And there'd be no more of his kind to be used and despised, and persecuted. Persecuted? The word stirred up thoughts . . . something about paranoia and insanity. But it faded. Everything faded. And he sank through vague content into growingblackness. His thoughts were almost happy as death claimed him. The Years Draw NighMARS WAS HARSH and old, worn with the footsteps of two races that had come andgone, leaving only scant traces behind. Even the wind was tired, and its thinwailing was a monotonous mutter of memories from its eroded past. Zeke Lerner stared out from the dust-covered observation port of the hastily- reconditioned little rocket, across the scarred runways and sand-filled pitsfor the star ships, toward the ruins of what had once been the great StarStation. His face was gray and dull as he watched a figure coming across thepitted sand of the field toward his ship. He sighed softly, a faint sound in the tiny cabin, and his breath stirred thedust that lay everywhere. In four centuries, a man can learn not to think, butfeelings and emotions survive. He was tired beyond any power of therejuvenation treatments to remedy. His shoulders sagged slightly, confirmingthe age that the gray in his hair implied. But his eyes were older still as heswung about to open the inner lock of the ship. Stendal was a middle-aged man, but some of the same age and fatigue lay on hisface when he dropped his aspirator helmet and slumped limply into a seat. Hisplain uniform as Assistant Coordinator of Terra was covered with dirt andgrime. He grinned faintly at Zeke and pulled a thermos of coffee out of itsniche. "So the Thirty-four is coming back?" Zeke asked quietly. oHe had no need of the other's nod, though. When they'd finally located him atthe Rejuvenation Center and rushed him to the rocket field, he'd suspected. Only a matter of extreme urgency could interrupt a man's return to youth. Themessengers had been uninformative, but he had been sure, once they told himStendal was waiting on Mars. They must have been keeping it restricted to thetop administrators. Zeke's eyes went back to the dirt on the man's uniform. "Top secret," Stendal confirmed. "So hush-hush that I came to do the janitorwork here. Now it's all yours. The robots and I managed to get it into areasonable facsimile of repaired condition. Oof! I could use a week's sleep, but I've got to get back earthside at once. . . . Sorry to interrupt therejuvenation, Zeke." Zeke shrugged. Once, when the rejuvenation was new and men stood in line fordays to keep their appointment, it might have mattered. Now there'd be acancellation he could replace. Over 15 percent of the population was refusingtreatment-and some of the canceling men were those only reaching their firsttouch of age. Each year, less of the population seemed to find life worthrenewing. "How'd you find out she was coming?" he asked. "After all, she's fifty yearsoverdue." Stendal tossed the thermos into a disposal chute and reached for one of Zeke'scigarettes. "Centaurus automatic signal must still be working. Nigel, at theBureau, got a series of pips showing something coming this way faster thanlight. That's the only ship we have out, so it must be her, or ..." He let it hang unfinished, but Zeke knew what he was thinking. It was eitherthe Thirty-Four or another race coming with a ship that could exceed lightspeed. Sudden adrenalin shot through him, and he straightened. After all, theship was long overdue. He wished the ship and the men no ill, but" No use getting up false hopes," Stendal cut into his thoughts. "The captainwas a pretty determined sort, asI remember him. Maybe he had trouble. And I'll have trouble if I don't getback. I'll leave you a robot, in case anything needs more repairs. Think youcan still run this setup, Zeke?" Zeke snorted. He'd spent tune enough at Marsport, first as head ofcommunications, and finally as director of the whole Star Ship project, whilethey built the great ships and sent them out as fast as they could come'offthe ways. Forty ships during half a century, each costing over four billiondollars. And the Thirty-Four was the last one out. All the rest had come backto report failure in this final quest for new frontiers. They buckled on their aspirator helmets and went out through the locks. Stendal waved curtly and headed toward his own rocket, calling three of thewaiting robots with him and sending the fourth toward the broken ruin of theadministration building. Zeke watched Sten-dal's rocket take off anddisappear. Then he turned for a final look over the wrecked field. Mars was already wiping out all traces of this second race that had comeboiling out from Earth, bent for the stars. Marsport had been young andbooming when Zeke had come there first, three and a half centuries ago. Twocenturies later, when the star ships first began to come straggling back, andthey shifted him to Earth to head General Traffic, the sand was just startingto creep over the outer buildings. Those structures were gone now, vanished into the desert, with only thissingle building maintained after a fashion in faint hope the last ship wouldreturn. The frame shacks and hydroponic quonsets that had hidden the ancientMartian ruins were rotted long ago; there was only the hint of a foundationhere and there to show they ever existed. In a century or so there would be noevidence that Mars had ever felt the marching feet of men, except for thescraps of the returned ships that might last a few millennia longer. Zeke sighed again, and headed toward the building. Then his eyes went to the horizon, where the piled stones and pitted pylon ofberyl steel still stood, marking what had been the unknown and apparently unknowable race of Mars, dead perhaps ten million years before. Once that racemust have spread its structures across the whole planet, but now there wereonly such traces as this, useless to even the archeologists. All the elaboratedesigns on them might have had significance once, but no man would ever decodethem. There was no hint as to their nature, or where the race had vanished-orwhy. He entered the lock of the building, with the robot dutifully at his heels, and surveyed it glumly. Only the one room, housing the great space-destroyingultrawave communicators, had been put in order. But most of the sand and dustwas gone, and it was livable enough for a while. He checked to see that thecommunicator was working before walking over to the single window and staringout at the Martian ruins again. Beside him, the robot stirred uneasily. "Orders?" it questioned. Zeke turned back reluctantly from the window. "No orders, Ozin. We're on Mars, where men have given up dominion. You're as free as I am. Do what you like." Ozin stirred again, worn metal protesting at its lack of usefulness, itsqueer, almost intelligent mind trying to resolve the problem presented byZeke's words. But even this final robot, the last model before men abandonedthe idea of robots, could not handle that. "Orders?" it repeated. Zeke gave up. "Take my ship up and house it behind the building, out of theway, then. After that, you can cut off until I call you." The robot wasted no words in acknowledgement, but turned slowly and headedout, its metal body clumping along as woodenly as Zeke's mind was working. Thelock hissed softly, and a trace of the stale, dessicated air of Mars came in. Then Ozin appeared around the arc of the wall, heading toward the rocket. Zekewatched it enter, saw the shiplock close, and shut his eyes at the deep blueflame of the exhaust from the unbaffled tubes. Sand kicked up, spurting out and grating against the walls of the stationwing, swishing against the pylon of the lost Martians. For a minute, dust hung in the air. But it settled backquickly now, to show an unchanged scene. Zeke heard the ship land again behindthe building. He reached automatically for a cigarette, wondering idly if the repairedbuilding's aspirators would take even that much added load in their labor ofmaking a decent atmosphere out of Mars' thin air. For a second, he fiddledwith the ultrawave set. The signal was coming through from Earth, indicatingthat they were already quietly beaming it out to where the Thirty-Four couldpick it up. It was the same dull, insipid news Zeke had heard for too manydecades, though it might be interesting to men who had been gone from Earthfor over two centuries. There was no other signal to indicate that they werewithin calling distance, however. He went to the window again, to watch the slow sinking of the sun that wasreddening a distant sandstorm, until it finally crept below the horizon. Withan abruptness that was typical of the planet, darkness fell. The stars seemedto leap into the sky, with Earth standing out among them. He frowned at that, realizing that he was the only man who would be seeing it. All the others werehome on the planet. The skylight was filthy, but he found a battered bench that would stand hisweight and began working the dust and grime from the glass. The stars wereclearer through that. A few hundred years, hadn't changed them noticeably, andhe picked them out-hot points that barely flickered in the thin air of Mars. Jupiter was in view, and he knew where all the other useless planets shouldbe, though he could not see them. He grimaced faintly at that, remembering his life as a boy when men haddreamed that each new world might contain some rare treasure--or evenintelligence to meet and compete with man. None had panned out, though. Mercury was too hot, Venus was a roiling dust-bowl under foul, poisonouslayers of atmosphere, Mars worn beyond usefulness, and the other planets toocold and forbidding, except as possible stepping stones to the stars that layfarther out. Chenery had found the trick to beat light speed when Zeke was still a callowthirty, and Marsport had sprung into life; the planet had made an ideal takeoff point for ships which Earth could not permit hi her own atmosphere becauseof the dangerous radiation of their exhausts. There'd been Centaurus and Sirius, and the thousands of suns beyond, some withplanets and some without. There had even been the high moment when a planethad been found and colonized, a mere thousand light-years away, before men haddiscovered that something in the star's radiation was eventually lethal to allEarth forms. But there had been no life beyond the Solar System-and nothingthat even the most foolhardy could use as a reason for man's settlement. It had proven to be a barren universe, except for Earth and the Mars ofperhaps ten million years ago. Zeke looked at the ruins again, still faintlyvisible in the light that sliced out from his window. Whatever had built themhad reached a civilization at least as high as man's. What had happened tothem that had made a culture capable of such work come to a sudden andunmarked end? A meaningless crackle came from the ultrawave set, and he moved to it, touching up its sensitivity. For a moment again, he hoped that it wouldrespond with only gibberish that might mean another race coming down the longstarlanes toward Earth, instead of the code he knew. But he choked off thewish, even before the speaker burped again. There was a sudden sound of codesymbols a second later, followed by the thin, wavering words and voice at thelimit of reception. "Star Ship Thirty-Four coming in. Can you get us? Thirty-Four callingMarsport. Landing in two hours maximum. Clear field for full splash landing. Clear field for landing without tube shields. Thirty-Four calling Marsport-" Zeke had the great bank of accumulators working through the transmitter, andthe indicators showed that the big tubes were ready to throw then- pulsedmegawatts into subspace. He glanced at the bandpass andsaw that it was at its maximum intelligibility level for the distance. "Land Marsport, Thirty-Four, as you will. All clear. Repeat." The voice came back, weaker. It wavered, broke into a squeal, and disappearedin a hash of static. Only blind luck had given them clear subspace long enoughfor a complete call. Zeke cut off the transmitter; there was no purpose hitelling them that the field had been clear for decades. They'd find that soonenough. Mars had still been a colony when they took off. It had remained one while sixmore of the great ships were built and sent out with orders to proceed to thelimit of range before returning-or to return on significant discovery. Zekehad watched them all leave, filled with bright young volunteers, sure thatthey would be the ones to find a new race of intelligent life or a world thatwould be a paradise for men. Now the last one out was returning, and it wasappropriate that he should meet the space-weary men who were coming home. He tried to remember them, but there had been too many years and too manyships. On impulse, he knocked dust from the walls, scanning the names that hadbeen scrawled there against regulations-and left because he had countermandedthose regulations. Surprisingly, he found the one he was seeking. Hugh Miffen, captain of the Thirty-Four. Zeke remembered him now, a towheaded boy witha ramrod back and the hell-driving urge of divine inspiration in his eyes. Andthere had been "Preacher" Hook, who swore he was going to memorize the wholeBible in subspace. Only the two stood out now, over the long years. Surely, if any group could have found a home for man or a companionintelligence, that group should have done it. Something must have happenedduring the fifty years they had been overdue. Their fuel would never havelasted, otherwise. The speaker gobbled at him, finally, until he cut the power down. The wash ofstatic could only mean that they were beginning the struggle out of subspace, knocking a hole for themselves in normal space andcrawling painfully into it. It was taking the ship longer than it should, andZeke began to worry. Then the blare of static decreased. He knew she was downunder light speed. The ship robot took his call this time, indicating that all the men aboardwere fully occupied in the task of trimming her for normal flight. The signalwas clear, however, and he could hear faint sounds of men's voices in thebackground. There was no undue worry in them, as best he could tell. "Sealed beam," Zeke requested. It took more power to maintain a signal thatcould be handled on a beam with the ultrawave, but she was close enough now torisk it; it wouldn't do to have the message accidentally picked up by Earthuntil he knew what the results of the trip were. The robot acknowledged hisorder, and the queer, clipped effect of the sealing could be detected on thesignal. Zeke grunted with satisfaction as he made his own adjustment. "Okay, this isZeke Lerner, code responsibility 21-zy-18-obt-4-a. You can report." "Digest of report," the robot began tonelessly. "Visited suns 3248; examinedplanets 2751. Checked suns on automatic spotting, 9472; checked planets andfound barren on automatic spotting, 23,911. Maximum distance attained bydirect route, one hundred ten thousand light-years, forty-three ship-years; arc of coverage . . ." "Cut it out. Did you find an inhabited world?" The robot adjusted to the interruption slowly, humming into the microphone asevidence that it was still there. Zeke swore. Then a human voice suddenly tookover, weary even through the distortion of the sealed beam. "Lerner? You still on the spot?" It was a deep bass voice that could only belong to Hugh Miffen, in spite of the years that had roughened it. The shiphad naturally carried rejuvenation equipment, but even the best treatmentnever wiped out all traces of time. "Sorry we had the robot on-it's about halfshot, now. Anyhow, we're under light, and I'm free for a minute. Leaving outthe statistics, we ran out too far and got short of fuel. We'dspotted two planets that might barely be; habitable, so we backtracked and putdown on one of them. It took us about thirty-five years to find and work fuelout of the ores. Then we went on a bit before we turned home." Zeke's eyebrows had shot up, and he shook his head. He tried to picture whatit would be like on some barely livable planet, scouting for ore, jury-riggingsome kind of plant to refine it-with almost no equipment-and his old respectfor Miffen went up another notch. That type of man seemed sadly lackingnowadays. But he made no comment on it; it could wait for more importantthings, and Miffen had begun to describe the two planets. One was too far from its sun in an eccentric orbit, going from a brief summerinto a bitter winter equal to three years of Earth time. It was suitableotherwise, but no more so than Antarctica. The other was a wasteland of littlewater and low air pressure, though barely habitable. It had been on that worldthat Miffen and his crew had stranded themselves. Zeke frowned as he discarded the planets. Both would mean tremendous difficulties in ferrying supplies outfor at least a century until they could somehow be made self-supporting. Menwould work for a dream, but there were limits. It would need more incentivethan there seemed to be. "Evidence of life anywhere?" he asked reluctantly, as the other finished. Butthe question had to be asked, although the answer could be predicted, almostcertainly. Even over that distance, the possibility of other races to studymight drive the scientists to set up an outpost, and with that as a basis, another world might be developed as a stepping stone to still furtherexploration. Miffen's voice was hesitant as the answer came. "The world we were on-Outpost, we called it-had some ruins that could only come from intelligence. But therewas nothing living there. Maybe it had been what we called it once . . . Damn!" A yell had sounded thinly over the speaker. Miffen's steps clattered loudly, to fade out, and leave the ultra- wave dead. With the ship braking down for a landing, there was probably morethan enough work for all the men. Zeke's hand lingered over the switch. Finally, he depressed it, cutting off power. Ruins that showed intelligence, eighty thousand light-years across the galaxy! In forty thousand explored worlds the star ships had touched, this was thefirst sign of even that much chance. It wasn't enough, of course, but ... Slowly Zeke's shoulders straightened and his figure came erect. They'dexplored space to a distance of a hundred thousand light-years on a barechance, without any reason to hope. Out of all the previous reports, there hadbeen only three habitable worlds, and no sign of life beyond the Solar System. Now a ship was returning with reports of two barely possible worlds andevidence that there was such life! An outpost-and somewhere beyond, perhaps, the planet where that life still existed. With proper propaganda, with enough build-up, and with evidence that somewherein the infinity of stars life and livability must exist, could man refuse togo on with his questing? For a moment, he clutched at the hope. It had to be. One world was not enoughfor a race that had set its heart on the stars, had always found frontiers, and had geared its soul to an eternal drive toward something beyond. It couldnot be cooped up and fenced in without sickening in its own futility, as itwas sickening even now-as he was sick within himself after four centuries offollowing blind alleys. With only a little spark to fan the flames, men might be driven on. Andperhaps only a few light-years away from the end of their explorations-thearbitrary limits imposed by time and energy for the ships-there might befellow races to stir the spark that was dying in mankind. Then he grinned bitterly and looked out through the window, turning the singleworkable searchlight on the Martian ruins. Man had found evidence of otherlife hi his own backyard, and it had carried him for centuries. But it was not enough to drive him onward forever. There was nothing onOutpost that couldn't be had here-and no colony had lasted on Mars. Zeke squinted his eyes as he studied the pylon again, noting the queer, twisted decorations on it. He had seen the report of the scientists, and theyhad finally given up the riddle. It would take more than this to drive menfarther outward. And Miffen's voice had sounded too doubtful. But some of the hope remained faintly in him as he stood staring into theMartian night. It would have to wait until he heard more. Now it was onlyanother mystery, like that of the lost race of Mars. What had happened to them? They had known how to cast tungsten, and there wasevidence that nuclear reactions had been used in tempering the pylons. Thatwas high-level science. Where had it gone? There had apparently been no longperiod of high civilization, since the pylons all over the planet were aboutalike, with few advances in the later ones. There hadn't been time enough forthe race to become decadent. Nor was there any evidence of war carried on by arace with advanced nuclear physics; there would have been enough signs ofthat. They couldn't have settled Earth, of course-it wouldn't have beensuitable then. But they must have had starships. What had kept them fromspreading outward-had even wasted them into nothingness in such a brief periodof culture on their own planet? His thoughts were interrupted by a beep from the speaker, and he switched onthe automatic ultrawave because that would guide the ship down. Overhead, athin whine thickened to a stuttering cough, the unhealthy sound of gasping, unshielded rockets that had been used too often and in too many futilelandings. It was coming down well enough, though, half a mile away. Zekewatched it land while he was climbing into anti-radiation armor. The ground was still smoking, but the counter showed the radiation low enoughfor a quick passage when he went out. He waited for the outer lock to open, then made a dash toward it, his breath reminding him that he was old and hadnot been rejuvenated. He crawled into the lock and stopped to catch himselfbefore removing the armor, while the inner lock began to open. Then he was facing four gaunt, weary men. His eyes darted back for the othersof the thirty who had gone out, but Miffen was shaking his gray-bearded head. "Four of us, General. We had a few casualties. But. . ." His arm swept out toward the field, now illuminated by the beams of the greatship, and his eyes fixed on the scene of the sand-filled pits and bits ofbuilding foundations that showed through the quartz of the entrance port. Zeke shrugged and reached for his cigarettes. The sudden hunger in their eyeshit him then, reminding him of stores now depleted in all those long years. Hepassed the package around, careful not to notice the hands that shook as theypulled out the cylinders. "We've had some casualties, too, you might say," he told Miffen. He lightedhis own cigarette finally, and his shoulders lifted and dropped at the other'sexpression. "And I'm not a general now-not since Marsport was abandoned. Icame out only because we were expecting you back. . . . What about Outpost?" "In my cabin I've got it on microfilm." Miffen swung about, waving the threecrewmen off. For the first time, Zeke noticed that one of them had the flamingred hair that had always distinguished Preacher Hook. He lifted an eyebrow and Hook nodded, pulling out a worn Bible and making acircle with his thumb and finger. "All memorized," he stated. But the grin on his face was uncertain, and the achievement no longer seemed to be importantto him. Zeke had forgotten the size of these star shins as they went up the handrails. The elevators were obviously not working. Miffen swung up the last and turnedinto a little cabin, kicking the door farther open. He dug into a worn chestand came out with a small package and a little viewer. "I figured some things from what little we picked upof Earth's broadcast," he remarked emotionlessly as he threaded the film intothe viewer. "But I 'didn't believe it. Not until I saw Marsport. I guess ... well, this will give you an idea of Outpost. I explored all the suns around Icould reach, but I never learned where the race originated." Zeke adjusted the lenses carefully, seeing the unfamiliar two-dimensionalflatness of non-stereo for the first time in centuries. It was awkward at first, but his eyes soon relearned the trick of fooling themselves. There were several scenes, showing a sky of dull green, with grayish sand andsomething that looked like jumbled blocks of granite. As he stared, a patternbegan to show itself. Something had been built there once, and byintelligence. Closer viewing showed that the stones had been shapedgeometrically, under all their weathering. He came to a list of statistics and skimmed through it. Then he reached thefinal scene. Miffen's voice suddenly sounded behind him, awkward and too tense. "What aboutthe other ships?" "They all got back-they're piled up beside the field, beyond the reach of yourlights. No use to us now. Thirty-nine hulks, and yours makes the fortieth-allwe ever built." He turned back to the film, but again Miffen's voiceinterrupted him. "All? I'd expected . . . That bad, eh?" "Worse. I suppose you're entitled to know what you've come back to. You'll seeit soon enough, though-and better than I can tell you." Zeke clamped theviewer to his eye firmly, and turned to the light once more. "There waspurpose when you left. Now that's all past tense." "Yeah." Miffen let the word hang. He must have seen Zeke's sudden tensenessand realized there was no use putting off the inspection of the final scene onthe film any longer. Zeke was staring at it, but he was unconscious of whathis eyes saw, and the last of the hope in him was draining slowly away. He stared up at Miffen, tapping the viewer. "You know what this is, of course. Or do you?" Miffen shook his head. "I suspected. But I never paid much attention backhere, and it's been a long time. I kept hoping I was crazy." Zeke made no answer. He picked up the viewer and headed toward the controlroom, with Miffen following. Still silently, he pointed out through theviewports, across the leprous surface of Mars, toward the pitted beryl steelpylon that gleamed in the light from the Star Station. Then he put the viewerto his eyes again. The sky was green instead of black, and the sand was gray where Mars wascovered with red. But the scene was the same. A gleaming metal pylon rose fromthe rubble of ruined blocks, carrying the queer, twisted decorations that hadbeen typical of all Martian structures. There was no question about what racehad tried to colonize Outpost-and had failed. Suddenly a work-gnarled hand took the viewer from him, and he turned to seePreacher Hook and the other men. They must have- followed Miffen and himselfinto the control room. But it didn't matter. They must have suspected. Andthere was no surprise on their faces as they passed the viewer from one toanother, comparing the scene with that outside. Almost without feeling, Zeke picked up the ultrawave microphone and called theadministration building, ordering the robot to bring his rocket down beside the big star ship. He adjusted the dials carefully and spoke terse, codedsymbols into the instrument. A moment later, Stendal's voice answered him. "I'm bringing the four survivors down in my ship," he reported in a voice thatseemed completely detached from him. "Give us a secrecy blanket until we canreport in full. And see if you can nil a few bathtubs with whiskey. We'll needit." Stendal seemed to catch his breath and then sigh, but his words were levelwhen he spoke. "So Pandora's box was just a fairy story, after all. Well, Inever had many hopes. Okay, I'll get the liquor, Zeke. And about yourrejuvenation-I'm getting a private installation here for you. If the othersneed it, we'll take care of all of you." Zeke looked up at the four men, and then out towardthe pylon again-all that was left of a race that had searched the stars in itsneed to find new frontiers. It must have been a hardy race, since it had daredto set up a colony across all those innumerable parsecs of space, without eventhe inspiration of other life. Then, when that colony had failed, the race hadreturned to the loneliness of its own little world, where the stars lookeddown grimly, no longer promising anything. Now Mars had been dead ten millionyears, and the pylon stood as the final tombstone on the world which hadbecome a prison. The old puzzle of that race's end was solved. The speaker was sputtering with Stendal's impatient questions, as Zeke and themen studied each other, but they gave no attention to it. Preacher Hooksighed, breaking the silence. "Man goeth to his long home," he quoted softly. "And the mourners go about thestreets; or ever the silver cord be loosed, or the golden bowl be broken, orthe pitcher be broken at the fountain, or the wheel broken at the cistern; andthe dust return to the earth as it was, and the spirit return unto God whogave it." Zeke nodded and picked up the microphone. "Just get the whiskey. We've decided to skip the rejuvenation." He put the microphone back on its hook carefully and headed toward thehandrails that led down, with the others behind him. Ozin had the rocketwaiting, and they climbed in and strapped themselves down. Then the rockets blasted, and the last five men beyond the Earth were headinghome. Instinct SENTHREE WAVED ASIDE the slowing scooter and lengthened his stride down thesidewalk; he had walked all the way from the rocket port, and there was nopoint to a taxi now that he was only a few blocks from the bio-labs. Besides, it was too fine a morning to waste in riding. He sniffed at the crisp, cleanfumes of gasoline appreciatively and listened to the music of his hard heelsslapping against the concrete. It was good to have a new body again. He hadn't appreciated what life was likefor the last hundred years or so. He let his eyes rove across the streettoward the blue flame of a welding torch and realized how long it had beensince his eyes had really appreciated the delicate beauty of such a flame. Thewise old brain in his chest even seemed to think better now. It was worth every stinking minute he'd spent on Venus. At times like this, one could realize how good it was to be alive and to be a robot. Then he sobered as he came to the old bio-labs. Once there had been plans fora fine new building instead of the old factory in which he had started it allfour hundred years ago. But somehow, there'd never been time for that. It hadtaken almost a century before they could master the technique of building upgenes and chromosomes into the zygote of a simple fish that would breed withthe natural ones. Another century hadgone by before they produced Oscar, the first artificially made pig. And therethey 'seemed to have stuck. Sometimes it seemed to Senthree that they were no nearer recreating Man than they had been when they started. He dilated the door and went down the long hall, studying his reflection inthe polished walls absently. It was a good body. The black enamel was perfectand every joint of the metal case spelled new techniques and luxuriousfitting. But the old worries were beginning to settle. He grunted at OscarLXXII, the lab mascot, and received an answering grunt. The pig came over toroot at his feet, but he had no time for that. He turned into the main labroom, already taking on the worries of his job. It wasn't hard to worry as he saw the other robots. They were clustered aboutsome object on a table, dejection on every gleaming back. Senthree shovedCeofor and Beswun aside and moved up. One look was enough. The female of theeleventh couple lay there in the strange stiffness of protoplasm that haddied, a horrible grimace on her face. "How long-and what happened to the male?" Sen-three asked, Ceofor swung to face him quickly. "Hi, boss. You're late. Hey, new body!" Senthree nodded, as they came grouping around, but his words were automatic ashe explained about falling in the alkali pool on Venus and ruining his wornbody completely. "Had to wait for a new one. And then the ship got held upwhile we waited for the Arcturus su-perlight ship to land. They'd found half adozen new planets to colonize, and had to spread the word before they'd setdown. Now, what about the creatures?" "We finished educating about three days ago," Ceofor told him. Ceofor was thefirst robot trained hi Sen-three's technique of gene-building and the seniorassistant. "Expected you back then, boss. But . . . well, see for yourself. The man is still alive, but he won't be long." Senthree followed them back to another room and looked through the window. He looked away quickly. It had been anotherfailure. The man was crawling about the floor on hands and knees, falling halfthe time to his stomach, and drooling. His garbled mouthing made no sense. "Keep the news robots out," he ordered. It would never do to let the publicsee this. There was already too much of a cry against homovivifying, and thecrowds were beginning to mutter something about it being unwise to mess withvanished life forms. They seemed actually afraid of the legendary figure ofMan. "What luck on Venus?" one of them asked, as they began the job of carefullydissecting the body of the female failure to look for the reason behind thelack of success. "None. Just another rumor. I don't think Man ever established self-sufficient colonies. If he did, they didn't survive. But I found something else-somethingthe museum would give a fortune for. Did my stuff arrive?" "You mean that box of tar? Sure, it's over there hi the corner." Senthree let the yielding plastic of his mouth smile at them as he strodetoward it. They had already ripped off the packing, and now he reached up fora few fine wires in the tar. It came off as he pulled, loosely repacked over athin layer of wax. At that, he'd been lucky to sneak it past customs. This wasthe oldest, crudest, and biggest robot discovered so far-perhaps one of thefabulous Original Models. It stood there rigidly, staring out of its pitted, expressionless face. But the plate on its chest had been scraped carefullyclean, and Senthree pointed it out to them. MAKEPEACE ROBOT, SER. 324MD2991. SURGEON. "A mechanic for Man bodies," Beswun translated. "But that means . . ." "Exactly." Senthree put it into words. "It must know how Man's body was built- if it has retained any memory. I found it in a tarpit by sheer accident, andit seems to be fairly well preserved. No telling whether there were anymagnetic fields to erode memories, ofcourse, and it's all matted inside. But if we can get it to working ..." Beswun took over. He had been trained as a physicist before the mysterious lure of the bio-lab had drawn him here. Now he began wheeling the crude robotaway. If he could get it into operation, the museum could wait. The recreation of Man came first! Senthree pulled x-ray lenses out of, a pouch and r6~ placed the normal ones inhis eyes before going over to join the robots who were beginning dissection. Then he switched them for the neutrino detector lenses that had made this work possible. The neutrino was the only particle that could penetrate the delicateprotoplasmic cells without ruining them and yet permit the necessary millionsof tunes magnification. It was a fuzzy image, since the neutrino spin madesuch an insignificant field for the atomic nuclei to work on that few weredeflected. But through them, he could see the vague outlines of the patternwithin the cells. It was as they had designed the original cell-there had beenno reshuffling of genes in handling. He switched to his micromike hands andbegan the delicate work of tracing down the neuron connections. There was onlyan occasional mutter as one of the robots beside him switched to some new investigation. The female should have' lived! But somewhere, in spite of all their care, shehad died. And now the male was dying. Eleven couples-eleven failures. Senthreewas no nearer finding the creators of his race than he had been centuriesbefore. Then the radio hi his head buzzed its warning and he let it cut in, straightening from his work. "Senthree." "The Director is in your office. Will you report at once?" "Damn!" The word had no meaning, but it was strangely satisfying at times. What did old Emptinine want ... or wait again, there'd been a selection whilehe was on Venus investigating the rumors of Man. Some young administrator- Arpeten-had the job now. Ceofor looked up guiltily, obviously having tuned in. "I should have warned you. We got word three days ago he was coming, butforgot it in reviving the couple. Trouble?" Senthree shrugged, screwing his normal lenses back in and trading to theregular hands. They couldn't have found out about the antique robot. They hadbeen seen by nobody else. It was probably just sheer curiosity over some rumorthat they were reviving the couple. If his appropriation hadn't been aboutexhausted, Senthree would have told him where to go; but now was hardly thetime, with a failure on one hand and a low credit balance on the other. Hepolished his new head quickly with the aid of one of the walls for a mirrorand headed toward his office. But Arpeten was smiling. He got to his feet as the bio-lab chief entered, holding out a well-polished hand. "Dr. Senthree. Delighted. And you've got aninteresting place here. I've already seen most of it. And that pig- they tellme it's a descendant of a boar out of your test tubes." "Incubation wombs. But you're right-the seventy-second generation." "Fascinating." Arpeten must have been reading too much of that book ProvenPoints to Popularity they'd dug up in the ruins of Hudson ten years before, but it had worked. He was the Director. "But tell me. Just what good arepigs?" Senthree grinned, in spite of himself. "Nobody knows. Men apparently kept alot of them, but so far as I can see they are completely useless. They'reclever, in a way. But I don't think they were pets. Just another mystery." "Umm. Like men. Maybe you can tell me what good Man will be. I've been curiousabout that since I saw your appropriations. But nobody can answer." "It's in the records," Senthree told him sharply. Then he modified his voicecarefully. "How well do you know your history? I mean about the beginning." "Well ..." He probably knew some of it, Senthree thought. They all got part of it aslegends. He leaned back in his seat now, though, as the biochemist began the old tale of the beginning as theyknew it. They knew that there had been Man a million years before them. Andsomebody-Asimov or Asenion, the record wasn't quite clear-had apparentlycreated the first robot. They had improved it up to about the present level. Then there had been some kind of a contest in which violent forces had ruined the factories, most of the robots, and nearly all of the Men. It was believedfrom the fragmentary records that a biological weapon had killed the rest ofman, leaving only the robots. Those first robots, as they were now known, had had to start on a ruined worldfrom scratch-a world where mines were exhausted, and factories were gone. They'd learned to get metals from the seas, and had spent years and centuriesslowly rebuilding the machines to build new robots. There had been only two ofthem when the task was finished, and they had barely time enough to run onenew robot off and educate him sketchily. Then they had discharged finally, andhe had taken up rebuilding the race. It was almost like beginning with nohistory and no science. Twenty millennia had passed before they began torebuild a civilization of their own. "But why did Man die?" Senthree asked. "That's part of the question. And arewe going to do the same? We know we are similar to Man. Did he change himselfin some way that ruined him? Can we change ourselves safely? You know thatthere are a thousand ways we could improve ourselves. We could add antigravity, and get rid of our cumbersome vehicles. We could add more arms. Wecould eliminate our useless mouths and talk by radio. We could add newcircuits to our brains. But we don't dare. One school says that nobody canbuild a better race than itself, so Man must have been better than we are-andif he made us this way, there was a reason. Even if the psychologists can'tunderstand some of the circuits in our brains, they don't dare touch them. "We're expanding through the universe-but we can't even change ourselves tofit the new planets. And until we can find the reasons for Man'sdisappearance, that makes good sense. We know he was planning to change himself. We have bitsof evidence. And he's dead. To make it worse, we have whole reels of educationtape that probably contain all the answers- but information is keyed to Man'sbrain, and we can't respond to it. Give us a viable Man, and he can interpretthat. Or we can find out by comparison what we can and cannot do. I maintainwe can do a lot." Arpeten shook his head doubtfully. "I suppose you think you know why he died!" "I think so, yes. Instinct! That's a built-in reaction, an unlearned thought. Man had it. If a man heard a rattlesnake, he left the place hi a hurry, eventhough he'd never heard it before. Response to that sound was built into him. No tape impressed it, and no experience was needed. We know the instincts ofsome of the animals, too-and one of them is to struggle and kill-like the antswho kill each other off. I think Man did just that. He couldn't get rid of hisinstincts when they were no longer needed, and they killed him. He should havechanged-and we can change. But I can't tell that from animals. I needintelligent life, to see whether instinct or intelligence will dominate. Androbots don't have instincts-I've looked for even one sign of something notlearned individually, and can't find it. It's the one basic difference betweenus. Don't you see, Man is the whole key to our problem of whether we canchange or not without risking extermination?" "Umm." The director sounded noncommittal. "Interesting theory. But how are yougoing to know you have Man?" Senthree stared at the robot with more respect. He tried to explain, but hehad never been as sure of that himself as he might. Theoretically, they hadbones and 'bits of preserved tissue. They had examined the gene pattern ofthese, having learned that the cells of the individual contain the samepattern as that of the zygote. And they had other guides-man's achievements, bits of his literature. From these, some working theories could be made. Buthe couldn't be quite sure-they'd never really known whether man's pigment wasdark brown, pinkish orange, white, or what; the records they had seemed to disagreeon this. "We'll know when we get an intelligent animal with instinct," he said at last. "It won't matter exactly whether he is completely like Man or not. At least itwill give us a check on things we must know. Until then, we'll have to go ontrying. You might as well know that the last experiment failed, though it wascloser. But in another hundred years . . ." "So." Arpeten's face became bland, but he avoided the look of Senthree. "I'mafraid not. At least for a while. That's what I came about, you know. We'vejust had word of several new planets around Arcturus, and it will takfr themajor allocation of our funds to colonize these. New robots must be built, newships-oh, you know. And we're retrenching a bit on other things. Of course, ifyou'd succeeded . . . but perhaps it's better you failed. You know how thesentiment against reviving Man has grown." Senthree growled bitterly. He'd seen how it was carefully nurtured-though hehad to admit it seemed to be easy to create. Apparently most of the robotswere afraid of Man-felt he would again take over, or something. Superstitiousfools. "How much longer?" he asked. "Oh, we won't cut back what you have, Dr. Senthree. But I'm afraid we simplycan't allocate more funds. When this is finished, I was hoping to make youbiological investigator, incidentally, on one of the planets. There'll be workenough. . . . Well, it was a pleasure." He shook hands again, and walked out, his back a gleaming ramrod of efficiency and effectiveness. Senthree turned back, his new body no longer moving easily. It could alreadyfeel the harsh sands and unknown chemical poisons of investigating a newplanet- the futile, empty carding of new life that could have no real purposeto the robots. No more appropriations! And they had barely enough funds tomeet the current bills. Four hundred years-and a ship to Arcturus had ended it in three months. Instinct, he thought again- given life with intelligence and instinct together for one year, and he couldsettle half the problems of his race, perhaps. But robots could not haveinstincts. Fifty years of study had proven that. Beswun threw up a hand in greeting as he returned, and he saw that thedissection was nearly complete, while the antique robot was activated. A hingeon its ludicrous jaw was moving, and rough, grating words were coming out. Senthree turned to the dissecting bench, and then swung back as he heard them. "Wrong . . . wrong," it was muttering. "Can not live. Is not good brain. Nopineal. Medulla good, but not good cerebrum. Fissures wrong. Maybe pituitarydisfunction? No. How can be?" It probed doubtfully and set the brain aside. "Mutation maybe. Very bad. Need Milliken mike. See nucleus of cells. Maybejust freak, maybe new disease." Senthree's fingers were taut and stiff as he fished into his bag and came outwith a set of lenses. Beswun shook his head and made a waiting sign. He wentout at a run, to come back shortly with a few bits of metal and the shavingsfrom machining still on his hands. "Won't fit-but these adapters should do it. There, 324MD2991. Now come over here where you can look at it over this table- that's where the-uh, rays are." He turned back, and Senthree saw that a fine wire ran from one adapter. "Hedoesn't speak our bio-terminology, Senthree. We'll have to see the same thingshe does. There-we can watch it on the screen. Now, 324MD2991, you tell us whatis wrong and point it out. Are your hands steady enough for that?" "Hands one-billionth inch accurate," the robot creaked; it was a meaningless noise, though they had found the unit of measure mentioned. But whatever itmeant, the hands were steady enough. The microprobe began touching shadowybunches of atoms, droning and grating. "Freak. Very bad freak. How he lived? Would stop tropoblast, not attach to uterus. Ketone-no ke-tone there. Notunderstand. How he live?" Ceofor dashed for their chromosome blanks and began lettering in the complexsymbols they used. For asecond, Senthree hesitated. Then he caught fire and began making notes alongwith his assistant. It seemed to take hours; it probably did. The old robothad his memory intact, but there were no quick ways for him to communicate. And at last, the antique grunted in disgust and turned his back on them. Beswun pulled a switch. "He expects to be discharged when not in use. Crazy, isn't it?" the physicistexplained. "Look, boss, am I wrong, or isn't that close to what we did on theeleventh couple?" "Only a few genes different in three chromosomes. We were close. But-umm, that's ridiculous. Look at all the brain tissue he'd have-and a lot of it unconnected. And here-that would put an extra piece on where big and littleintestines join-a perfect focal point for infection. It isn't efficientbiological engineering. And yet-umm-most animals do have just that kind ofengineering. I think the old robot was right-this would be Man!" He looked attheir excited faces, and his shoulders sank. "But there isn't time. Not eventime to make a zygote and see what it would look like. Our appropriationswon't come through." It should have been a bombshell, but he saw at once that they had alreadyguessed it. Ceofor stood up slowly. "We can take a look, boss. We've got the sperm from the male that failed-allwe have to do is modify those three, instead of making up a whole cell. Wemight as well have some fun before we go out looking for sand fleas thatsecrete hydrofluoric acid and menace our colonies. Come on, even in your newbody I'll beat you to a finished cell!" Senthree grinned ruefully, but he moved toward the creation booth. His handssnapped on the little time field out of pure habit as he found a perfect cell. The little field would slow time almost to zero within its limits, and keepany damage from occurring while he worked. It made his own work difficult, since he had to force the probe against that, but it was insulated to someextent by other fields. Then his hands took over. For a time he worked and thought, but the feeling ofthe protoplasm came into them, and his hands were almost one with the lifestuff, sensing its tiny responses, inserting another link onto a chain, supplanting an atom of hydrogen with one of the hydroxyl radicals, wieldingall the delicate chemical manipulation. He removed the defective genes andgently inserted the correct ones. Four hundred years of this work lay behindhim-work he had loved, work which had meant the possible evolution of his raceinto all it might be. It had become instinct to him-instinct in only a colloquial sense, however; this was learned response, and real instinct lay deeper than that, so deepthat no reason could overcome it and that it was automatic even the first time. Only Man had had instinct and intelligence- stored somehow in this tinycell that lay within the time field. He stepped out, just as Ceofor was drawing back in a dead heat. But theyounger robot inspected Senthree's cell, and nodded. "Less disturbance and aneater job on the nucleus-I can't see where you pierced the wall. Well, if wehad thirty years-even twenty-we could have Man again-or a race. Yours is maleand mine female. But there's no time. . . . Shall I leave the time field on?" Senthree started to nod. Then he swung to Beswun. "The time field. Can it be reversed?" "You mean to speed time up within it? No, not with that model. Take a biggerone. I could build you one in half an hour. But who'd want to speed up tunewith all the troubles you'd get? How much?" "Ten thousand-or at least seven thousand times! The period is up tomorrow whendisbursements have to be made. I want twenty years in a day." Beswun shook his head. "No. That's what I was afraid of. Figure it this way: you speed things up ten thousand times and that means the molecules in therespeed up just that much, literally. Now 273° times ten thousand-and you havemore than two million degreesof temperature. And those molecules have energy! They come busting out ofthere. No, can't be done." "How much can you do?" Senthree demanded. Beswun considered. "Ten times-maybe no more than nine. That gives you all therefractories would handle, if we set it up down in the old pit under thebuilding-you know, where they had the annealing oven." It wasn't enough; it would still take two years. Sen-' three dropped onto aseat, vagrantly wondering again how this queer brain of his that thepsychologists studied futilely could make him feel tired when his body couldhave no fatigue. It was probably one of those odd circuits they didn't daretouch. "Of course, you can use four fields," Beswun stated slowly. "Big one outside, smaller one, still smaller, and smallest inside that. Fourth power of nine isabout sixty-six hundred. That's close-raise that nine a little and you'd haveyour twenty years in a day. By the time it leaked from field to field, itwouldn't matter. Take a couple of hours." "Not if you get your materials together and build each shell inside the otheryou'll be operating faster each step then," Ceofor shouted. "Somebody'11 haveto go in and stay there a couple of our minutes toward the end to attach theeducator tapes-and to revive the couple!" "Take power," Beswun warned. Senthree shrugged. Let it. If the funds they had wouldn't cover it, theDirectorate would have to make it up, once it was used. Besides, once Man wascreated, they couldn't fold up the bio-labs. "I'll go in," he suggested. "My job," Ceofor told him flatly. "You won the contest in putting the cellsright." Senthree gave in reluctantly, largely because the younger robot had moreexperience at reviving than he did. He watched Beswun assemble the complicatednet of wires and become a blur as he seemed to toss the second net togetheralmost instantly. The biochemist couldn't see the third go up-it was suddenlythere, and Beswun was coming out as it flashed into existence. Heheld up four fingers, indicating all nets were working. Ceofor dashed in with the precious cells for the prepared incubators thatwould nurture the bodies until maturity, when they would be ready for theeducators. His body seemed to blur, jerk, and disappear. And almost at once hewas back. Senthree stood watching for a moment more, but there was nothing to see. Hehesitated again, then turned and moved out of the building. Across the streetlay his little lodging place, where he could relax with his precious twobooks-almost complete-that had once been printed by Man. Tonight he wouldstudy that strange bit of Man's history entitled Gather, Darkness, with itsodd indications of a science that Man had once had which had surpassed eventhat of the robots now. It was pleasanter than the incomprehensibility of themysteriously titled Mein Kampf. He'd let his power idle, and mull over it, andconsider again the odd behavior of male and female who made such a complicatedbusiness of mating. That was probably more instinct-Man, it seemed, was filledwith instincts. For a long time, though, he sat quietly with the book on his lap, wondering what it would be like to have instincts. There must be many unpleasant thingsabout it. But there were also suggestions that it could be pleasant. Well, he'd soon know by observation, even though he could never experience it. Manshould have implanted one instinct in a robot's brain, at least, just to showwhat it was like. He called the lab once, and Ceofor reported that all was doing nicely, andthat both children were looking quite well. Outside the window, Senthree hearda group go by, discussing the latest bits of news on the Arcturus expedition. At least in that, Man had failed to equal the robots. He had somehow diedbefore he could find the trick of using identity exchange to overcome thelimitation imposed by the speed of light. Finally he fell to making up a speech that he could deliver to the Director, Arpenten, when success was in his hands. It must be very short-something thatwould stick in the robot's mind for weeks, but carrying everything a scientist could feel on proving that those who opposed him were wrong. Let's see. ... The buzzer on the telescreen cut through his thoughts, and he flipped it on tosee Ceofor's face looking out. Senthree's spirits dropped abruptly as hestared at the younger robot. "Failure? No!" The other shook his head. "No. At least, I don't know. I couldn't give themfull education. Maybe the tape was uncomfortable. They took a lot of it, butthe male tore his helmet off and took the girl's off. Now they just sit there, rubbing their heads and staring around." He paused, and the little darkened ridges of plastic over his eyes tensed. "The time speed-up is off. But I didn't know what to do." "Let them alone until I get there. If it hurts them, we can give them the restof it later. How are they otherwise?" "I don't know. They look all right, boss." Ceofor hesitated, and his voicedropped. "Boss, I don't like it. There's something wrong here. I can't quitefigure out what it is, but it isn't the way I expected. Hey, the male justpushed the female off her seat. Do you think their destructive instinct . . . ? No, she's sitting down on the floor now, with her head against him, andholding one of his hands. Wasn't that part of the mating ritual in one of thebooks?" Senthree started to agree, a bit of a smile coming onto his face. It looked asif instinct were already in operation. But a strange voice cut him off. "Hey, you robots, when do we eat aroundhere?" They could talk! It must have been the male. And if it wasn't the politethanks and gratitude Senthree had expected, that didn't matter. There had beenall kinds of Men in the books, and some were polite while others were crude. Perhaps forced education from the tapes without fuller social experience wasresponsible for that. But it would all adjust in time. He started to turn back to Ceofor, but the youngerrobot was no longer there, and the screen looked out on a blank wall. Senthreecould hear the loud voice crying out again, rough and harsh, and there was ashrill, whining sound that might be the female. The two voices blended withthe vague mutter of robot voices until he could not make out the words. He wasted no time in trying. He was already rushing down to the street andheading toward the labs. Instinct-the male had already shown instinct, and thefemale had responded. They would have to be slow with the couple at first, ofcourse-but the whole answer to the robot problems lay at hand. It would onlytake a little time and patience now. Let Arpeten sneer, and let the world doteon the Arcturus explorers. Today, biochemistry had been, crowned king with themagic of intelligence combined with instinct as its power. Ceofor came out of the lab at a run with another robot behind him. The young robot looked dazed, and there was another emotion Senthree could not place. The older biochemist nodded, and the younger one waved quickly. "Can't stopnow. They're hungry." He was gone at full speed. Senthr.ee realized suddenly that no adequate supply of fruit and vegetableshad been provided, and he hadn't even known how often Man had to eat. Orexactly what. Luckily, Ceofor was taking care of that. He went down the hall, hearing a tumult of voices, with robots apparentlyspread about on various kinds of hasty business. The main lab where the couplewas seemed quiet. Senthree hesitated at the door, wondering how to addressthem. There must be no questioning now. Today he would not force himself onthem, nor expect them to understand his purposes. He must welcome them andmake them feel at ease in this world, so strange to them with theirprehistoric tape education. It would be hard at first to adjust to a world ofonly robots, with no other Man people. The matter of instinct that had takenso long could wait a few days more. The door dilated in front of him and he stepped into the lab, his eyes turningto the low table where they sat. They looked healthy, and there was no sign ofmisery oruncertainty that he could see, though he could not be sure of that until heknew them better. He could not even be sure it was a scowl on the male's face as the Man turned and looked at him. "Another one, eh? Okay, come up here. What you want?" Then Senthree no longer wondered how to address the Man. He bowed low as heapproached them, and instinct made his voice soft and apologetic as heanswered. "Nothing, Master. Only to serve you." SuperstitionTHE SEPELORA CRAWLED along at her maximum eighty light-years an hour, as shehad done for the four months since she'd left the university planet of Terra. The space-denial generators hummed on monotonously, maintaining the fieldaround the ship where space almost ceased to exist. The big viewing panel andports were blanked out by the effect, forming perfect mirrors. There was asteady wash of slightly stale air through the control cabin, and the pseudo- gravity on the decks was unvarying. With less than a day of superspeed left, Captain Derek should have been content. Instead, he sat slumped loosely over the control board, staring with unfocusedeyes at his image in the panel, while his fingers doodled black aces, hangman's knots, and all the other symbols of doom for which his culture hadno real referents. His deep-set eyes and the -hollows in his cheeks gave himan almost cadaverous look, borne out by the general angularity of his body. Atforty-five he looked fifty, with gray speckles around his temples and lines ofworry etched deeply into his face. Abruptly a small speaker came to life with the voice of his aide, Ferad. "Psych Siryl to see you, sir." Derek sighed, letting his eyes focus slowly as his fingers came up in the ancient sign against evil, pointing at his own image. Thephysicist, Kayel, must have sent her; the man had been eyeing Derek all duringthe orders for instrument alert. But now that she was here, there was nothingto be done about it. "Send her in," he acknowledged, and turned slowly to facethe door that began opening. Siryl's bearing was more military than his, in spite of her civilian blouse. Her feet tapped across the deck precisely, her hips swayed just enough in thesplit skirt, and her face bore the impersonal warmth of all psychologists onduty. Under her professional pride lay the curious overdeveloped consciousnessof being female possible only to women who wanted to be men. She was ten yearsyounger than Derek and only slightly shorter, but her features and body weregood, as near beauty as grooming and care could make them. Only her hair was wrong, and its black severity was deliberate. She wasted no time. Before he could rise, she was beside him, rolling back hissleeve. There was the coldness of an antiseptic and then the faint bite of aneedle. "You'll be all right in a minute," she said coolly. "I'd have comesooner, but all these rumors have kept me busy. I've been expecting this; yourchart shows you're a depressive with an irregular cycle." Her precise smilewas calculated to make it seem no more than mention of a bit of common gossip. "Come on now, Captain. Things aren't all black." Now that the drug had ended his chance to wallow in the mood of his ill- fortune, he was almost glad. But her words touched it off again. The jinx wasmore than a mood. He was the only man of his age in the Service who rated lessthan sector commander. Everything he undertook went wrong, and seldom throughhis own failure. There had been the training ship that blew up, the girl whodied from mutational weaknesses, the mislaid citation papers-and the wholeaffair leading to this foredoomed command. "Optimism!" he said bitterly. "You should head an expedition that you know isbound to fail-because you head it!" She snorted. "Superstition! Sure, you had a run of misfortune, Derek. But yourreal trouble came when you started to believe that jinx nonsense. You're sosure of bad luck now that it's sapped all your initiative. Look at you. You'vebeen eyeing me for months, wanting me and being afraid to make a pass becausesomething might go wrong!" There was too much truth in it, and he could feel the blood rush to his face. She stood studying his reaction clinically, as if using it to gauge theprogress of the anti-depressant. Then suddenly she laughed easily and droppedto the opposite chair. "Maybe you should try sometime, Derek-but not now. I'mhaving my hands full with the men's rumors. Look, why not tell me the truthabout this expedition? After all, we're almost ready to cut speed." The drug was beginning to work now, killing some of his gloom. He was stillconvinced of his jinx, but he could think of other things. Now he consideredher question, surprised that she hadn't already been briefed. "How much of thebackground and history of the war do they teach on Terra?" he asked. Some ofthe distant worlds had queer legends that would make explanation difficult. She frowned impatiently for a second. Then she apparently decided to humor himand began sketching her knowledge in. Aside from her provincial belief thatmen had originated on Terra, it was accurate enough. Wherever men had started, the race had seemingly discovered space travel two thousand years before andsomehow had almost immediately stumbled onto some form of faster-than-lighttravel. They had spread over the cosmos at a fantastic rate, using up vastquantities of some power element known as uranium. Thirteen hundred years ago, dwindling supplies of that had split them into twocompeting empires. An un-thinkably violent war had blasted systems of suns tonovas, had used the last of the uranium, and had left their culture in ruins. Except for misleading hints that it had involved negation of time, thesuperdrive had been lost. It had taken centuries to find new power in thefusion of boron. It had taken longer to discover how to eliminate space around theship, leaving only a subfractional connection with the universe and using the"suction" resulting from imbalance to drive them. Then men began spreadingagain. Fifty years ago, they had run into the other empire- an empire technicallyahead of them and filled with hate that had been nursed for thirteen centuries. The enemy gave no quarter and began savagely wiping them out, planet by planet. For a time, the Federation had seemingly been doomed. Butlately, under the drive of necessity, they had begun to match the enemyscience. In a few more years ... "In a few years-or months-there won't be a Federation, unless this mission succeeds," he cut into her routine optimism. He fished around in a drawer tolocate one of the mission briefing sheets he'd helped prepare. For a second, his lips twisted as he saw the dull, official words. The Waraok, on its way to rendezvous with the Fifth Fleet, had cut its space- denial drive to make a fix in one of the old sun-blasted sectors at 917/ 2.47:23 Federation time. At 9-17/2.47:26 they were less than a quartermillion miles from one of the planets of Sirius. Something had thrown them more than two hundred thousand light-yearsinstantaneously! And unless they could wipe out the enemy base or find thesecret and its countersecret, that something could as easily throw boron bombsinto every Federation sun! With that threat, even such harebrained schemes asthis mission had to be tried. The Sepelora and eleven other ships were hastily stocked with every possibleinstrument, staffed with technicians, and blasted off on a course that wouldbring them out of superspeed at points around the recorded original fix of theWaraok. Their instruments would be recording and their space-denialtransmitters signaling as they emerged, while a fleet of battleships followed. If they ran into the mysterious weapon and were lucky, the instruments mightdetermine its nature. Otherwise, the locations of their last signals mightpinpoint the enemy base for bombing. Then they could only hope it was anexperimental station and the only one the enemy had. Siryl had glanced over the paper. Now she crumpled it in sudden disgust. "Theygave us this guff back on Terra! Derek, you don't expect me or the men tobelieve such nonsense? Instantaneous teleportation! Could you believe it?" He stared at her, his first thrust of anger giving place to bitterness thatdrove away the last physical effects of the drug. "I should be able to," hetold her. "I was captain of the Waraok when it happened!" _ It had been his first command of a battleship-and his last chance atpromotion; the loss of plans he had been carrying had cost the Federation amajor defeat, even though it had been no fault of his. Such miracles weren'tbeyond the power of his jinx. She snorted incredulously. "Captain, even I know that a single photon wouldhave infinite energy against a ship at infinite speed! You couldn't keep itout without a perfect space-denial-which means ceasing to exist. This storysounds like something from those papers of Aevan's we found. A finemathematician from before the Collapse, but superstitious like you. Heactually believed in mind reading, clairvoyance, and teleportation!" Legends indicated that people had once had such abilities to some extent, butthere was obviously no use in reminding her of that. He swore hotly. "I tellyou, I was there!" "Hypnotic implantation! Propaganda based on old superstition! You'd betterlook in your safe for sealed orders, Captain Der-" Red lights erupted on the control board. The alarm system went wild, withevery gong clamoring. A blare of light struck in through the viewing panel andthe big radar let out a whine, with a picture and coordinates forming to showa body of planetary size less than ten thousand miles below. Needlessly, thegreen letters on the board blazed out the fact that the superdrive was off. Derek silenced the gongs and began hitting his switches, trying to getinformation. Nobody answered. Crews were normally lax during superspeedcruising, but at least one man should have been on watch near the space-denialgenerators; the others should be reporting to their stations on the double. Hecut into the intercom and began yelling for immediate reports. The door of the cabin jerked open, but it was only the chubby figure of Ferad, scared white. Then another figure burst through the door, and Derek recognizedthe physicist, Kayel. The little man's weak chin seemed buried in his throatand his huge Adam's apple was bobbing horribly. He jerked one hand up, clutched around a crooked pipe he affected, and motioned tautly backward. "Gone!" he screamed. "All gone!" Derek cursed, shoved him aside, and headed through the door. He leaped acrossthe precabin, yanked another door open-and stopped. Five feet ahead, the deck ended. Where the cabins, storage hatches, rec rooms, galleys, and parts of the machine shops and engine rooms had been, there wasnothing! Or rather, there was only an empty hull with a single keri-bird fromSirius, squawking and beating its wings wildly in air that held the warm, wetscent of growing Sirian flowers! Beside him, Derek heard a sharp gasp from Siryl and felt her fingers bite intohis arm. Ferad stood frozen and Kayel was gasping for breath, trying to lighthis pipe against chattering teeth. He met Derek's gaze, glanced at Siryl, andsomehow steadied himself. "It-it just went! I was back there-" His finger pointed toward the remains ofthe engine room and the beginning of the rocket chambers. "Gone! Withoutcutting the hull! Completely impossible!" Derek could appreciate their shock, but after years of living with his jinx, he was practically immune. There were advantages to everything, even toregular bad luck. "What about the denial drive? Can we fix it?" "No." Kayel had hesitated, but his negative was definite. "Most of it's allright, but we'd need tools we don't have now." Derek nodded. "All right, see what our remaining instruments show; if we<-getback, the Federation will need those readings; Ferad, get back to the rockets. Somehow, we've got to make a landing on that planet under us. And Siryl, ifyou're done shouting superstition at me ..." Then he grinned thinly. She was staring at the yawning emptiness withunbelieving eyes, slowly crossing herself. Eighty men and tons of ship were gone, with only a Sirian bird and the perfumeof flowers in their place. Among the missing were the pilot, navigator, andengineer. Derek hadn't handled a rocket landing for twenty years, and hedidn't even have figures on the atmosphere and gravity of the world below. Hisgrin vanished and he groaned to himself as he headed back to the controlcabin. 2 The planet was closer when Kayel reported back with word that the instrumentsall showed exactly nothing. He was working with the spectroprobe, trying toget data for Derek, when Siryl came in with coffee as a peace offering. "Someof the supplies are all right," she reported. "Enough for-for four!" "Thanks." Derek tasted the coffee and found it vile. But at least it was hot and wet. "Better take some back to Ferad if you can find the way. Tell him ifhe doesn't report at once, I'll skin his fat carcass." Kayel gulped and accepted coffee from her as if he'd never seen a woman servefood before. He probably hadn't on Terra, judging by what she'd done to thecoffee. Derek interrupted the physicist's stumbling compliments. "Find anything yet, Kayel?" Siryl threw him a dirty look and went out, again on parade drill. Kayelnodded, turning back reluctantly. "One of the blasted systems, all right, sir. Spectrum looks as if the sun got a light dose, though." Probably one of the last suns the first war had ruined, Derek thought; men hadbeen running low on high-numbered atoms by then. If the blast had been mild, it might even have missed the planet. In that case, they might find machineryin some of the ruined cities. Kayel shook his head. "Planet was hit, all right. A lot of helium in theatmosphere shows that. Funny, though. A couple hundred miles of air withplenty of free oxygen-about like Terra." He sucked on his pipe, squintingthrough heavy lenses at the charts he had prepared. "Umm. Density against height . . . must have about gravity one. Damn. Shouldn't be free oxygen inthat quantity!" Derek muttered unhappily. The Slpelora wasn't equipped with full-sized vanes, and an atmosphere and high gravity would make landing harder. Still, if theygot down it would be handy. And while the ancient solar explosion would haveruined their hope for tools, it meant there was no danger from savages orbeasts left over from the old days; some of the distant worlds had turnedwild. Ferad reported finally, complaining at the impossible job of readying therockets by himself. "Put Siryl to work with you," Derek ordered. "They'll be ready in five minutesor we'll miss perigee." Their intrinsic momentum, left from their speed before cutting on the space- denial generators after takeoff, was carrying them down toward the planet hian ellipse that would approach within some six hundred miles. Surprisingly, Ferad reported the rockets ready and valves trimmed within thetime limit. The ship groaned as the rockets went on and Derek watched hisindicators grimly, expecting the worst. With so much of her interior bracingremoved, she was badly weakened and completely unbalanced. With his luck, anything could happen. Usually, he managed to get out of one mess beforegetting into another, but there had been that time during inspection ... The Sepelora hit the atmosphere badly. There had been no time for fullcorrection with the side rockets, and the gyroscopes were gone with themissing section. I One of the weakened girders let go with a snap that jarred his teeth.and theship wobbled before straightening out. Derek knocked the sweat out of his eyesand tried to remember all that he'd been taught back in rocketry school. Butall that came back was the instructor's long lecture on why accident pronesshould be kicked out at once. The ship righted, however, though it was close, and settled into a long, fastglide, with her hull pyrometers well into the red-hot zone but safe. Aprotective shield had slipped over the viewing panel, but the radar still gavethem a view of the ground. They came down to twenty miles above the surface, then to fifteen. Kayel let out a surprised whinny and pointed the stem of his pipe excitedly atthe screen. Derek could see nothing, but the little man watched intently assomething seemed to vanish. "A city! Straight lines- streets!" "Ruins, probably," Derek commented. Maybe they were in luck and the solarexplosion had only touched the planet, without burning it enough to destroybuildings and major tools. After thirteen hundred years, some would be ruined; but the ancients had built things to last on the outer planets. There was a thin layer of clouds that the ship cut through. Now the going wasrougher. Without full vanes, the Sepelora had all the lift of a stone, and theglide was growing steeper asymptotically, though her temperature was finallydropping. Derek got her tail down and began using controlled blasts. Three miles above the surface, she was falling almost straight down, going toofast and swaying badly. Correcting for the unbalanced weight was harder thanhe had expected. Then he was only a mile up. With a groan, he cut on more power, hoping noother girders snapped. It was going to be a close shave, with scant secondsleft. Kayel jerked up, screaming and pointing to the screen. Derek's eyes followedthe motion before he could pull them back. Something that might have beenrows of buildings showed there. But he couldn't worry about ruins; the blastwould flatten them, anyhow. "Derek! People! They're moving!" Kayel's voice was screeching in his ears. He thrust the obvious hysteria of the other from his thoughts. The last glancehad ruined his timing. Now the surface was zooming up. The Sepelora wobbled, pv-ershot, and then slowly came upright. Derek's eyes jerked to catch a quickglimpse of the screen. For a second, his hands froze. Along the regular rowsthat must be streets, things were scurrying madly out of his path! There was no time to think. Conditioning against killing others, no matterwhat the risk, took over. His fingers bit into the side controls, and theSepelora twisted under him, beginning to topple. For a second, the full sideblasts tossed the ship backward. Then she dropped, just as he cut power in afinal conditioned reflex. Kayel had fainted. Derek stared at him and down at his own hands. The ship wasstill. There had been no shock. He tried to figure it out; in theory, thevarious forces could counterbalance to cause a dead halt at just the moment oftouching surface. But the chances were so remote that no pilot could haveestimated them. It was as if all the years of his incredibly consistent jinxhad come to a balance in one impossible piece of blind good luck. Kayel came to slowly, blinking. His fingers groped up to find his glassesstill on his nose. "My pipe!" he squeaked, and ducked down for it. Then hestraightened, staring at Derek. "We're alive!" "No thanks to you," Derek said curtly. He flipped a switch and the shield overthe viewing panel began sliding up, just as Siryl and Ferad came in. Theylooked exhausted, but less shaken than Kayel-probably because they hadn'tknown what was going on. "Don't start cheering yet. There are people here-andthere shouldn't be on any sun-grazed planet we haven't recol-onized. With myluck, I've probably landed us right hi the middle of an enemy colony!" "Luck!" Siryl snorted. Then she reddened faintly at his look, but went onstubbornly. "The enemy are compulsive troglodytes-they don't build surface dwellings. And look at that," The shield had come up enough to show fields around them, apparently corn andpotatoes. Beyond, the edge of the town could be seen, built in low structuresof crude stone and thatching. "An agricultural culture," Siryl guessed quickly. "Look-there's one! See, coming through the field. We're in luck. Primitive agricultural societies areusually peaceful." Several people were filing toward the ship, showing no sign of fear. They weredressed in rough pants with serapes or blankets thrown over their shoulders. The men wore beards with hair to their shoulders, all of a uniform brownexcept for the graybeard in front. The women were distinguished only by thickplaits around their heads. They were a healthy looking bunch. The graybeard moved to the viewing panel, waving at them with some bit of whatseemed to be stone in his hand. His motions indicated that they were to comeout. Derek shrugged faintly and nodded. He headed toward the door. Siryl caught his arm. "Where are you going?" "Out. You said they werepeaceful." "Usually peaceful," she qualified hastily. "But-" "Unless they'resuperstitious about sky devils, eh? I'm still going out." He headed down thenearest passage that would lead to a lock. There was nothing else to do. Theirfew weapons were gone, along with their tools and the big space-decoupledsignaling transmitter. The Sepelora was only a converted freighter and herhull was too thin to withstand any concerted attack by even primitiveagriculturists. If the worst had to happen, it was better to get it over withat once. Siryl hesitated for a second. Then her heels tapped out a steady pace behindhim, while the other two followed reluctantly. She caught up with Derek andmarched beside him. If she was afraid, there was no sign of it. He opened theinner lock, then the outer, anddropped to the field of stubble. As he landed, the gray-beard came around thecurve of the ship. The old man's lips parted in what might have been a smile, and words came out, slowly at first, then more rapidly in the classic greetings of Twenty-fifth- Century English. When the words finally ceased, Derek stepped forward and began a carefulreply. Classic English was the basic language from which that of his ownplanet had been derived, and he'd studied it during eight long years ofschooling, without ever expecting to use it. The graybeard turned back to his people and stood silently for a minute, glancing sideways at the four. Siryl was staring at Derek in surprise. "I dida paper on Ae-van's work," she said. "So I had to learn Classic. That's thepure language, unchanged after thirteen hundred years! And primitive culturesdon't preserve dead languages-speech changes from century to century." Derek shrugged. She knew a lot of things with the certainty of the teacherswho had taught her. It wouldn't be the first time the authorities were wrong. He forgot it as the old man came forward. "My name is Skora. I'm the-the priest of the village." He gestured to hispeople. "We've decided that you are welcome on the planet of god. And we'rehappy that you landed safely. I saw your space ship so late that there washardly time to use the god power to land you without harm to us. If you'llwalk back with us, there will be shelter and warmth. The nights are quite coldhere." Derek turned the offer over in his mind. He'd have preferred to stay with theship, but wisdom dictated otherwise. "That's kind of you. We're much obliged." He was proud of remembering the phrase. The old man nodded, while his eyes examined the others. A smile etched hisface as he spotted Ferad's hungry looks at one of the younger women. "She'sunmarried," he said. "Tell him she likes him! She shall be his!" Siryl translated quickly. "Accept!" she urged, though Ferad's fat faceindicated no need to such advice. "You'll insult them otherwise. Derek, I was right. They're primitives- hospitable, provincial, superstitious. Did you notice how he called this theplanet of god? And how he thinks he landed you with some incantation?" Derek grunted something she took for assent. Let the old man have full credit; prayer or magic was as good an explanation as any other. He studied the quietgroup as they moved toward the village. "Maybe," he said. "But I'd like to know how your primitives knew about spaceships and safe landings! And I'm curious about how he knew we had to translatethe language for Ferad when both of us were pretty fluent in it. Anotherthing-he said the nights are cold here, as if he knew they aren't on all theplanets." For once, she was as silent as the natives. Derek had been hoping she'd havean answer, and her silence added to his doubts. Something was out of order onSkora's planet of god! 3 The house assigned to them had proved surprisingly comfortable after theylearned to work the peat-burning fireplace. The food had been passable, if aman liked cereals and mutton. Derek had gone to sleep readily enough, to hissurprise. But dawn had found him awake. No attempt was made to stop him as hewalked out of the village, past the undisturbed Sepelora, and on to the lowhills beyond the tilled land. Siryl was apparently right in assuming they weresafe, once bread had been broken. But his uncertainty returned as he studied the view from the top of thenearest hill. The solar explosion had hit hard at one time; the ground wasashy in places and actually melted to slag hi others. A few plants grew hereand there, but thinned out in the distance, indicating they had spread fromthe village. There were no trees anywhere. By all indications, rainfall mustbe infrequent and light. The village seemed like a bit of another world, transplanted intothe wasteland. From the top of another hill Derek spotted what must be a second village, perhaps four miles away, also green and thriving. He stared about for a roadbetween the two towns. No path led out of either. Men were already in the fields as he returned. Some stood quietly watchingtheir sheep and goats; others were puttering about in ways he couldn'tunderstand. There was none of the grimness he'd always associated with livingoff the ground on backward planets. Beside the field where the Sepelora had landed, Derek saw a young man pushinga stick along the ground, leaving a furrow of turned earth behind. There wasno sign of a plowshare, aside from a piece of bent wire, and the man was usingonly his own muscular power, but he was obviously plowing. From his effortlessmotion, he was either inhumanly strong or the ground was incredibly soft. Derek reached over for a handful of dirt, but it seemed normal enough. "Good morning, Derek. I'm Michla." The plowman had stopped and walked over, leaving the stick standing. He took some of the dirt and rubbed it between hispalms. "Too dry. I'll have to bring some rain tonight." Derek shook his hand, finding it no stronger than that of any normal man. "Glad to know you, Michla. I've been wondering how your plow works." "See for yourself." Michla led the way to it, pulling the implement up. It wasonly what Derek had seen--a stick with a bit of bent wire and a curiouslyshaped handle made of baked clay and covered with curlicues. "I hold theamulet and guide it. God turns over the dirt. It hasn't changed since godshowed us how to farm." Derek could see no sign of the burrowing machine that must be located belowthe ground, guided by a signal from the stick. He frowned, reluctantlydeciding that it was safer to accept the explanation until he could learn moreabout their customs. "This god you worship seems like a highly helpful one," he commented. "Worship?" Michla shook his head. "Nobody's that superstitious any more, Derek. We know he was only aman like you or me--and sometimes I think he was always a little insane. Bythe way, I'm planning to plow the other field. Mind if I move your ship?" The ship's controls were locked and there was nothing the man could do to hurtit, Derek decided. He'd have to see about moving it himself, if there was fuelenough to waste. Meantime, it might be a good idea to let Michla find thatother people had secrets and that ships didn't fly by waving wands at them. "Go ahead." He headed back to the house they had been given with Lari, the new wife orconcubine of Ferad. Here and there, one of the villagers looked up and utteredone of the old greetings, which he returned. It was the only conversation heheard. They saluted each other just as formally, but with no further talk. Ferad was waiting hungrily for breakfast and Lari was busy setting a stonetable when Derek returned. She smiled happily at him. "Good morning, Derek. Breakfast will be ready as soon as the fruit that god showed us arrives. Ifyou want to shave first, Skora brought up one of god's personal razors." He stared after Lari's figure as she went back to the kitchen. This lower-casegod of theirs was getting to be a highly peculiar divinity. Derek went to thewell-fitted bathroom in the rear, wondering where they got their water; eachhouse had a tank on its roof, but there were no supply pipes. He found a razorthat might have come from a pre-Collapse museum, lathered with a cake of theirsomewhat harsh soap, and tried it out. It worked well enough, once he got thehang of it. Kayel was standing hi front of Siryl's door as Derek left the bathroom. Heblushed, bit down on his pipe stem, and hurried toward the living quarterswhen he saw the captain. Derek knocked lightly on Siryl's door and threw it open. "Come on tobreakfast!" She opened sleepy eyes. Then she screamed and began pulling frantically at thecovers, trying to conceal her nude -body as if her life depended on it. Herface went white, and her voice was a thick gasp. "How dare you-?" "Somebody had to wake you up," he pointed out logically. He'd heard of womenwho considered clothes more than a matter of convenience, but the slit skirtshad made him think that Terran women were normal about such things. "Whydidn't you tell me you had such religious taboos?" She jerked upright, grabbing for the slipping cover again. Her face crimsoned, whitened again, and hardened slowly. She looked sick as she forced herself tostand up before him and her hands were shaking as she reached for her clothes. Her voice quavered. "I do not have taboos, Captain Derek! I-I simply resentyour invasion of my privacy. I might have been doing- anything! How would youlike it if I barged into your room like that?" "Try it!" he suggested, grinning at her. "And don't count too much on my fearof failure." He watched in amusement as she finished her dressing in frenziedhaste. Then she brushed back her hair and was herself again. She smiled with forcedamusement of her own. "Maybe I will, Captain. That overdose of antidepres-santI gave you won't last forever." He prowled and turned toward the living quarters. It was a fine crew he hadleft! He'd heard once that since the Collapse all men were neurotic in someway, while psychiatry had turned from a science to a farc'e. They bore out thetheory. Kayel had an Oedipus complex, Ferad had turned to gluttony and hiddena good brain to avoid responsibility, and Siryl walled herself in with scornfor all men because she couldn't be one! Maybe their whole civilization was atfault. The people of the village had seemed as relaxed as if they'd justfinished a course in electro-leucotomy that somehow left them with no loss ofvolition. He found a seat at the table and watched Siryl slide in beside Kayel, whotried to hide his excitement at the favor behind a labored puffing at hispipe. Skora had joined them and was seated near Ferad. He had been explainingsomething about one of the students at the school having trouble withsomething god had revealedto him. Now the old mail smiled and reached toward a bowl of fruit in the center of the table. "I've never thought of eating fruit, but I decided to try it," he said. "Ihope it's good. When I found from god that most of the worlds like more thansimple cereals for breakfast, I tried to find the type of fruit that wasbest." Derek began peeling one of the big fruits, wondering how much of that he wassupposed to believe. The marel-fruit grew only on Feneris, where its exportwas the chief industry. He tasted the aromatic sweetness, surprised to find itfresh and fully ripe. "It must be at least a hundred thousand light-years to Feneris," he suggested, trying to keep his voice casual. Skora nibbled carefully. A smile of pleasure ap-. peared on his lips and hefell to busily. "Good. Excellent. We'll have to adopt this. Feneris? It'sfarther than that. But the fruit grew on many worlds before the sun blasting, and still grows on a few in this sector. We found from god where to get it andsent one of the boys who needed the exercise." "Then you have space ships!" Derek's fruit fell to his lap as he came to hisfeet, his hands gripping the edge of the table. If it came from another planetof this system, it might not mean they had faster-than-light travel, but still ... Skora shrugged apologetically. "I'm afraid not, Derek. Vanir is a simple world. We have only our god and his power. The work of building space shipshas always seemed too great for its reward. You'll find us quite primitivefrom your views, I'm sure." "But-" Siryl cut in, using Universal. "Stop it, Derek! Don't violate any verbaltaboos here, if you want to get out alive!" "But he knew the distance to Feneris and about other planets!" "Folk songs and sagas!" She switched back to Classic, apologizing to Skora. Derek let it drop, but he wasn't satisfied. The exotic fruit grew only in asaturated atmosphere, which thisplanet didn't have. This might not be a colony of the enemy or have its ownspace ships, but that was no proof that ships couldn't stop here-enemy ships. With his luck, anything odd would almost certainly prove to be dangerous. Hechewed on his thoughts bitterly, along with the pancakes Lari brought them. This god of theirs might even be one of the enemy, using some strangetechnology to create near miracles that the villagers could only believe weremagic. In that case, word of their capture must be winging back to the enemyplanets. It would be only a matter of time before one of the squat, blackships landed here! Derek got up abruptly, making hasty excuses and signaling for Kayel to follow. This was no time to waste on speculation. The ship was their only means ofescape, and it had to be put in some kind of operating condition. . Siryl followed them as Derek voiced his suspicions to Kayel. The little man'seyes bulged and his face turned ashen as the captain poured out his doubts. The psychologist snorted in disgust. "Stop exercising your persecution complex!" she snapped. She shook her head, putting on her superior smile of tolerance. "You men! A few things you can'tunderstand and probably some changes in the language we haven't caught yet, and you picture bogy-men under every rock! There isn't a trace of inferiorityfeeling here, as there would be if they'd run into a superior culture!" Ahead of them lay the ship, and Derek saw a figure standing beside it. Hebroke into a faster walk, until he recognized it as Michla. The man waved atthem and went back to whatever he was doing. As they came nearer, Derek sawthat he was running his fingers over a large, odd-shaped stone plate with moreof the curlicues on it. "Incantations on a charm. He's probably sure the ship is a form of life thatcan be commanded with the right spell," Siryl said with satisfaction. Michla pulled the disk to him, holding it against his chest with one hand. Theother hand went out to touch the side of the ship. As he lifted his arm, the twenty thousand tons of the Sepelora lifted a footoff the ground and began moving steadily forward beside him. He carried italong easily, heading toward a section of wasteland half a mile away. 4 By the time they reached the Sepelora, Michla had picked up his strange plowand was busy at the far end of the field. Derek fumbled his way into the shipand began switching on the strain gauges while Kayel watched. There was noevidence of harm. "Antigravity!" The physicist's voice was an awed whisper. "I always thought itwas impossible with less than tons of equipment! And generated in the whole ofthe ship at once!" Derek swung to face Siryl, but she was recovering and there was no humility inher. "Hypnotism, you mean! They must have worked on us while we slept and madeus think the ship was in the other field, when it was here all along. We sawit there, and saw it being moved, by posthypnotic suggestion. Lots ofprimitives have some knowledge of hypnotism." "Make it magic and I'll buy it," Derek told her. "That's a good explanationfor what you can't understand, too." She started to say something and then checked it. Finally she turned towardthe airlock. "All right. Let them fool you. I'm going to go back to Lari. Primitive women are always easier to handle than their men. They're lessorganized." She went out and through the fields, carefully avoiding the sight of thedepression where the Sepelora had first lain. Derek and Kayel fell to work onthe ruined space-denial generators and what stores were left to them. By all standard methods, it was hopeless. Yet Kayel began sketching andchecking among the small power tools. He seemed to gather momentum, nowpassing orders to Derek with a certainty that he showed onlywhen working in his own field. "It won't be good," he admitted. "I'm having tocompromise. But I think we may be able to combine enough of some of the newtheories with the first methods ever used. We won't make better than fifteen light-years an hour, but it should get us to one of the border planets." It was meaningless to Derek. But if they could leave, he was willing to tryit. They worked on, grinding and shaping by methods that had been lost frompractice for over a century. Some of the work would be trial and error, withno chance to estimate the time it would take. But it helped to take theirminds off the primitives who could handle forces that civilized sciencecouldn't touch. Ferad came out finally to call them in to dinner. It was already growing dark, and there was a fine rain falling. Derek stared up through it. He had lookedout fifteen minutes before and had seen no clouds in the sky. There still werenone he could see, but the water dropped at an. increasing rate as they movedout of the wasteland onto the cultivated fields. In the village, the covers ofthe water tanks were off. Derek wasn't surprised to see that the rain poureddown more heavily over the tanks. Apparently Siryl had been checking on the ram with Lari. As they entered thehouse the native girl was running busily from the kitchen to the table, butshe was keeping up a steady fire of conversation. "Of course Skora brings the water at night. It's better after all the work inthe fields is done," she explained. "Though sometimes there's a light fall ofnatural rain in the daytime. That makes us all feel good. When we firststarted, we had to import all our water. And now we have two small oceans. Ofcourse, god told us the planet had eight big seas before the sun exploded. Iwas asking Skora about it, and he says some of the worlds are all covered withwater-not even a little bit of land . . ." Siryl's face showed that she had learned nothing-or at least nothing that shewanted to know. Lari came hurrying back, carrying a huge metal pot of stew to the table. Sheheld it at arm's length easily, and Derek noticed one of the amulets in herhand-this time a small one with only a few simple marks on it. He pointed. "What's that, Lari?" "A lifting tool". God showed us how to make all kinds of tools. There's onethat eats away the rock, and one that plows the ground-you saw that, didn'tyou? Skora bakes them. They make god work for us. Come on, dinner's ready." Derek picked up the little piece and turned it over. It was a twisted lump ofclay, baked hard, with a series of marks on the top. It looked as if no designexisted, yet there was a certain flow to the lines. He reached out for thekettle, fingering the amulet. If the kettle weighed less because of it, hecouldn't feel the difference. Nor could he find any sign of a switch buried onthe surf ace of the gadget. If there were some kind of broadcast power here, and these things werereceivers tuned to convert it into special functions ... He pocketed it while Lari's back was turned. There might be some penalty forthe theft of one, but he had to risk it. The next day when they reached the ship Kayel took it to pieces bit by bit. Lari had missed it, but had only shrugged and pulled another out of a drawer. The piece of clay grew smaller and smaller under the grinder as Kayel workedon it. At last it was just a nub that he had to hold with pliers. Then eventhat was gone. On the floor was a pile of dust, with no trace of metal orforeign element in it. The two men stared at it sickly and then dropped thematter quickly as they turned back to the labor of rebuilding the damagedspace-denial generators. They worked on doggedly for three days more. Ferad had flatly refused to helpthem, claiming that his marriage to Lari made him a citizen of Vanir and hadended his need to work under Derek. It was a point the captain had no desireto test while his knowledge of things was so uncertain. Maybe Ferad was acitizen now, and any force exerted on him would antagonize the whole village. It was hopelessly slow going, but they were makingmore progress than Siryl. She finally admitted that she was getting nowhere. There was one explanation for everything-and that was their god. "They're the most superstition-ridden race I've ever heard of," she concludedin disgust. Derek had his doubts. So far, every bit of superstition he had run into hadproved sound empirical sense. It didn't matter whether they called it god ormagic or anything else. It worked. And they were no worse than many of thecivilized people who used the tools given to them and had no other explanationthan the fact that science somehow made them work. If men lived on a world where the only cats were leopards, where blackleopards were all man-eaters, and where the cats avoided men unless lookingfor food, it would be extremely bad luck to have a black cat cross one's path. In such a case, the only superstition would be a denial of the facts and abelief that there had to be some other explanation of why men disappeared. Siryl's faith in hypnosis and primitive ignorance might be the realsuperstition here. Belief in god and the tools probably wasn't. He went out into the rain that was falling again, looking for the house ofSkora. There were a few people around and he recognized one as Wolm, thebrother of Lari. The man directed him toward a house that was somewhat biggerthan the others, with stonework that seemed to have mellowed with time. Derekhad passed it before, when a group of children from six to nine were seatedsilently on couches across an open porch, and had been told it was the schoolwhere they learned god's knowledge. He should have guessed that the priestwould handle the schooling here. Skora emerged from an outbuilding that boasted the huge chimney of a kiln andinvited Derek in. The walls of the building were lined with amulets of allkinds and sizes, and there was a big workbench along one wall that was coveredwith tools for shaping clay. It was obviously the source of the amulets. Derek went through the formula of greeting and accepted a bottle ofsurprisingly good beer. "I'm getting ready for a new baking," the priest said. "This village has tosupply some of the smaller places with tools. My usual helper married intoanother village. Why don't you and Kayel join me, Derek? It beats farming, andI understand your friend knows a good deal of science. Maybe he can show usbetter methods of making the tools." "He isn't exactly a ceramicist, but we'll think about it," the captainpromised. He had been turning over every indirect approach to his question. Now he discarded subterfuge. In spite of SiryPs warnings, the only way tolearn anything here was to risk stepping on their taboos. "Skora, I came hereto ask about your god." Skora put aside the molds he had been cleaning and perched on the edge of theworkbench. "That's asking a lot," he said, but there was no offense in hisvoice. "It takes our children several years to learn all about him, though we've speeded things up in the last couple of centuries. And there are somethings I can't tell you properly, for your own good, though I'll be as honestas I can. Ummm. He's a man-a very wise and very stupid man. He saved us afterthe sun was exploded in the great war and taught us how to survive. He stillteaches our young people." Thirteen hundred years had passed since the solar explosion. Derek whistled. "He sounds like a pretty remarkable man, Skora. No other man has found thesecret of immortality. Or do you mean that he dies, but a new god replaces theold one each time?" "Neither one. No man is immortal. And there is only one god. Sometimes I usedto wonder about him when I first learned to use the power. I even thought ofinvestigating, of going to see him. But I was always too busy." Derek could see no evidence of deceit on Skora's face, and there was no way hecould twist the words to make them mean anything but an impossiblecontradiction. "Suppose / wanted to visit your god, Skora-could I talk tohim?" The priest laughed and dropped off the bench to fetch two fresh bottles ofbeer. "You'd have a hard time of it, Derek. God died over a hundred yearsago." "Then when you say god helps you, I suppose you mean that you still follow hisadvice, using what he taught you before he died. Is that right?" "Not exactly. Partly, I suppose. Tradition kept the use of the tools under thefalse, emotional label of prayer for hundreds of years before we could root itout. I suppose we still use some of the terms in ways that aren't literallytrue." The priest shrugged. "But we still need his help when some new problemcomes up. We couldn't have found where the fruit grows in time without askinghim. And he still teaches the children directly." "But he's dead?" "Quite dead," Skora assured Derek. "Sometimes I think we're headed for troublebecause of that, and it makes things a little difficult at times. But what's alittle trouble? When I first had to bring rain, it took all my thought tocontrol it. Now I can sit here talking to you and enjoying myself, withoutlosing control of the tool." He pulled his hand out of a pocket and showed a quartz amulet in his palm, where his fingers had been fondling it. "When I was younger, I had troubleenough without any distractions. Once I forgot to remove only pure water andnearly ruined the crops with natural sea water. The planet where the raincomes from has a lot of copper salts, and that doesn't help the land." Derek stared at the priest with sudden shock, the bottle still tilted to hislips. He forgot to swallow and gagged as beer ran down his throat and into hiswindpipe. It was the complete logic of it that hit him. The rain had to be controlled, since it fell most heavily where it was most needed. Lari had already toldthem that the planet here had been almost barren of water after the solarexplosion. Water didn't create itself. It had to be brought from somewhere. He coughed up the beer, forcing some measure of calmness into his mind. Thepieces began to fit, even though there was still no explanation. They could draw water across space, without letting it freeze or evaporate-oreven grow chilled in its passage. The only answer to that had to be some form of nearly instantaneousteleportation! "You!" he said thickly. "Your people! It was you who threw my Waraok all theway to Sirius. And you were the ones who threw part of the Sepelora somewhereelse this time!" Skora nodded. "That was a mistake. When I learned about your ship and theothers with it, I'd never worked through a field like the one around yourship, and had little time in which to operate. Yours was the first ship I tried to handle alone, and I bungled it. But no harm was done. I put your crewon a livable planet and set the other ships beside them-the battleships, too. Working with a tool which wasn't made for just that use was quite tiring, orI'd have landed you with the others instead of letting you nearly crack uphere. After you saw us, it was too late to move you, of course. I'm sorry, Derek, but we had to do it that way." The bottle dropped to the floor and smashed as Derek stared at the old man. Heshould have guessed. With his type of luck, it was inevitable. He'd chased outafter the enemy and been caught-by this! He staggered to his feet with shockwaves of pure fear rippling through his shoulders and chest. One man against. a whole flight of ships! One solitary old man . . .5 His memory was unclear the next morning. He'd been nearly raving when he'dsworn and pleaded with Skora to send them back. He could remember being deniedby the suddenly worried and unhappy old man, but the reasons were no longerclear. All that was left was a picture of the priest putting his rain-makingamulet aside and pulling down another, before taking Derek's arms in firm, strong hands. "You're sick," Skora had said. "I had no idea. I should have known you weren'tready to discover the truth. Well, I hope your psychologist is a better doctorthan healer of minds!" And suddenly Derek had been in his own bed here, with his clothes followinghim out of nowhere to drape themselves over a chair. The covers had come upover him and the door had opened itself. He had been shouting something. Sirylhad come in a few seconds later , and there had been a shot of some drug. ... He gave up trying to remember, knowing it was safer not to think on it now. Hehad been too close to insanity. After all the years of fighting against thejinx, he had developed more strength than most of his people, but there werelimits. Maybe he should have let them drive him insane! What was the use . . . The door opened and Siryl came in, carrying another hypo. She grabbed his armand he felt the bite of a needle. For a moment his heart pounded and coldsweat popped out all over him. Then some of the misery lifted. Whatever shehad used the night before must have been a depressant that had neededcounteracting. "Pull the covers up!" She had been staring at him with a mixture of shock andconcern, but some of the worry was leaving her. "Have you no sense of shame?" "No strength. You pull them up." The drug was nearing the end of its firstphysical impact, but he could barely talk. "Didn't you ever see a nude manbefore?" She made a face of disgust. "I-we didn't take that kind of medical course. AndI'm-I'm not defiled, if that's what you're thinking!" She bent slowly andforced herself to cover him, carefully avoiding all contact with his body. Shewinced as he laughed. Her reactions had done him more good than the drug. The thing he had learnedwent back into its proper place in his mind. There was nothing horrible aboutthe teleporting of a ship across a quintillion miles of space; he'd acceptedthe fact when it had happened to the Waraok. If Skora had shown him a hugemachine using megawatts of power, he could have accepted that. The shock hadcome from discovering that it had been done with nothing but a piece of clayfor power. Also, he'd been sent to find an enemy secret and had found thesecret where he had least expected it. That was all. "I'm all right now," he told her. "But I wonder if youcan take it. Call Kayel in here." He swung out of the bed and grinned as shebegan backing out of the room, unable to tear her eyes off him until sheblundered into the edge of the door. He was dressed when the two came back. Ferad had declared his citizenshiphere, and he could rot in it! But the other two had to know. He gave it to them as fully as he could. "Tommyrot!" Siryl said automatically, though her voice was uncertain, as ifshe were trying to remember how he'd returned to his room. "You were justdelirious. Some disease here ..." Once, Derek thought, men had developed a science of psychology, according tothe old reports. But it had been lost during the Collapse, with only themechanical tricks for relieving neuroses remaining. No wonder the worlds werefilled with sick minds, if Siryl was typical of her profession. Kayel emptied his pipe, looking at her as if he were thinking the same, withthe woman-adulation gone from his eyes for the moment. He swallowed, hisAdam's apple bobbing grotesquely. But his voice was as clear as when hediscussed physics. "It fits. Oh, not the stuff about the god. That's probablymumbo-jumbo to cover some master power source and the men who run it. Maybeit's a' mechanical educator, too, with a library saved from before theCollapse. The machine must have prevented the Collapse here, and they've goneright ahead while we fell back. We're just working on theories about immensefields of energy in space that can be tapped for antigravity, identityexchange control-all that. They use it already! Derek, we've got to get thisback to the Federation." "But the way they live?" Siryl protested. "Why not?" Derek asked. "With power like that, they don't need the usual heavyscience and gadgetry. There's no reason not to live the simple life." Kayel was pacing about, sucking on an empty pipe, and wearing a flush ofexcitement. Normally, it was easy to overlook his mental powers, but a goodphysicist had to have mental flexibility; he was supposed to beone of the best. "We can't conquer them-not when one man can handle a fleet. But we look enough like them to pass among them, once we know what to expect. We'll drop a few small fliers into the wastelands. With any luck, they'll findthe god machine. Derek, do you think they'll still let us work on theSepelora, now that you know?" It had been bothering the captain. He shrugged uncertainly. "I told you not to break their taboos!" Siryl reminded them. "I also told youthis had to be a homogenous culture! Now maybe you'll listen to me. They haveto have some neuroses; any isolated group has. What we've got to do is to findtheir weakness. Kayel, they think you're smarter than they are. Let's . . ." Derek had heard enough. She still had a genius for remembering only when she'dbeen right and assuming she always would be infallible. He turned toward thedoor. ^Coming, Kayel?" The little man hesitated, obviously swayed by the chance to work closely withher. Then he smiled apologetically at her and followed Derek. She sat in offended dignity through breakfast. Luckily, Wolm was there andLari kept up a steady stream of talk, trying to get Ferad to join the boy insome project or other. Nothing was noticed by the two natives. And nobodytried to stop the two men as they headed toward the ship. Michla was busy seeding something on the harrowed field. He'd already addednitrates and other fertilizer- probably from the same planet as the water, carefully selected and dissolved in it. He called out a greeting as theypassed, and they waved back. It was all friendly and normal. Derek breathed asigh of relief as they swung around a pile of boulders. Where the space ship had rested there was nothing but a depression in theground. And coming toward them from that was the graybearded priest, theserape over his shoulders whipping about him in the breeze that was blowing. His face was serious as he drew near them. Derek stepped toward him, trying to force anger to replace the fear that wasthick in him. "Where's our ship, Skora?" ' "Safe. Up there." The old man pointed toward the sky above them. "In an orbitaround Vanir." "So we're prisoners?" Skora sighed, and he seemed embarrassed. "Not exactly. We feel obligated toyou for bungling the way we handled the return of your ship to Sirius, Derek, and we'd like to return you. But that must wait for further study. You havefull freedom here, though. And if you are permitted to leave, the ship will beready." "And I suppose you'll make up all the time when we should be repairing it?" Derek asked grimly. "We have already done that. We repaired it last night, before we sent it up. Not the space-denial generators-that is beyond our understanding. But from godwe learned how to use what was there to set up the much better time-negationdrive that was used before your Collapse." "But-time-negation . . ." Kayel swallowed, stumbling. Derek hadn't known thatthe little man understood Classic. From the accent, he must have only areading and weak hearing knowledge of it. But he obviously had understoodenough. "Yes, time-negation works." Skora smiled at the man's amazement. "It's simplerin application, but much more difficult in theory, I believe, than space- denial. It was discovered by accident when our common ancestors had no rightto find it. Fortunately, god knew how it worked. And your ship will be readyfor you if we find we can let you return." He was heading back to the village, and they were following without thought. Kayel caught Derek's arm, pulling him back out of earshot. He spoke in hastyUniversal. "We've got to forget the ship. Now it's up to god and his charms. Derek, I've got to see how those amulets are made." "But they were nothing but baked clay. We took one apart," Derek protested. The physicist shrugged. "A transistor works becauseof a few parts per millions of impurities. A detector works because of itscrystalline structure. Take his job!" Skora had noticed that they weren't with him and had slowed his steps. Derekcaught up, trying to look somewhat cheerful. "I guess we'll have to getourselves a house of our own and stop bothering Lari until you decide, then. And since we can't use the power of your god, we'd make pretty poor farmersaround here. Is the job in your kiln still open?" "Is it?" The old man chuckled. "Do you think I like doing it by myself? Andsince we'd have to feed you and care for you even if you did no work, yourhelp will be pure profit to me." Derek had little hope for any great revelation from the work. Either therewasn't much of a secret to the tools, or there was something so tricky thatthey felt sure Kayel and he couldn't discover it. The work seemed to confirm his doubts. Any child could have handled it, withno more than five minutes of instruction. Skora had teleported in a big tub ofsoft white clay from a bank of the stuff beyond the village. They had to packthis inside metal molds, press them down firmly and let them rough-dry untilthey would hold their shape. Then they went into the kiln to be baked. Finally, Skora inspected them, throwing out the defective ones along with hisown hand-formed failures. The priest answered Kayel's stumbling questions without any hesitation. Thematerial wasn't important, so long as the final product had the right shapeand the markings on it were clear. They had a few metal tools, but these wererare and too heavy for normal use. "You can think of them as instructions," he suggested. "There is too much toremember easily, and these help. They-well, they describe a stress in space, more or less." "Then plastics would work? Because if they would, there are a thousand poundsof thermoplastic in the ship's stores, and we'd save a lot of time here," Kayel suggested. Skora apparently thought it was a fine idea. He ques tioned the physicist about what to look for, and the stock of plastic wassuddenly in front of them. They began boring small holes in the molds forpouring the plastic to make unbreakable amulets, and the work went fasterafter that. On the way back to Lari's that night, Kayel shook his head positively. "Nothing, Derek! Nothing can be concealed in our own plastic. The secret hasto be in their god." A god who wasn't immortal, though he had lived for at least twelve hundredyears; a god who taught the children somehow, though he had been dead for ahundred years. A god who could fling a seventy-thousand ton ship quintillionsof miles instantly! Derek lingered after the second day of work. He took the bottle of beer fromthe priest and dropped to a seat. "Skora, I'm still curious about your god. And this time, I'll try to behave myself. How long did:he live?" "Since before the sun exploded. Let's see." The priest tipped the cappedbottle up without thinking. Beer seemed to appear just beyond the seal and runinto his mouth. "He was about sixty of your years old then. He came here tosee us about five years before the trouble, I think. I could find out, if youlike." Derek took his eyes off the other's drinking habits and swallowed his owndrink, trying to find some point of exploration. "I haven't heard any storiesabout his creating the world or your people, at that. No legends of that?" "Of course not. We evolved on Terra, like your people; and this planet grewfrom the usual space whorl." The old man chuckled. "This isn't a religion- though I'm afraid sometimes it's beginning to degenerate. God had some strangeideas that are getting distorted lately. Many of us have a belief in somedivine spirit, Derek, but we try not to confuse that with god. He was just aman. Kayel knows more than he did, though not the same-and all of us arestronger than he was." "He didn't teach you to worship him, then?" "He didn't know." Skora shook his head sadly. "He thought we would, mostly bedead. He didn't care and couldn't know what happened to us. He was unconscious. And when he revived, hewas sure we were dead. With his stores all ruined and nobody to save him, hewent crazy. He began blasting his way out and brought down a rock on hisskull. Naturally, with his medulla crushed, he died. It was just as well. Hecouldn't move the rocks to get out and he'd have been afraid of the world we'dmade." It made no sense at all. Their god couldn't even move rocks out of his ownway. Yet the rains fell, in spite of the fact that the amulets were nothingbut symbols. The power had to come from some source. "So he was destroyed. Yetyou say he still is!" "He's there, and the young learn from him still. We had to find out how tobuild the time-negation drive from him since you came." Skora found anotherbeer, remembering to open this one. He was mellowing from the liquor. "Derek, I don't know. He's dead and he's deteriorating-slowly, but the changes arethere. We've always been in danger of becoming superstitiously dependent onhim without realizing how much so we are. But now, some of us are worried. Ashe deteriorates, he may warp our children. Sometimes I've thought of digginghim up and destroying him." "Why don't you?" Derek suggested softly. "I've thought of it. As senior priest for Vanir, I could. But it's hard . . . emotional attachment, I suppose. And fear of what would happen." Derek frowned. "Suppose I were to destroy him?" The old priest looked up, studying him, resolution coming slowly. "You could! Of course, you could! Derek, one more beer! Then go home. And be back here early. We'll do it!" Skora's hands were trembling as he reached for the bottles. Siryl would have none of it. "Nonsense," she told them after she had heard the story, along with Kayel. "Primitive cultures don't breed agnostics. Skora was just drunk or testing you! Probably saving face by trying not to act superstitious. Derek, if you break any more taboos-" "They aren't primitive! Damn it, Siryl, if you can't get that much through your pathological skull, go outside and watch it rain for a while!" She stiffened and then cloaked herself in professional calm. "A culture," she recited, almost by rote, "observed in situ may have certain apparently inconsistent developments, usually as a result of some isolated individual genius or accidental discovery. These, however, do not violate the fundamental attitudes and emphases, the cultural gestalt, but are inevitably assimilated emotionally. That means, Derek, that they can have a machine left over from pre-Collapse days that makes miracles-but they still think it's magic. If you'll drop your persecution complex and listen to-" He grimaced, and then grinned slowly. "My hairy-chested persecution complex, you undefiled prude!" She drew in her breath harshly and marched out of the room, white to her lips. Kayel looked sick, starting after her and turning back. "You shouldn't have done that, Derek!" he protested. He sighed, shook his head, and sat down slowly, reaching for his pipe. "I wonder what we'll find-and whether Skora will do it?" Derek had his own doubts, but they found the old man ready the next morning, with Wolm behind him, carrying a supply of amulets and two battery torches he must have pulled from the Sepelora. The priest looked as if he had been unable to sleep, and the porch where the school was usually held was locked up tightly. He saluted them, his eyes still troubled but with no doubt in his voice. "The place is on the other side of Vanir, deep in a cave our ancestors built. He expected the explosion toward the last and had the one of them who could use his power dig two such caves-one for him, one for us. He had a machine . . . We almost starved and died of asphyxiation, until that one who could use the power found from god how to bring food and keep fresh air coming from another world." He sighed, and his eyes ran across the landscape and the growing fields. "When we came out years later, the world was a cinder, and god had to teach us to restore it and to farm it. At first, we thought of moving to another world. Even the air here had to be brought in. But we stayed near god. Well, let's go!" There was an abrupt, sickening shift of scenery and they were standing at the base of a mountain that stretched up as one of a huge chain, barren and forbidding. Only a few stunted plants existed there, and the sun was purpling the sky in the west. Ahead of them was a cliff that stretched up nearly half a mile, and there were two rubble-filled holes in it, near them. The priest motioned to one of them, and Wolm moved ahead. He had what seemed to be a huge umbrella without covering. He pointed the ribs toward the fallen rocks, twisting it slowly and feeling the swiveled handle of clay. He came to the stones and continued walking. The rock seemed to flow away from the device, compacting itself against the walls of the older passage that was there. "This is the way he taught Moskez, the only one of us who could learn the power," Skora explained. "God came across space from Terra to study us with other scientists. When the enemy began exploding suns, he stole us to helphim, taking all .the supplies he could carry. We built this cave for him, andthe one beyond for ourselves. Fortunately, the sun's explosion was a weakone." He was worried, but oddly determined. They were moving downward and forward. Then they hit a clear passage that wound down and down. It must have taken agreat depth to protect them from the solar blowup. Ot^er peonle had tried it, without this digging device, and had failed. They reached a long section where the passage was clear, and foul, air'rushedout at them. Skora reached for an amulet and cold, clear atmosphere blew inrapidly. Derek wondered why the old man didn't simply teleport them into thecave where their god lay, but decided to let the question go. It was probablyonly a means of delaying the accomplishment. His legs ached, and Kayel waspanting, but they went steadily down. Finally it flattened out and another five minutes of walking brought them intoa partially clear chamber. There was a great radium motor on one side, whirring softly. In the center stood a huge glass case, covered with thicklayers of ice from the ages of slow atmospheric seepage. Oxygen tanks werebeside it and stores of food and equipment lay about, all rotted and uselessnow. Wolm scraped off the ice at a gesture from the priest, and Derek staredinto the tank. Doubled up on the floor of the case was an old man, his face hidden by onearm, his neck bent at an imnossi-ble angle. He was naked and fat, with thewaxy color of frozen flesh. One hand lay near a heavy notebook and the otherclutched an archaic type of heat-projecting rifle. A rock lay near the woundon the back of his neck, and another had wedged itself into the hole at thetop of the case, sealing it with the layer of ice around it. From the breakageinside the case, it was obvious that he had gone mad, to wind up shooting atthe ceiling above him. The cooling system must have been cut off before herevived, but it had somehow gotten turned on again during his insane frenzy. "Suspended animation!" Kayel said. "There were accounts that it had beendeveloped. But no details on the cooling, chemicals in the blood, theirradiation frequencies. Skora, was he a biologist or biophysicist?" "No, he stole the parts from the place where our people were studied," thepriest said. "Another man meant to use it, but god took it. And he didn'tadjust it right. He wanted to wait fifty years, but it was twelve hundredbefore it released him. We left him because we needed him and he was preservedin this." Wolm had drawn closer to the case, trembling. Nowhe bent his white face down and stared into the case. Skora stood beside the boy, indecision working on him. "What do we do now?" Derek asked, as gently as he could. The old man sighed. "I don't know. The enzymes of his body are bringing a slowdecay, despite the cold. And things go wrong with the teaching of the young .• . . but without him, god is gone and Vanir may have no power. If I could onlybe sure-" He waited, while Derek stared at the case and its machinery. At first, he hadwondered if it might not conceal the great machine that could perform themiracles he had seen. But Kayel had looked it over at once and had shaken hishead. It seemed to be no more than it was supposed to be. And that left onlytheir god-a fat, dead god who had gone insane because of his weakness and hisfear. "No!" Wolm broke. The boy's shoulders heaved. He buried his face against thecase, shouting and clawing at the ice. "No! Skora, you can't. He is all wehave. He's holy! Don't touch him! God will come again! I saw it. It is Msthought! You can't-" Skora's fingers moved .on the amulet savagely. Wolm's body snapped out of existence, while flakes of ice trickled down where he had been. The priest looked sicker than before. "I sent him home," he said. "Derek, thatis what our youngsters learn now. There is decay, and distinctions are going. The old emotional superstitions are stronger than later logic, and allchildren used to have them. Now they creep through into the minds of ouryoung. A decaying mind and an insane one-and our children absorb thatknowledge." He sighed heavily. "And I-even I must have absorbed some of it. I can'tdestroy him! It's-horror! Derek, it's up to you. Do what you will. I'll waitfifteen minutes for you and keep the air pure here for you. But I can't evenwatch!" He was suddenly gone, too. Kayel swallowed thickly, his neck bobbing against tight muscles. He reachedfor his pipe, then stuffed itback. "But if he loses his power when the body is destroyed, he can't keep airfor us or get us out?" Derek kicked at the glass case. Kayel hesitated, and then joined him. It brokefinally, and they waited while the blast of freezing air wheezed out, foul andmiasmic. Derek reached for the weapon, but it was too cold to touch. He kickedit around with his foot until he could point it toward the corpse, while hefound a bit of cloth he could use to cover the trigger. Kayel knocked his arm aside before he could fire. The little man pointedtoward the notebook and began hastily ripping off his shirt. He scooped up thebook and spread it out on a low couch, ripping off the thin plastic thatprotected it. "We still have fourteen minutes, Derek. And this may be our onlychance to find the secret." The captain stepped back, feeling relief wash over him. He had been bracinghimself to take the chance, but the excuse to delay it was welcome. If burningthe body destroyed the power of god, Vanir would be just another primitiveworld-and they would almost certainly die before they could get out. If thepower remained, there would still be the need to warn the Federation of themenace hers-and no clue on which to operate. Kayel flipped the cover back and skimmed through a few pages as quickly as hecould turn them. It was obviously written in Classic, heavily interspersedwith strange mathematics like none Derek had ever seen. From Kayel's puzzledglance, they were equally strange to him. He turned to the front again. Thenhe pointed. "Aevan-god is Aevan!" The book was described on the first page grandiloquently as the diary andrecords of A. Evan, the discoverer of metadynamics, the only true science ofall time-the full and final work, from which the notes the world had beenunready for had been extracted. The body of the book began with the man's need for people with unusuallydeveloped "ability" for his experiments, and his discovery of the border worldof Vanir, where scientists had bred small groups for special abilities and were studyingthem. In one of those little colleges, he had found the children he needed, and onechild had proved capable of manipulating space as Aevan had been sure waspossible. Moskez had even been able to force a few of the other children tobridge the difficult gap and begin work on it. There were long experiments andformulae for levitation, teleportation, penetrability, and other things. Itended on a note of self-adulation for his own success, in spite of the poormaterial he'd had with which to work. Derek frowned and went back carefully, looking for the missing factor. Themathematics looked good, and in time Kayel could probably figure them out. ButAevan had been unable to make them work himself. It had taken some other ability. He found it finally, in a footnote he'd skipped. It was telepathy. Aevan hadknown that the mental power needed was related to telepathy, and had beenforced to find a group which had been bred for that. The boys on Vanir whosucceeded had had more than eleven generations in which to build up suchpower. Telepathy! And since the Collapse, while Vanir went on with its exclusivebreed of telepaths, the rest of the worlds had had no such power-thepsychologists had proved that it had been bred out of humanity, if it had everexisted. Yet without it, the mathematics would be useless. Only Vanir couldhave infinite power. There the children had been forced to use it to survive. The single advancedone had somehow taught the others, and they had stolen their ideas forsurvival from the mind of Aevan. In suspended animation, his thoughts werenearly still, but his memories remained, and they could be tapped. Even dead, the memory cells were preserved for a time, though now they were deterioratingat last. The amulets were only traditions to help them-they had used them as children, probably, to remember and feel the complex mathematical formulae, and the useof the tools had become so closely associated with the power that nobodyquestioned it now. Derek tossed the book to Kayel and reached for the trigger. Nothing visiblecame from the weapon, but the body of the god-or Aevan-charred and began tovanish, along with most of the wall of the case behind it. Fourteen minuteshad gone by. He began to tense as the seconds drifted by, picturing Skora standing up therewithout the symbol of the power he had used, uncertain of his own powers, afraid to try them! If the man couldn't work without the familiar- Abruptly, they were back at the foot of the mountain, outside the tunnel theyhad cleared. Skora stood there, his face strained and white and his handsshaking; but his eyes were burning with the end of more than a thousand yearsof slavery to a useless custom and the fear of its loss. "It worked-the tools still have power!" His voice was hoarse, as if he hadbeen shouting. Derek had one final test. He turned toward the priest, keeping his lips sealedand trying to throw the words silently out of his mind toward the other. Notthe tools, Skora. They were only memory aids. All you need is the knowledgeand power that you have in your own mind. You were bound to a superstition! Skora smiled wearily, his eyes moving toward the book Kayel still held. Henodded thoughtfully. "Superstition? I suppose you're right," he admitted. "Orconditioned reflexes of thought. Until about the age of nine, it was easierfor a young telepath to explore the passive, unresisting mind of god than thatof a busy adult. Eventually, it became the only way for them to learn in ourculture. Now I suppose we'll have to train teachers for the children." Kayel was staring at them, his mind busily adjusting to the new conditions. "Telepathy!" he said, without fear, but with a growing sense of wonder, as heknitted his brows and stood silently while Skora seemed to listen. Derekwondered why his own mind wasn't curling up in horror at being read. But whatdifference would it make? He'd helped Vanir, but the Federation could never use the secret. Skora sighed at last. "Sanity, new morals, many other things, Kayel. We onlydeceived you about our ability to read minds, and that for your own good. Wewere, afraid it might be too disturbing. And we're doubly grateful now. Ifthere is anything we can do . . ." "Send us home on the Sepelora," Derek suggested. "The affairs of the rest of the universe are not ours, Derek," the old mananswered, and he seemed genuinely sorry. "We can't risk having them brought to us by returning you. The decision of the majority went against me. Now all Ican do is make you welcome here on Vanir." Derek stared up at the sky where the Sepelora lay out of reach but ready tocarry them home. He let his eyes fall again to the planet that was to be theirprison. He had come to like the people and to feel more at ease among them inmany ways than among his own race. But there had been hope, until now. "All right," he said at last. "Keep your world, Skora, Live on it comfortablywhile the rest of the human race nearly kill themselves in another war. You'llbe safe. Dredge up a few more tricks from Aevan's notes. You like being alone- most provincials do. And it won't matter in your time. But when the childrenof my people find mechanical ways of doing what you do with your minds-whenthey sweep in here with ten battleships for each that your people can handle- remember that you could have joined us and saved us from the enemy that burnedthis planet once already. When that happens, cry for the brotherhood of men. See what they think of a single planet that kept its secrets to itself. Oh, damn it, send us back to Lari's and let us alone!" Skora reached for the amulet. Then he threw it away and stared at them, frowning in concentration without the help of tools. His hands clenched at hisside. They stood in Derek's bedroom. '" ' 7 Derek lay wearily on the bed while Kayel's low voice went on explaining thingsto Siryl. The woman had resented their going off without her, even though shehad wanted no part of the trip. But now her hurt scorn had cooled down to anunbelieving interest. In a way, the captain thought, she had been right allalong. But she didn't seem to be enjoying it. He started to turn over. Siryl screamed thinly. By the time he could look, she was throwing Aevan'snotebook away and whimpering. "No!" Her voice was low now, but rising slowlytoward hysteria as Derek got off the bed. "No. No! It can't be telepathy!" "It is," Derek assured her. "I tested it. So did Kayel." Her face contorted, and she swung toward him, groping for support. She foundhis shoulder and buried her face in it, clinging to him, her nails digginginto his back as she strained closer. "Take me away! Derek, take me away. Ican't stand having them read my mind-every thought I ever had, every wish. . . . Derek!" He reached up to disentangle the hands that were trying to dig through hisbackbone. "Siryl-" he began. She flung herself from him and groped toward the door. But Kayel was there, his tortured face sympathetic. The little man caught her, and she draggedherself against him. He drew her closer while she sobbed, standing the pain ofher hysteria as if he were being -knighted. "I'll protect you, Siryl. Some way I'll protect you. They aren't going to readyour mind. I won't let them." He was scowling furiously with some effort as hetried to comfort her. His eyes turned toward Derek. "Maybe if they know abouttheir god now, they're upset! Maybe they won't think too well. Get Lari, Derek-she's not very suspicious, I hope. And don't think about anything exceptthat Siryl's sick." The woman had whimpered at the mention of Lari's name. Kayel drew her downbeside him, rubbing her hairgently. "There, there, baby. Nobody is going to read your mind now." Derek found Lari in the kitchen, naturally, and brought her back with him. Shewas wearing her big apron with the amulet pockets, and moved ahead of him withthe bowl in her hands clattering against one of them while she went onstirring-the picture of a quiet housewife, Derek thought bitterly. With thepower of a god! "Lari," Kayel told her, "Siryl's sick. We're not just like you. We'reneurotics-we have been since the Collapse. We need things you don't have which are on the Sepelora-Ferad will need them, too. Can you send Siryl and Derek upfor them? They'll know where to find the drugs." Derek started to protest. But this was more important to the physicist thanescape. He was being the space knight who could slay monsters for his lady. The captain glanced at Lari, trying to keep his thoughts down. She puzzledover it, but seemed completely unsuspicious. It must have been a hard day forher already, and her mind wasn't on the request. "I guess so," she answered. "If I sort of pretend god is still there and usethe amulet. I'll have to concentrate. You stir this till I work it." She handed the bowl to Kayel, who took it quickly, keeping the swirling bubbles inthe mixture going. Lari pulled out the amulet and clutched it firmly. She bent over it, hesitated, and looked up. "No sense in two of you going for a few drugs," shecommented, and clenched her hand. Derek found himself in the control room of the Sepelora, beside a new bank ofinstruments. He let out a yell of protests at the miscarriage of Kayel'splans, but his finger hit the red button that was still marked FIRING PIN. There was no way he could go back for them, nothing he could do to help. Andhe was still captain of the ship, in the service of the Federation, with a jobto do. The Sepelora came to life. There was no blanking out of the ports, but thestars began rushing by at anincredible rate, while the radar checked them and threw the ship about to:av6id a direct hit. They were making better than a thousand light-years anhour! Derek found the instructions beside the new panel and began setting theircourse for Sirius. He had no idea of how the machines worked, but that wouldbe for experts if he got back; and it was something to aid the Federation, atleast. He could feel the breath of fear blowing down his neck as he workedfrantically. Lari might not be able to handle a time-negation field. She mighthave to waste tune in hunting for Skora. Or perhaps none of them could workthrough this. Perhaps there was no way to locate him. He could be sure ofnothing, except that each thousand light-years gave him a slight added reasonfor hope-but sure that it wasn't enough reason, even so. He wondered about Siryl and Kayel. She might be sick at their failure, but shewas probably female enough to appreciate the attempt Kayel had made more thanthe fact that he hadn't delivered. And she'd been rocked by telepathy enoughto seek comfort where she could find it and in the strongest manner. Then he went back to worrying, staring back in the direction of Vanir. He hadno idea of how far they could reach. Maybe they could throw things fartherthan they could suck them in. The Waraok had been tossed two hundred thousandlight-years. But the people of Vanir had gone out only a few light-years tobring supplies. Maybe he was already safe. He began to think so as the hours drifted by. And he began to appreciate thetime-negation field more as he saw the simplicity of the generators. He couldalready construct another set from memory, if he had to. With this, theFederation still might win. Worry over pursuit kept him from sleeping until fatigue finally took over. That day and the next went by. Then the next. He went to bed with more confidence. He'd underestimated the speed of the newdrive and was already half the distance back to Sirius-they should havestopped him before that, since he was now near some of the outer fringes ofthe Federation. He considered landing on one, but decided against it. Thefarther he went, the better. And the new drive should be taken directly toheadquarters. In the so-called morning, his head was aching as if the back of his skull were about to split, and the wqrry had returned. There was no reason for it, exceptthe jinx that had become such a part of him. He swallowed anodynes and foughtoff some of the pain, but it kept coming back, as if something were burstinginside. He made his way up to the control room, while the feeling that he had lostgrew stronger and stronger inside him. He should have remembered that theanodyne was a depressant. It wouldn't do to go into a fit of depression now, while he was nearing home. He opened the door to the precabin, strode through it, and into the cabinbeyond. Then he stopped. Skora sat in a seat there, staring at the great spread of stars that streakedacross the ports. This time there were no pants of homespun and no scrape overthe old shoulders. The beard was still there, but shortened and trimmed. Itprojected over the collar of a Federation Fleet uniform-and on the side of thecollar was pinned the double cluster of a galaxy commander! The old man saluted crisply, smiling in amusement at the gesture, and waitedwhile Derek's arm automatically returned the honor. "As you were, Captain!" Then he sobered. "As you can see, Derek, your words made an impression on me. Vanir couldn't stand in a backwater, hoping that men would never catch up. Norcould we forget that we belonged to the race of mankind and were all brothers. Telepaths are unusually sensitive to that argument, once it's pointed out tothem. I couldn't convince enough of our council. But after I teleported myselfto Sirius and convinced your command there, it was too late for Vanir toretrench. We aren't limited to one planet now, clinging to the memory of adecaying god. Now there are two million of us being fitted for your uniforms- enough to win your war without having to destroy the enemy we both fought oncebefore." , "And I suppose headquarters took one look at what you could do and made youall officers," Derek said bitterly, remembering the years he'd spent fightingfor a mere sector commander's rating. The pain in his head broke over him again, and he doubled over. Skora seemednot to notice. "It wasn't hard, Derek. They were paralyzed with fear of new weapons untilthey were beginning to lose the battle. Your command had its ownsuperstitions. And reading their minds helped me to find ways of convincingthem. Then, when I could, I came to take you back. I've been waiting here foryou for hours-though not idly." The pain hit a sharp peak and faded somewhat. Skora was staring at himintently, and he covered the remaining pain under automatic questions. "How'sSiryl? And I suppose Kayel is happy working out more of the mathematics foryou?" "Siryl-" Skora paused and shrugged. "Kayel had her promise to marry him, ofcourse, and is a new man. She is recovering, we hope, since he made her ametal net and told her it would keep us from reading her mind. It won't, if wetry, but she needs her little superstition, if she's to stop hating us." Derek stared out at the stars rushing by, knowing he had won what he had beensent to win-and had lost the Federation. His jinx had outgrown him, and hadspread to the whole race. Now Siryl hated and feared the men of Vanir for their power to see the thingswhich a prude must conceal within her own mind. She might get over that; perhaps she could learn to accept their power. But in time, all the women onFederation planets would have to hate the telepaths-not for themselves, butfor the sake of the children who should never be born into the life that must come. Skora had spent a few days gaining himself the coveted rank of GalaxyCommander, while Derek had never dared to hope he could rise that high in a lifetime. And Skora's people could have everything they wanted for the asking. Monsters were loose on the world. Until power could corrupt them, they mightbe kind monsters. But they were worse than any enemy defeat could have been. They would save the Federation, but after the triumph, those most fit wouldown it. The men who had built the star ships would never control the future- that would be left for the conquering march of the men who .had done nothing, but had simply been given a power denied to the rest of the race. "There was an old legend," Skora said suddenly. "About a boy who lived withsome kind of animals. When men discovered him at the age of twelve, he was asavage. He was unable to talk-and nobody learned how to teach him. Yet hispowers of speech were latently as good as those of any man." The pain had lashed out again at the man's words. Derek let them slip over hismind without trying to understand. Skora was reading his mind, but it didn'tmatter. He went on thinking, forced to recognize that he had brought totaldefeat to all nontelepathic men. If there had been any hope . . . But the psychologists and geneticists had looked for the power of telepathy inthe current race, and had found none. Skora stirred impatiently. "Telepathy never occurred strongly in men more thanonce in perhaps a billion births. Even in the group at the place where godfound us, only Moskez had any great power, after all the careful breeding forit. He had to teach it to the others, so that they would not be wolf-boys inthe world which the explosion left them. And Lari and Ferad are having achild-who will learn, like all the rest of us, even though Ferad is itsfather." Derek groped for the hope, and then shrugged. It was a good line for the restof the worlds. It would give them faith in their future, while Vanir replacedthem. They could believe that with a little more work and time, they wouldslowly develop the power-and their "teachers" would find ways of convincingthem they were succeeding. Maybe they needed that faith, no matter how wrongit was. They would forget the legendsthat spoke of a time when the strange psi factor was bred out of the, race-forthe benefit of a few, as he now knew. They would pretend there was only onerace, instead of the two into which it had been split. The pain caught him again, and Skora got up sympathetically to rub the back ofhis neck. It helped. "Men," the old man told him, "have been finding ways toclaim they are not all one race since there first were human beings. But it'sstill wrong. And science has made mistakes, while legends are onlysuperstitions." The old fingers found the spot of greatest anguish and began rubbing it out. Derek looked up, grateful in spite of his bitterness against what had beendone. "The advantage of being a telepath," he admitted. "You know where thepain is. Thanks, Skora." It always hurts at first, Skora's voice said softly. His lips had been tightly shut, and he was smiling. Derek felt his bodytauten, and his eyes froze on the unmoving lips, while the voice continuedquietly somewhere in his mind. It takes time, Skora's voice went on, with a warmth that had always beenlacking in it before. And it hurts. So does the loss of some of the things webelieve-that we are persecuted, that we must depend on god, that incompleteknowledge and old legends can tell us everything, or that we are more than onerace. Telepathy is never easy for an adult, Derek. But with it, we can uniteour whole race-perhaps even the ones we call an enemy! The pain was gone now, leaving only a strange sense of completion behind it. Derek stumbled to his feet, choking over words that would not come. The old man caught his mind, smiling, and led him to the viewing port. "Sector Commander Derek," he said aloud, while the warm soft echo of the wordscame into the former captain's mind, "out there is man's kingdom. All of space! But there's no room there for any more of the superstitions we've all had too long." Derek looked out through the ports toward the stars that rushed by the Sepelora, while the ship carried the two men into their future. There was no jinx reflected in the port glass. There were only the images of two faces, smiling back at him. For I Am a Jealous People! . . . the keepers of the house shall tremble, and the strong men shall bow themselves . . . and the doors shall be shut in the streets, when the sound of the grinding is low . . . they shall be afraid of that which is high, and fears shall be in the way, and the almond tree shall flourish . . . because man goeth to his long home, and the mourners go about the streets. . . . Ecclesiastes, 12:3-5 THE BOOK OF THE JEWS THERE WAS THE continuous shrieking thunder of an alien rocket overhead as the Reverend Amos Strong stepped back into the pulpit. He straightened his square, thin shoulders slightly, and the gaunt hollows in his cheeks deepened. For a moment he hesitated, while his dark eyes turned upward under bushy, grizzled brows. Then he moved forward, placing the torn envelope and telegram on the lectern with his notes. The blue-veined hand and knobby wrist that projected from the shiny black serge of his sleeve hardly trembled. Unconsciously, his eyes turned toward the pew where his wife should be, before he remembered that Ruth would not be there this time. She had been delayed by the arrival ofe^he message and had read it before sending it on to him. Now she could not be expected. It seemed strange to him. She hadn't missed service since Richard was born nearly thirty years ago. The sound of the rocket hissed its way into silence over the horizon, and Amos stepped forward, gripping the dusty surface of the rickety lectern with both hands. He straightened and forced his throat into the pattern that would give, his voice the resonance and calm it needed. "I have just received final confirmation that my son was killed in the battle of the moon," he told the puzzled congregation, which had been rustling uncertainly since he was first interrupted. He lifted his voice, and the resonance in it deepened. "I had asked, if it were possible, that this cup might pass from me. Nevertheless, not as I will, Lord, but as Thou wilt." He turned from their shocked faces, closing his ears to the sympathetic cries of others who had suffered. The church had been built when Wesley was twice its present size, but the troubles that had hit the people had driven them into the worn old building until it was nearly filled. He pulled his notes to him, forcing his mind from his own loss to the work that had filled his life. "The text today is drawn from Genesis," he told them. "Chapter seventeen, seventh verse; and chapter twenty-six, fourth verse. The promise which God made to Abraham and again to Isaac." He read from the Bible before him, turning to the pages unerringly at the first try. "And I will establish my covenant between me and thee, and thy seed after thee, in their generations, for an everlasting covenant, to be a God unto thee, and to thy seed after thee. "And I will make thy seed to multiply as the stars of heaven, and will give unto thy seed all these countries: and in thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed." He had memorized most of his sermon, no longer counting on inspiration to guide him as it had once done. He began smoothly, hearing his own words in snatches as he drew the obvious and comforting answer to their uncertainty. God had promised man the earth as an everlasting' covenant. Why then should men be afraid or lose faith because alien monsters had swarmed down out of the emptiness between the stars to try man's faith? As in the days of bondage inEgypt or captivity in Babylon, there would always be trials and times when thefaint-hearted should waver, but the eventual outcome was clearly promised. He had delivered a sermon from the same text in his former parish of Clydewhen the government had first begun building its base on the moon, drawingheavily hi that case from the reference to the stars of heaven to quiet thedoubts of those who felt that man had no business in space. It was then thatRichard had announced his commission in the lunar colony, using Amos' ownwords to defend his refusal to enter the ministry. It was the last he saw ofthe boy. He had used the text one other time, over forty years before, but the reasonwas lost, together with the passion that had won him fame as a boy evangelist. He could remember the sermon only because of the shock on the bearded face ofhis father when he had misquoted a phrase. It was one of his few clearmemories of the period before his voice changed and his evangelism came to anabrupt end. He had tried to recapture his inspiration after ordination, bitterly resentingthe countless intrusions of marriage and fatherhood on his spiritual forces. But at last he had recognized that God no longer intended him to be a modernPeter the Hermit, and resigned himself to the work he could do. Now he wasback in the parish where he had first begun; and if he could no longer firethe souls of his flock, he could at least help somewhat with his memorizedrationalizations for the horror of the alien invasion. Another ship thundered overhead, nearly drowning his words. Six months before, the great ships had exploded out of nothing in space and had fallen carefullyto the moon, to attack the forces there. In another month they had begun a fewforays against Earth itself. And now, while the world haggled and struggled to unite against them, theywere establishing bases all over and apparently setting out to conquer theworld mile by mile. Amos saw the faces below him turn up, hate-filled and uncertain. He raised hisvoice over the thunder, and finished hastily, moving quickly through the endof the service. He hesitated as the congregation stirred. The ritual was over and his wordswere said, but there had been no real service. Slowly, as if by themselves, his lips opened, and he heard his voice quoting the Twenty-seventh Psalm. "TheLord is my light and my salvation; whom shall I fear?" His voice was soft, but he could feel the reaction of the congregation as thesurprisingly timely words registered. "Though an host should encamp againstme, my heart shall not fear; though war should rise against me, in this will Ibe confident." The air seemed to quiver, as it had done long ago when God hadseemed to hold direct communion with him, and there was no sound from the pewswhen he finished. "Wait on the Lord: be of good courage, and he shallstrengthen thine heart;-wait, I say, on the Lord." The warmth of that mystic glow lingered as he stepped quietly from the pulpit. Then there was the sound of motorcycles outside, and a pounding on the door. The feeling vanished. Someone stood up and sudden light began pouring in from outdoors. There was abreath of the hot, droughty physical world with its warning of another duststorm, and a scattering of grasshoppers on the steps to remind the people ofthe earlier damage to their crops. Amos could see the bitterness flood backover them in tangible waves, even before they noticed the short, plump figureof Dr. Alan Miller. "Amos! Did you hear?" He was wheezing as if he had been running. "Just cameover the radio while you were in here gabbling." He was cut off by the sound of more motorcycles. They swept down the singlemain street of Wesley, heading west. The riders were all in military uniform, carrying weapons andgoing at the top speed of their machines. Dust erupted behind them, and Docbegan coughing and swearing. In the last few years, he had grown more and moreoutspoken about his atheism; when Amos had first known him, during the earlierpastorate in Wesley, the man had at least shown some respect for the religionof others. "All right," Amos said sharply. "You're in the house of God, Doc. What cameover the radio?" Doc caught himself and choked back his coughing fit. "Sorry. But damn it, man, the aliens have landed in Clyde, only fifty miles away. They've set up a basethere! That's what all those rockets going over meant." There was a sick gasp from the people who had heard, and a buzz as the newswas passed back to others. Faces grayed. Some dropped back to the hard seats, while others pressed forward, trying to reach Doc, shouting questions at him. Amos let himself be shoved aside, hardly noticing the reaction of his flock. It was Clyde where he had served before coming here again. He was trying topicture the alien ships dropping down, scouring the town ahead of them withgas and bullets. The grocer on the corner with his nine children, the lamedeacon who had served there, the two Aimes sisters with their horde of dogsand cats and their constant crusade against younger sinners. He tried topicture the green-skinned, humanoid aliens moving through the town, invadingthe church, desecrating the altar! And there was Anne Seyton, who had beenRichard's sweetheart, though of another faith. ... "What about the garrison nearby?" a heavy farmer yelled over the crowd. "I hada boy there, and he told me they could handle any ships when they werelanding! Shell their tubes when they were coming down . . ." Doc shook his head. "Half an hour before the landing, there was a cyclone upthere. It took the roof off the main building and wrecked the whole traininggarrison." "Jim!" The big man screamed out the name, and began dragging his frail wife behind him, out toward his car. "If they got Jim..." Others started to rush after him, but another procession of motorcyclesstopped them. This time they were traveling slower, and a group of tanks wererolling behind them. The rear tank drew abreast, slowed, and stopped, while aduty-faced man in a major's untidy uniform stuck his head out. "You folks get under cover! Ain't you heard the news? Go home and stick toyour radios, before a snake plane starts potshooting the bunch of you for fun. The snakes'll be heading straight over this town if they're after Topeka, likeit looks!" He jerked back down and began swearing at someone inside. The tankjerked to a start and began heading away toward Clyde. There had been enough news of the sport of the alien planes in the papers. Thepeople melted from the church. Amos tried to stop them for at least a shortprayer and to give them time to collect their thoughts, but gave up after mostof the people began moving away. A minute later, he was standing alone withDoc Miller. "Better get home, Amos," Doc suggested. "My car's half a block down. Suppose Igive you a lift?" Amos nodded wearily. His bones felt dry and brittle, and there was a dust inhis mouth thicker than that in the air. He felt old, and for the first time, almost useless. He followed the doctor quietly, welcoming the chance to ridethe six short blocks to the little house the parish furnished him. A car of ancient age and worse repair rattled toward them as they reachedDoc's auto. It stopped, and a man in dirty overalls leaned out, his faceworking jerkily. "Are you prepared, brothers? Are you saved? Armageddon hascome, as the Book foretold. Get right with God, brothers! The end of the worldas foretold is at hand, amen!" "Where does the Bible foretell alien races around other suns?" Doc shot at him. The man bunked, frowned, and yelled something about sinners burning forever inhell before he started his rickety car again. Amos sighed. Now, with the rise of their troubles, fanatics would spring up to cry doom and false gospel more than ever, to theharm of all honest religion. He had never decided whether they were somehowuseful to God or whether they were inspired by the forces of Satan. "In my Father's house are many mansions," he quoted to Doc as they started upthe street. "It's quite possibly an allegorical reference to other worlds inthe heavens." Doc grimaced, and shrugged. Then he sighed, and dropped one hand from thewheel onto Amos' knee. "I heard about Dick, Amos. I'm sorry. The first baby Iever delivered-and the best-looking!" He sighed again, staring toward Clyde asAmos found no words to answer. "I don't get it. Why don't we ever drop atombombs on them? Why didn't the moon base use their missiles?" Amos had no answer to that, either. There was a rumor that all the majorpowers had sent their whole supply of atomic explosives up to the moon baseearly in the invasion, and that a huge meteorite had buried the stockpileunder tons of debris, where there had been no chance to excavate it. Itmatched the other cases of accidents that had beset all human resistance. He got out at the unpainted house where he lived, taking Doc's hand silentlyand nodding his thanks. He would have to organize his thoughts this afternoon. When night fell and thepeople could move about without the danger of being shot at by chance alienplanes, the church bell would summon them, and they would need spiritualguidance. If he could help them to stop trying to understand God, and toaccept Him . . . There had been that moment in the church when God had seemed to enfold him and the congregation in warmth-the old feeling of true fulfillment. Maybe, now inthe hour of its greatest need, some measure of inspiration had returned. He found Ruth setting the table. Her small, quiet body moved as efficiently asever, though her face was puffy and her eyes were red. "I'm sorry I couldn'tmake it, Amos. But right after the telegram, Anne Seyton came. She'd heard-beforewe did. And . . ." The television set was on, showing headlines from the Kansas City Star, and hesaw there was no need to tell her the news. He put a hand on one of hers. "Godhas only taken what he gave, Ruth. We were blessed with Richard for thirtyyears." "I'm all right." She pulled away and picked up a pot, turning toward thekitchen, her back frozen in a line of taut misery. "Didn't you hear what Isaid? Anne's here. Dick's wife! They were married before he left, secretly- right after you talked with him about the difference in religion. You'd bettersee her, Amos. She knows about her people in Clyde." He watched his wife move fromjhe room, his heart heavy with her grief, whilethe words penetrated. He'd never forbidden marriage, he had only warned theboy, who had been so much like Ruth. He hesitated, and finally turned towardthe tiny second bedroom. There was a muffled answer to his knock, and the lockclicked rustily. "Anne?" he said. The room was darkened, but he could see her blonde head andthe thin, almost unfemi-nine lines of her figure. He put out a hand and felther slim fingers in his palm. As she turned toward the weak light, he saw nosign of tears, but her hand shook with her dry shudders. "Anne, Ruth has justtold me that God has given us a daughter . . ." "God!" She spat the word out harshly, while the hand jerked back. "God, Reverend Strong? Whose God? The one who sends meteorites against Dick's base, plagues of insects and drought against our farms? The God who uses tornadoesto make it easy for the snakes to land? That God, Reverend Strong? Dick gaveyou a daughter, and he's dead! Dead! Dead!" Amos backed out of the room. He had learned to stand the faint mockery withwhich Doc pronounced the name of the Lord, but this was something that set hisskin into goose pimples and caught at his throat. Anne had been of a differentfaith, but she had always seemed religious before. It was probably only hysteria. He turned toward the kitchen to find Ruth andsend her in to the girl. Overhead, the staccato bleating of a ramjet cut through the air in a sound hehad never heard. But the radio description fitted it perfectly. It could be noEarth ship with such a noise! Then there was another and another, until they blended together into a steadydrone. And over it came the sudden firing of a heavy gun, while a series of rapidthuds came from the garden behind the house. Rover let out two loud barks, andthen screamed in animal agony! Amos stumbled toward the back door, but Ruth was already ahead of him. "Dick'sdog! Now they've got his dog!" she cried out. Before Amos could stop her, she threw back the door and darted out. There wasanother burst of shots and a sick cry. Ruth was crumpling before he could getto the doorway. 2 My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me? . . . I am poured out like water, and all my bones are out of joint: my heart is like wax; it is melted in themidst of my bowels. My strength is dried up like a potsherd; and my tonguecleaveth to my jaws; and thou hast brought me into the dust of death. Psalm 22:1,14,15THE BOOK OF THE JEWS There were no more shots as he ran to her and gathered her into his arms. Thelast of the alien delta planes had gone over, heading for Topeka or whatevercity they were attacking. Ruth was still alive. One of the ugly slugs had caught her in the abdomen, ripping away part of her side, and the wound was bleeding horribly. But hefelt her heart still beating, and she moaned faintly when he lifted her. Then, as he put her on the couch, she opened her eyes briefly, saw him, andtried to smile. Her lips moved, and he dropped his head to hear. "I'm sorry, Amos. Foolish. Nuisance. Sorry." Her eyes closed, but she smiled again after he bent to kiss her lips. "Gladnow. Waited so long." Anne stooa in the doorway, staring unbelievingly. But as Amos stood up, sheunfroze and darted to the medicine cabinet, to come back and begin snippingaway the ruined dress and trying to staunch the flow of blood. Amos reached for the phone, unable to see it clearly. He mumbled something tothe operator, and a minute later to Doc Miller. He'd been afraid that thedoctor would still be out. He had a feeling that Doc had promised to come, butcould remember no words. The flow of blood outside the wound had been stopped, but Ruth was white, evento her lips. Anne forced him back to a chair, her fingers gentle on his arm. "I'm sorry, Father Strong. I-I. . ." He stood up after a few minutes and went over to stand beside Ruth, lettinghis eyes turn toward the half-set table. There was a smell of scorching foodin the air, and he went out to the old wood-burning stove to pull the pans offand drop them into the sink. Anne followed, but he hardly saw her, until heheard her begin to cry softly. There were tears this time. "The ways of God are not the ways of man, Anne," he said, and the wordsreleased a flood of his own emotions. He sank tiredly onto a stool, his hands falling limply onto his lap. He dropped his head against the table, feelingthe weakness and uncertainty of age. "We love the carnal form and our heartsare broken when it is gone. Only God can know all of any of us or count thetangled threads of our lives. It isn't good to hate God!" She moved beside him as he rose and returned to the living room. "I don't, Father Strong. I never did." He couldn't be sure of the honesty of it, but hemade no effort to question her, and she sighed. "Mother Ruth isn't dead yet!" "; He was saved from any answer by the door being slammed open as Doc Miller camerushing in. The plump little man took one quick look at Ruth and was besideher, reaching for plasma and his equipment. He handed the plasma bottle toAnne, and began working carefully. "There's a chance," he said finally. "If she were younger or stronger, I'd saythere was an excellent chance. But now, since you believe in it, you'd betterdo some fancy praying." "I've been praying," Amos told him, realizing that it was true. The prayershad begun inside his head before she was outside the door, and they had neverceased. They moved her gently, couch and all, into the bedroom, where the blinds couldbe drawn, and where the other sounds of the house couldn't reach her. Doc gaveAnne a shot of something and sent her into the other bedroom. He turned toAmos, but didn't insist when the minister shook his head. "I'll stay here, Amos," Doc said, "with you. As long as I can until I getanother emergency call. The switchboard girl knows where I am." He went back into the bedroom without closing the door. Amos stood in thecenter of the living room, his head bowed, for long minutes. It was a whining sound that finally called him back to the world around him. He went to the back door and stared out. The Scotty was still alive, pullingits little body along the dirt of the garden toward the house. The whole hindsection was paralyzed, and the animal must have been in agony from thehorrible wound on its back. But it saw him and whined again, struggling towardhim. He went out automatically. He had never been fond of the dog, nor it of him. But now there was an understanding between them. "Shh, Rover," he told thedog. "Quiet, boy. The mistress is all right." Rover whined again, and a wet tongue caressed Amos' hand. He bent as gently ashe could to examine the wound. Then he stood up, trying to reassure the animal. He found Richard's hunting rifle in one of the trunks and made sure it wasunrusted. He loaded it carefully, feeling his skin crawl at the touch of thegun. It seemed strange to use the weapon on Rover when the dog and Richard hadboth found such pleasure in hunting wjth this same gun. But he couldn't seethe animal suffering. Rover looked up and tried to bark as he saw the gun. Amos dropped beside him, feeling that the dog knew what he meant to do. The eyes looked up at him witha curious understanding as he placed the muzzle near the animal's head. Amosstopped, wondering. The wound was a horrible thing-but Doc might be able tosave the animal, even though he was no veterinarian. If it had been a woundedhuman, the attempt would have to be made. Rover drew back his lips, and Amos stopped, expecting a growl. He even reachedout to put the gun away. But the wet tongue came out again, brushing acrosshis hand, accepting the fate intended, and blessing him for it. He patted thedog's head, closed his eyes, and pulled the trigger. It was merciful. Therewasn't even time for a cry of pain. If the dog had fought him, if it had struggled against its fate in a finaldesire to live . . . But it had submitted to what it considered a superiorbeing. Only man could defy a Higher Will. Rover had accepted . . . and Rover was dead. He buried the small body in the soft dirt of the garden. Doc stood in the doorway when he started back for the house. "I heard the shotand thought you were trying something foolish," the doctor said. "I shouldhave known better, I guess, with your beliefs. Then I waited here, listeningfor a snake plane, ready to pull you back. According to the television, theymust be returning by now." Amos nodded. He found Ruth still in a coma, with nothing he could do. Then heremembered the planes and turned to watch the television. Topeka was off theair, but another station was showing news films:" Hospitals, schools, and similar places seemed to have been the chief targetsof the aliens. Gas had accounted for a number of deaths, though those couldhave been prevented if instructions had been followed. But the incendiarieshad caused the greatest damage. And the aliens had gotten at least as rough treatment as they had meted out. Of the forty that had been counted, twenty-nine were certainly down. "I wonder if they're saying prayers to God for their dead?" Doc asked. "Ordoesn't your God extend his mercy to races other than man?" Amos shook his head slowly. It was a new question to him. But there could beonly one answer. "God rules the entire universe, Doc. But these evil beingssurely offer him no worship!" "Are you sure? They're pretty human!" Amos looked back to the screen, where one of the alien corpses could be seenbriefly. They did look almost human, though squat and heavily muscled. Theirskin was green, and they wore no clothes. There was no nose, aside from twoorifices under their curiously flat ears that quivered as if in breathing. Butthey were human enough to have passed for deformed men, if they had beenworked on by good make-up men. They were creatures of God, just as he was! And as such, could he deny them? Then his mind recoiled, remembering the atrocities they had committed, thetortures that had been reported, and the utter savageness so out of keepingwith their inconceivably advanced ships. They were things of evil who haddenied their birthright as part of God's domain. For evil, there could be onlyhatred. And from evil, how could there be worship of anything but the powersof darkness? The thought of worship triggered his mind into an awareness of his need toprepare a sermon for the evening. It would have to be something simple; bothhe and his congregation were in no mood for rationalizations. Tonight he wouldhave to serve God through their emotions. The thought frightened him. He triedto cling for strength to the brief moment of glory he had felt in the morning, but even that seemed far away. There was the wail of a siren outside, rising to an ear-shattering crescendo, and the muffled sound of a loudspeaker with its amplifier driven to highdistortion levels. He stood up at last and moved out onto the porch with Doc as the tank came by. It was limping on treads that seemed to be about to fall apart, and theamplifier and speaker were mounted crudely on top. It pushed down the street, repeating its message over and over. "Get out of town! Everybody clear out! This is an order to evacuate! Thesnakes are coming! Human forces have been forced to retreat to regroup. Thesnakes are heading this way, heading toward Topeka. They are looting andkilling as they go. Get out of town! Everybody clear out!" It paused, and another voice blared out, sounding like that of the major whohad warned the town earlier. "Get the hell out, all of you! Get out whileyou've still got your skins outside of you. We've been licked. Shut up, Blake! We've had the holy living pants beat off us, and we're going back to momma. Get out, scram, vamoose! The snakes are coming! Beat it!" It staggered down the street, rumbling its message, and now other stragglers began following it-men in trucks, piled together like cattle; men in ancientcars of every description. Then another amplifier sounded from one of thetrucks. "Stay under cover until night! Then get out! The snakes won't be here at once. Keep cool. Evacuate in order, and under cover of darkness. We're holing upourselves when we get to a safe place. This is your last warning. Stay undercover now, and evacuate as soon as it's dark." There was a scream from the sky, and alien planes began dipping down. Docpulled Amos back into the house, but not before he saw men being cut toribbons by missiles that seemed to fume and burst into fire as they hit. Someof the men on the retreat made cover. When the planes were gone, they came outand began regrouping, leaving the dead and hauling the wounded with them. "Those men need me!" Amos protested. "So does Ruth," Doc told him. "Besides, we're too old, Amos. We?d only get inthe way. They have their own doctors and chaplains, probably. Those poordevils are risking their lives to save us, damn it. The Army must have piledall its movable wounded together and sent them to warn us and to decoy theplanes away from the rest who are probably sneaking back through the woods andfields. They're heroes, Amos, and they'd hate your guts for wasting whatthey're trying to do. I've been listening to one of the local stations, andthey've already been through hell." He turned on his heel and went back to the bedroom. The television programtardily began issuing evacuation orders to all citizens along the road fromClyde to To-peka, together with instructions. For some reason, the aliensseemed not to spot anything smaller than a tank hi movement at night, and allorders were to wait until then. Doc came out again, and Amos looked up at him, feeling his head bursting, butwith one clear idea fixed in it. "Ruth can't be moved, can she, Doc?" "No, Amos." Doc signed. "But it won't matter. You'd better go in to her now. She seems to be coming to. I'll wake the girl and get her ready." Amos went into the bedroom as quietly as he could, but there was no need forsilence. Ruth was conscious, as if some awareness of her approaching death hadforced her to make the most of these last few minutes of her life. She put outa frail hand timidly to him. Her voice was weak, but clear. "Amos, I know. And I don't mind now, except for you. But there's something Ihad to ask you. Amos, do you . . . ?" He dropped beside her when her voice faltered, wanting to bury his headagainst her, but not daring to lose the few remaining moments of her sight. Hefought the words out of the depths of his mind, and then realized it wouldtake more than words. He bent over and kissed her again, as he had firstkissed her so many years ago. "I've always loved you, Ruth," he said. "I still do love you." She sighed and relaxed. "Then I won't be jealous of God anymore, Amos. I hadto know." Her hand reached up weakly, to find his hair and to run her fingers throughit. She smiled, the worn lines of her face softening. Her voice was contentand almost young. "And forsaking all others, cleave only unto thee . . ." The last syllable whispered out, and the hand fell. Amos dropped his head at last, and a single sob choked out of him. He foldedher hands tenderly, with the worn, cheap wedding ring uppermost, and aroseslowly with his head bowed. "Then shall the dust return to the earth as it was; and the spirit shallreturn unto God who gave it. Father, I thank thee for this moment with her. Bless her, O Lord, and keep her for me." He nodded to Doc and Anne. The girl looked sick and sat staring at him witheyes that mixed shock and pity. "You'll need some money, Anne," he said. "I don't have much, but there's a little . . ." She drew back and shook her head. "I've got enough, Reverend Strong. I'll makeout; Doctor Miller has told me to take his car. But what about you?" "There's still work to be done," he said. "I haven't even written my sermon. And the people who are giving up their homes will need comfort. In such hoursas these, we all need God to sustain us." She stumbled to her feet and into her bedroom. Amos opened his old desk andreached for pencil and paper. -, " tf -•';! '' ' 3 The wicked have drawn out the sword, and have bent their bow, to cast down thepoor and needy, and to slay such as be of upright conversation. I have seen the wicked in great power, and spreading himself like a green baytree. Psalm 37:14, 35THE BOOK OF THE JEWS Darkness was just beginning to fall when they helped Anne out into thedoctor's car, making sure that the tank was full. She was quiet, and hadrecovered herself, but she avoided Amos whenever possible. She turned at lastto Doc Miller. "What are you going to do? I should have asked before, but ..." "Don't worry about me, girl," he told her, his voice as hearty as when he wastelling an old man he still had forty years to live. "I've got other ways. Theswitchboard girl is going to be one of the last to leave, and I'm driving herin her car. You go ahead, the way we mapped it out. And pick up anyone elseyou find on the way. It's safe; it's still too early for men to start turningto looting, rape, or robbery. They'll think of that after the shock of thiswears off a little." She held out a hand to him, and climbed in. At the last minute, she pressedAmos' hand briefly. Then she stepped on the accelerator and the car took offdown the street at top speed. "She hates me," Amos said. "She loves other men too much and God too little tounderstand." "And maybe you love your God too much to understand that you love men, Amos. Don't worry, she'll figure it out. The next time you see her, she'll feeldifferent. Look, I really do have to see that Nellie gets off the switchboardand into a car. I'll see you later." Doc swung off toward the telephone office, carrying his bag. Amos watched him, puzzled as always at anyone who could so fervently deny God and yet could live up to every commandmentof the Lord except worship. They had been friends for a long time, while theparish stopped fretting about the friendship and took it for granted, yet theriddle of what they found in common was no nearer solution. There was the distant sound of a great rocket landing, and the smallerstutterings of the peculiar alien ramjets. The ships passed directly overhead, yet there was no shooting this time. For a moment, Amos faced the bedroom window where Ruth lay, and then he turnedtoward the church. He opened it, throwing the doors wide. There was no sign ofthe sexton, but he had rung the bell in the tower often enough before. He tookoff his worn coat and grabbed the rope. It was hard work, and his hands were soft. Once it had been a pleasure, butnow his blood seemed too thin to suck up the needed oxygen. The shirt stuckwetly to his back, and he felt giddy when he finished. Almost at once, the telephone in his little office began jangling nervously. He staggered to it, panting as he lifted the receiver, to hear the voice ofNellie, shrill with fright. "Reverend, what's up? Why's the bell ringing?" "For prayer meeting, of course," he told her. "What else?" "Tonight? Well, I'll be-" She hung up. He lighted a few candles and put them on the altar, where their glow could beseen from the dark street, but where no light would shine upward for alieneyes. Then he sat down to wait, wondering what was keeping the organist. There were hushed calls from the street and nervous cries. A car started, tobe followed by another. Then a group took off at once. He went to the door, partly for the slightly cooler air. All along the street, men were moving outtheir possessions and loading up, while others took off. They waved to him, but hurried on by. He heard telephones begin to ring, but if Nellie waspassing on some urgent word, she had forgotten him. He turned back to the altar, kneeling before it. Therewas no articulate prayer in his mind. He simply clasped his gnarled fingerstogether and rested on his knee, looking up at the outward symbol of his life. Outside, the sounds went on, blending together. It did not matter whetheranyone chose to use the church tonight. It was open, as the house of God mustalways be in times of stress. He had long since stopped trying to forcereligion on those not ready for it. And slowly, the strains of the day began to weave themselves into the patternof his life. He had learned to accept; from the death of his baby daughter on, he had found no way to end the pain that seemed so much a part of life. But hecould bury it behind the world of his devotion, and meet whatever his lot wasto be without anger at the will of the Lord. Now, again, he accepted things asthey were ordered. There was a step behind him. He turned, not bothering to rise, and saw thedressmaker, Angela Anduccini, hesitating at the door. She had never entered, though she had lived in Wesley since she was eighteen. She crossed herselfdoubtfully, and waited. He stood up. "Come in, Angela. This is the house of God, and all His daughtersare welcome." There was a dark, tight fear in her eyes as she glanced back to the street. "Ithought-maybe the organ ..." He opened it for her and found the switch. He started to explain the controls, but the smile on her lips warned him that it was unnecessary. Her callousedfingers ran over the stops, and she began playing, softly as if to herself. Hewent back to one of the pews, listening. For two years he had blamed theorgan, but now he knew that there was no fault with the instrument, but onlywith its player before. The music was sometimes strange for his church, but heliked it. A couple who had moved into the old Surrey farm beyond the town came in, holding hands, as if holding each other up. And a minute later, Buzz Williamsstumbled in and tried to tiptoe down the aisle to where Amos sat. Since hisparents had died, he'd been thetown problem. Now he was half-drunk, though without his usual boisterousness. "I ain't got no car and I been drinking," he whispered. "Can I stay here tillmaybe somebody comes or something?" Amos sighed, motioning Buzz to a seat where the boy's eyes had centered. Somewhere, there must.be a car for the four waifs who had remembered God wheneverything else had failed them. If one of the young couple could drive, andhe could locate some kind of vehicle, it was his duty to see that they weresent to safety. Abruptly, the haven of the church and the music came to an end, leaving himback hi the real world-a curiously unreal world now. He was heading down the steps, trying to remember whether the Jameson boy hadtaken his rebuilt flivver when a panel truck pulled up in front of the church. Doc Miller got out, wheezing as he squeezed through the door. He took in the situation at a glance. "Only four strays, Amos? I thought wemight have to pack them in." He headed for Buzz. "I've got a car outside, Buzz. Gather up the rest of this flock and get going!" "I been drinking," Buzz said, his face reddening hotly. "Okay, you've been drinking. At least you know it, and there's no trafficproblem. Head for Salina and hold your speed under forty and you'll be allright." Doc swept little Angela Anduccini from the organ and herded her out, while Buzz collected the couple. "Get going, all of you!" They got, with Buzz enthroned behind the wheel and Angela beside him. The townwas dead. Amos closed the organ and began shutting the doors to the church. "I've got a farm tractor up the street for us, Amos," Doc said at last. "Ialmost ran out of tricks. There were more fools than you'd think who thoughtthey could hide it out right here. At that, I probably missed some. Well, thetractor's nothing elegant, but it can take back roadsno car would handle. We'd better get going. Nellie has already gone, with a; full load." Amos shook ibis head. He had never thought it out, but the decision had beenin his mind from the beginning. Ruth still lay waiting a decent burial. Hecould no more leave her now than when she was alive. "You'll have to go alone, Doc." "I figured." The doctor sighed, wiping the sweat from his forehead. "I'dremember to my dying day that believers have more courage than an atheist! Nope, we're in this together. It isn't sensible, but that's how I feel. We'dbetter put out the candles, I guess." Amos snuffed them reluctantly, wondering how he could persuade the other toleave. His ears had already caught the faint sounds of shooting, indicatingthat the aliens were on their way. The uncertain thumping of a laboring motor sounded from the street, thenwheezed to silence. There was a shout, a pause, and the motor caught again. Itseemed to run for ten seconds before it backfired, and was still. Doc opened one of the doors. In the middle of the street, a man was pushing anancient car while his wife steered. But it refused to start again. He grabbedfor tools, threw up the hood, and began a frantic search for the trouble. "If you can drive a tractor, there's one half a block down," Doc called out. The man looked up, snapped one quick glance behind him, and pulled the womanhastily out of the car. In almost no time, the heavy roar of the tractorsounded. The man revved it up to full throttle and tore off down the road, leaving Doc and Amos stranded. The sound of the aliens was clearer now, andthere was some light coming from beyond the bend of the street. There was no place to hide, except in the church. They found a window wherethe paint on the imitation stained glass was loose and peeled it back enoughfor a peephole. The advance scouts of the aliens were already within view. They were dashing from house to house. Behind them, they left something thatsent up clouds ofglowing smoke that seemed to have no fire connected to its brilliance. Atleast, no buildings were burning. Just as the main group of aliens came into view, the door of one house burstopen. A scrawny man leaped out, with his fat wife and fatter daughter behindhim. They raced up the street, tearing at their clothes and scratchingfrantically at their reddened skin. Shouts sounded. All three jerked, but went racing on. More shots sounded. Atfirst, Amos thought it was incredibly bad shooting. Then he realized that itwas even more unbelievably good marksmanship. The aliens were shooting at thehands first, then moving up the arms methodically, wasting no chance fortorture. For the first time in years, Amos felt fear and anger curdle solidly in hisstomach. He stood up, feeling his shoulders square back and his head come upas he moved toward the door. His lips were moving in words that he only halfunderstood. "Arise, O Lord; O God, lift up Thine hand; forget not the humble. Wherefore doth the wicked contemn God? He hath said in his heart, Thou wiltnot requite it. Thou hast seen it, for Thou beholdest mischief and spite, torequite it with Thy hand: the poor commiteth himself unto Thee; Thou art thehelper of the fatherless. Break Thou the arm of the wicked and the evil ones; seek out their wickedness till Thou find none . . ." "Stop it, Amos!" Doc's voice rasped harshly in his ear. "Don't be a fool! Andyou're misquoting that last verse!" It cut through the fog of his anger. He knew that Doc had deliberatelyreminded him of his father, but the trick worked, and the memory of hisfather's anger at misquotations replaced his cold fury. "We can't let that goon!" Then he saw it was over. The aliens had used up their targets. But there wasthe sight of another wretch, unrecognizable in half of his skin . . . Doc's voice was as sick as Amos felt. "We can't do anything. I can'tunderstand a race smart enough to build star ships and still stupid enough forthis. But it's good for our side, in the long run. While our armies are organizing, the snakes are wasting time on this. And it makes our resistance getRougher, too." The aliens didn't confine their sport to humans. They worked just as busily ona huge old tomcat they found. And all the corpses were being loaded onto a bigwagon pulled by twenty of the creatures. The aliens obviously had some knowledge of human behavior. At first they hadpassed up all stores and had concentrated on living quarters. The scouts hadpassed on by the church without a second glance. But they moved into a butchershop at once, to come out again carrying meat, which was piled on the wagonwith the corpses. Now a group was assembling before the church, pointing up toward the steeplewhere the bell was. Two of them shoved up a mortar of some sort. It waspointed quickly and a load was dropped in. There was a muffled explosion, andthe bell rang sharply, its pieces rattling down the roof and into the yardbelow. Another shoved the mortar into a new position, aiming it straight for the doorof the church. Doc yanked Amos down between two pews. "They don't likechurches, damn it! A fine spot we picked. Watch out for splinters!" The door smashed in and a heavy object struck the altar, ruining it. Amosgroaned at the shattering sound it made. There was no further activity when they slipped back to their peepholes. Thealiens were on the march again, moving along slowly. In spite of the deltaplanes, they seemed to have no motorized ground vehicles, and the wagon movedon under the power of the twenty green-skinned things, coming directly infront of the church. Amos stared at it in the flickering light from the big torches burning in thehands of some of the aliens. Most of the corpses were strangers to him. A fewhe knew. And then his eyes picked out the twisted, distorted upper part ofRuth's body, her face empty in death's relaxation. He stood up wearily, and this time Doc made no effort to stop him. He walkeddown a line of pews andaround the wreck of one of the doors. Outside the church, the air was stillhot and dry, but he drew a long breath into his lungs. The front of the churchwas in the shadows, and no aliens seemed to be watching him. He moved down the stone steps. His legs were firm now. His heart was poundingheavily, but the clot of feelings that rested leadenly in his stomach had nofear left in it. Nor was there any anger left, nor any purpose. He saw the aliens stop and stare at him, while a jabbering began among them. He moved forward with the measured tread that had led him down the aisle when he married Ruth. He came to the wagon and put his hand out, lifting one ofRuth's dead-limp arms back across her body. "This is my wife," he told the staring aliens quietly. "I am taking her homewith me." He reached up and began trying to move the other bodies away from her. Withoutsurprise, he saw Doc's arms moving up to help him, while a steady stream ofwhispered profanity came from the doctor's lips. Amos hadn't expected to succeed. He had expected nothing. Abruptly, a dozen of the aliens leaped for the two men. Amos let themoverpower him without resistance. For a second, Doc struggled; then he toorelaxed while the aliens bound them and tossed them onto the wagon. He hath bent his bow like an enemy: he stood with his right hand as anadversary, and slew all that were pleasant to the eye in the tabernacle of thedaughter of Zion: he poured- out his fury like fire. The Lord was as an enemy: he hath swallowed up Israel, he hath swallowed upall her palaces: he hath destroyed his strong holds, and hath increased in thedaughter of Judah mourning and lamentation. The Lord hath cast off his altar, he hath abhorred his sanctuary, he hathgiven up into the hand of this -enemy the walls of her palaces; they have madea noise in the house of the Lord, as in the day of a solemn feast. Lamentations 2:4, 5,7THE BOOK OF THE JEWS Amos' first reaction was one of dismay at the rain of his only good suit. Hestruggled briefly on the substance under him, trying to find a better spot. Aminister's suit might be old, but he could never profane the altar with suchstains as these. Then some sense of the ridiculousness of his worry reachedhis mind, and he relaxed as best he could. He had done what he had to do, and it was too late to regret it. He could onlyaccept the consequences of it now, as he had learned to accept everything elseGod had seen fit to send him. He had never been a man of courage, but thestrength of God had sustained him through as much as most men had to bear. Itwould sustain him further. Doc was facing him, having flopped around to lie near him. Now the doctor'slips twisted into a crooked grin. "I guess we're in for it now. But it won'tlast forever, and maybe we're old enough to die fast. At least, once we'redead, we won't know it, so there's no sense being afraid of dying." If it were meant to provoke him into argument, it failed. Amos considered it acompletely hopeless philosophy, but it was better than none, probably. His ownfaith in the hereafter left something to be desired; he was sure ofimmortality and the existence of heaven and hell, but he had never been ableto picture either to his own satisfaction. The wagon had been swung around and was now being pulled up the street, backtoward Clyde, Amos tried to take his mind off the physical discomforts of theride by watching the houses, counting them to his own. They drew near itfinally, but it was Doc who spotted the important fact. He groaned. "My car!" Amos strained his eyes, staring into the shadows through the glare of thetorches. Doc's car stood at the side of the house, with its left front dooropen! Someone must have told Anne that he hadn't left, and she'd forgotten heranger with him to swing back around the alien horde to save him! He began a prayer that they might pass on without the car being noticed, andit seemed at first that they would. Then there was a sudden cry from thehouse, and he saw her face briefly at a front window. She must have seen Docand himself lying on the wagon! He opened his mouth to risk a warning, but it was too late. The door of thehouse swung back, and she was standing on the front steps, lifting Richard'srifle to her shoulder. Amos' heart seemed to hesitate with the tension of his body. The aliens still hadn't noticed. If she'd only wait ... The rifle cracked. Either by luck or some skill he hadn't suspected, one of the aliens dropped. She was running forward now, throwing another cartridgeinto the barrel. The gun barked again, and an alien fell to the ground, bleating horribly. There was no attempt at torture this tune, at least. The leading alien finallyjerked out a tubelike affair from a scabbard at his side and a single sharpexplosion sounded. Anne jerked backward as the heavy slug hit her forehead, the rifle spinning from her dead hands. The wounded alien was trying frantically to crawl away. Two of his fellowsbegan working on him mercilessly, with as little feeling as if he had been ahuman. His body followed that of Anne toward the front of the wagon, justbeyond Amos' limited view. She hadn't seemed hysterical this time, Amos thought wearily. It had been hertendency to near hysteria that had led to his advising Richard to wait, notthe difference in faith. Now he was sorry he'd had no chance to understand herbetter. Doc sighed, and there was a peculiar pride under the thickness of his voice. "Man," he said, "has one virtue which is impossible to any omnipotent forcelike your God. He can be brave. He can be brave beyond sanityfor another man or for an idea. Amos, I pity your God if man ever makes war onHim!" Amos flinched, b'ut the blasphemy aroused only a shadow of his normalreaction. His mind seemed numbed. He lay back, watching black clouds scuddingacross the sky almost too rapidly. It looked unnatural, and he remembered howoften the accounts had mentioned a tremendous storm that had wrecked or hampered the efforts of human troops. Maybe a counterattack had begun, andthis was part of the alien defense. If they had some method of weathercontrol, it was probable. The moonlight was already blotted out by the clouds. Half a mile farther on, there was a shout from the aliens, and a big tractorchugged into view, badly driven by one of the aliens who had obviously onlypartly mastered the human machine. With a great deal of trial and error, itwas backed into position and coupled to the wagon. Then it began churningalong at nearly thirty miles an hour, while the big wagon bucked and bouncedbehind. From then on, the ride was a physical hell. Even Doc groaned at someof the bumps, though his bones had three times more padding than Amos couldboast. Mercifully, they slowed when they reached Clyde. Amos wiped the blood off hisbitten lip and managed to wriggle to a position where most of the bruises wereon his upper side. Beyond the town there was a flood of brilliant lights wherethe alien rockets stood, and he could see a group of strange machines drivenby nonhu-man creatures busy-unloading the great ships. But the drivers of themachines looked totally unlike the other aliens. One of the alien trucks swung past them, and he had a clear view of thecreature steering it. It bore no resemblance to humanity. There was a coneliketorso, covered with a fine white down, ending in four thick stalks to serve aslegs. From its broadest point, four sinuous limbs spread out to the truckcontrols. There was no head, but only eight small tentacles waving above it. He saw a few others, always in control of machines, and no machines being handled by the green-skinned people, as they passedthrough the ghost city that had been Clyde. Apparently there were two racesallied against humanity, which explained why such barbarians could come inspace ships. The green ones must be sun-ply the fighters, while the downycones were the technicians. From their behavior, though, the pilots of theplanes must be recruited from the fighters. Clyde had grown since he had been there, unlike most of the towns about. Therewas a new supermarket just down the street from Amos' former church, and thetractor jolted to a stop in front of it. Aliens swarmed out and began carryingthe dead loot from the wagon into big food lockers, while two others lifted Doc and Amos. But they weren't destined for the comparatively merciful death of freezing inthe lockers. The aliens threw them into a little cell that had once apparentlybeen a cashier's cage, barred from floor to ceiling. It made a fairlyefficient jail, and the lock that clicked shut as the door closed behind themwas too heavy to be broken. There was already one occupant-a medium-built young man whom Amos finallyrecognized as Smithton,-the Clyde dentist. His shoulders were shaking withsporadic sobs as he sat huddled in one corner. He looked at the two arrivalswithout seeing them. "But I surrendered," he whispered to himself. "I'm aprisoner of war. They can't do it. I surrendered . . ." A fatter-than-usual alien, wearing the only clothes Amos had seen on any ofthem, came waddling up to the cage, staring in at them, and the dentist wailedoff into silence. The alien drew up his robe about his chest and scratched hisrump against a counter without taking his eyes off them. "Humans," he said ina grating voice, but without an accent, "are peculiar. No standardization." "I'll be damned!" Doc swore. "English!" The alien studied them with what might have been surprise, lifting his ears. "Is the gift of tongues so unusual, then? Many of the priests of the Lord GodAlmighty speak all the human languages. It's a common miracle, not likelevitation." "Fine. Then maybe you'll tell us what we're being held for?" Doc suggested. The priest shcugged. "Food, of course. The grethi eat any kind of meat-evenour people-but we have to examine the laws to find whether you're permitted. If you are, we'll need freshly killed specimens to sample, so we're waitingwith you." "You mean you're attacking us for food?" The priest grunted harshly. "No! We're on a holy mission to exterminate you. The Lord Almighty commanded us to go down to Earth where abominations existedand to leave no living creature under your sun." He turned and waddled out of the store, taking the single remaining torch withhim, leaving only the dim light of the moon and reflections from farther away. Amos dropped onto a stool inside the cage. "They had to lock us in a newbuilding instead of one I know," he said. "If it had been the church, we mighthave had a chance." "How?" Doc asked sharply. Amos tried to describe the passage through the big unfinished basement underthe church, reached through a trap door. Years before, a group of teen-agershad built a sixty-foot tunnel into it and had used it for a private club untilthe passage had been discovered and bricked over from outside. The earth wouldbe soft around the bricks, however. Beyond, the outer end of the tunnel openedin a wooded section, which led to a drainage ditch that in turn connected withthe Republican River. From the church, they could move to the stream and slipdown that without being seen. There was even an alley-or had been one-behindthe store that would take them to the shadow of the trees around the church. Doc's fingers were fumbling with the lock as Amos finished. He grunted andreached for his pocket, taking out a few corns. "They don't know much aboutus, Amos, if they expect to hold us here, where the lock is fastened from theinside. Feel those screws." Amos fumbled over the lock surface. There were four large screws on the backof the lock, holding it tothe door. The cashier's cage had been designed to keep others out, not toserve as a jail. At best, he thought, it was a poor chance. Yet was it merelychance? It seemed more like the hand of God to him. "More like the stupidity of the aliens, to my mind," Doc objected. He wastesting the screws with a quarter now. He nodded in some satisfaction, thenswpre. "Damn it, the quarter fits the slot, but I can't get enough leverage to turn the screw. Hey, Smithton or whatever your name is, pull out that moneydrawer and knock the bottom out. I need a couple of narrow slats." Smithton had been praying miserably-a childhood prayer for laying himself downto sleep. But he succeeding in kicking out splinters from the drawer bottom. Doc selected two and clamped them around the quarter, trying to hold them inplace while he turned them. It was rough going, but the screws turned. Threecame loose finally, and the lock rotated on the fourth until they could forcethe cage open. Doc stopped and pulled Smithton to him. "Follow me, and do what I do. Notalking, no making a separate jump, or I'll break your neck. All right!" The back door was locked, but from the inside. They opened it to a backyardfilled with garbage. The alley wasn't as dark as it should have been, sinceopen lots beyond let some light come through. They hugged what shadows theycould until they reached the church hedge. There they groped along, liningthemselves up with the side office door. There was no sign of aliens. Amos broke ahead of the others, being more familiar with the church. It wasn'tuntil he had reached the door that he realized it could have been locked; ithad been kept that way part of the time. He grabbed the handle and forced itback-to find it unlatched. For a second, he stopped to thank the Lord for their luck. Then the otherswere with him, crowding into the little kitchen where social suppers wereprepared. He'd always hated those functions, but now he blessed them forproviding a hiding place that gave them time to find their way. There were sounds in the church, and odors, butnone that seemed familiar to Amos. Something made the back hairs of his neckprickle. He took off his shoes and tied them around his neck, and the othersfollowed suit. The way to the trap door lay down a small hall, across in front of the altar, and into the private office on the other side. They were safer together than separated, particularly since Smithton was withthem. Amos leaned back against the kitchen wall to catch his breath. His heartseemed to have a ring of needled pain around it, and his throat was so drythat he had to fight desperately against gagging. There was water here, but hecouldn't risk rummaging across the room to the sink. He was praying for strength, less for himself than for the others. Long since, he had resigned himself to die. If God willed his death, he was ready; all hehad were dead and probably mutilated, and he had succeeded only in draggingthose who tried to help him into mortal danger. He was old, and his body wasalready treading its way to death. He could live for probably twenty moreyears, but aside from his work, there was nothing to live for-and even inthat, he had been only a mediocre failure. But he was still responsible forDoc Miller, and even for Smithton now. He squeezed his eyes together and squinted around the doorway. There was somelight in the hall that led toward the altar, but he could see no one, andthere were drapes that gave a shadow from which they could spy the rest oftheir way. He moved to it softly, and felt the others come up behind him. .He bent forward, parting the drapes a trifle. They were perhaps twenty feetin front of the altar, on the right side. He spotted the wreckage that hadonce stood as an altar. Then he frowned as he saw evidence of earth piled upinto a mound of odd shape. He threw the cloth back farther, surprised at the curiosity in him, as he hadbeen surprised repeatedly by the changes taking place hi himself. There were two elaborately robed priests kneeling inthe center of the chapel. But his eye barely noticed them before it wasattracted to what stood in front of the new altar. A box of wood rested on an earthenware platform. On it were four marks, whichhis eyes recognized as unfamiliar, but which his mind twisted into a sequence from no alphabet he had learned; yet in them was .always more than they were. And above the box was a veil, behind which Something shone brightly withoutlight. In his mind, a surge of power pulsed, making something that might almost havebeen words through his thoughts. "I AM THAT i AM, who brought those out of bondage from Egypt and who wroteupon the wall before Bel-shazzar, MENE, MENE, TEKEL, UPHARSIN, as it shall bewrit large upon the Earth, from this day forth. For I have said unto the seedof Mikhtchah, thou art my chosen people and I shall exalt thee above all theraces under the heavens!" And it was given unto him to make war with the saints, and to overcome them: and power was given him over all kindreds, and tongues, and nations. He that leadeth into captivity shall go into captivity: he that killeth withthe sword must be killed with the sword. Revelation 13:7, 10THE BOOK OF THE CHRISTIANS The seed of Mikhtchah. The seed that was the aliens ... There was no time and ah1 time, then. Amos felt his heart stop, but the bloodpounded through his arteries with a vigor it had lacked for decades. He feltRuth's hand in his, stirring with returning life, and knew shehad never existed. Beside him, he saw Doc Miller's hair turn snow white., aridknew that it was so, though there was no way he could see Doc from hisposition. He felt the wrath of the Presence rest upon him, weighing his every thoughtfrom his birth to his certain death, where he ceased completely and went onforever, and yet he knew that the Light behind the veil was unaware of him, but was receptive only to the two Mikht-chah priests who knelt unaware. All of that was with but a portion of his mind so small that he could notlocate it, though his total mind encompassed all time and space, and thatwhich was neither; yet each part of his perceptions occupied all of his mindthat had been or ever could be, save only the present, which somehow was aconcept not yet solved by the One before him. He saw a strange man on a low mountain, receiving tablets of stone thatweighed only a pennyweight, engraved with a script that all could read. And heknew the man, but refused to believe it, since the garments were not those ofhis mental image, and the clean-cut face fitted better with the strangeEgyptian headpiece than with the language being spoken. Amos saw every prayer of his life tabulated. But nowhere was there the mantleof divine warmth which he had felt as a boy and had almost felt again themorning before. And there was a stirring of unease at his thought, mixed withwrath; yet while the thought was in his mind, nothing could touch him. Yet each of those things was untrue, because he could find no understanding ofthat which was true. It ended as abruptly as it had begun, either a microsecond or a millionsubjective years after. It left him numbed, but newly alive. And it left himdead as no man had ever been hopelessly dead before. He knew only that before him was the Lord God Almighty, who had made acovenant with Abraham, with Isaac, and with Jacob, and with their seed; andthat mankind had been rejected, while God now was on the side of the enemiesof Abraham's seed, and all the nations of earth. Even that was too much for a human mind no longer in touch with the Presence, and only a shadow of it remained. Beside him, Amos heard Doc Miller begin breathing again, brushing the whitehair back from his forehead wonderingly as he muttered a single word. "God!" One of the Mikhtchah priests looked up, his eyes turning about; there was aglazed look on his face, but it was leaving. Then Smithton screamed! His open mouth poured out a steady, unwaveringscreaming, while his lungs panted in and out. His eyes opened, staringhorribly. Like a wooden doll on strings, the man stood up and walked forward. He avoided the draperies and headed for the Light behind the veil. Abruptly, the Light was gone, but Smithton walked toward it as steadily as before. Hestopped before the falling veil, and the scream cut off sharply. Doc had jerked silently to his feet, tugging Amos up behind him. The ministerlifted himself, but he knew there was no place to go. It was up to the will ofGod now. ... Or ... Smithton turned on one heel precisely. His face was rigid and withoutexpression, yet completely mad. He walked mechanically forward toward the twopriests. They sprawled aside at the last second, holding two obviously human- made automatics, but making no effort to use them. Smithton walked on towardthe open door at the front of the church. He reached the steps, with the two priests staring after him. His feet liftedfrom the first step to the second and then he was on the sidewalk. The two priests fired! Smithton jerked, halted, and suddenly cried out in a voice of normal, rationalagony. His legs kicked frantically under him and he ducked out of the sight ofthe doorway, his faltering steps sounding farther and farther away. He wasdead-the Mikhtchah marksmanship had been as good as it seemed always to be-butstill moving, though slower and slower, as if some extra charge of life weredraining out like a battery running down. The priests exchanged quick glances and then darted after him, crying out asthey dashed around the door into the night. Abruptly^ a single head and handappeared again, to snap a shot at the draperies from which Smith-ton had come. Amos forced himself to stand still, while his imagination supplied the jolt oflead in his stomach. The bullet hit the draperies, and something else. The priest hesitated, and was gone again. Amos broke into a run across the chapel and into the hall at the other side ofthe altar. He heard the faint sound of Doc's feet behind him. The trap door was still there, unintentionally concealed under carpeting. Heforced it up and dropped through it into the four-foot depth of theincompleted basement, making room for Doc. They crouched together as helowered the trap and began feeling his way through the blackness toward theother end of the basement. It had been five years since he had been downthere, and then only once for a quick inspection of the work of the boys whohad dug the tunnel. He thought he had missed it at first, and began groping for the smallentrance. It might have caved in, for that matter. Then, two feet away, hishand found the hole and he drew Doc after him. It was cramped, and bits of dirt had fallen in places and had to be dug out ofthe way. Part of the distance was on their stomachs. They found the bricked-upwall ahead of them and began digging around it with then-bare hands. It tookanother ten minutes, while distant sounds of wild yelling from the Mikhtchahreached them faintly. They broke through at last with bleeding hands, notbothering to check for aliens near. They reached a safer distance in thewoods, caught their breaths, and went on. The biggest danger lay in the drainage trench, which was low in severalplaces. But luck was with them, and these spots lay in shadow. Then the little Republican River lay in front of them, and there was aflatbottom boat nearby. Moments later they were floating down the stream, resting their aching lungs, while the boat needed only atrifling guidance. It was still night, with only the light from the moon, andthere was little danger of pursuit by the alien planes. Amos could just seeDoc's face as the man fumbled for a cigarette. He lighted it and exhaled deeply. "All right, Amos- you were right, and Godexists. But damn it, I don't feel any better for knowing that. I can't see howGod helps me-nor even how He's doing the Mikhtchah much good. What do they getout of it, beyond a few miracles with the weather? They're just doing God'sdirty work." "They get the Earth, I suppose-if they want it," Amos said doubtfully. Hewasn't sure they did. Nor could he see how the other aliens tied into thescheme; if he had known the answers, they were gone now. "Doc, you're still anatheist, though you now know God is." The plump man chuckled bitterly. "Fm afraid you're right. But at least I'mmyself. You can't be, Amos. You've spent your whole life on the gamble thatGod is right and that you must serve Him-when the only way you could serve wasto help mankind. What do you do now? God is automatically right-but everythingyou've ever believed makes Him completely wrong, and you can only serve Him bybetraying your people. What kind of ethics will work for you now?" Amos shook his head wearily, hiding his face in his hands. The same problemhad been fighting its way through his own thoughts. His first reaction hadbeen to acknowledge his allegiance to God without question; sixty years ofconditioned thought lay behind that. Yet now he could not accept such adecision. As a man, he could not bow to what he believed completely evil, andthe Mikhtchah were evil by every definition he knew. Could he tell people the facts, and take away what faith they had hi anypurpose in life? Could he go over to the enemy, who didn't even want himexcept for their feeding experiments? Or could he encourage people to fight, with the old words that God was with them- when he knew the words were false? Yet their resistance might doom them to eternal hellfire for opposing God. It hit him then that he could remember nothing clearly about the case of ahereafter-either for or against it. Wtrat iappened to a people when Goddeserted them? Were they only deserted in their physical form, and still freeto win their spiritual salvation? Or were they completely lost? Did they ceaseto have souls that could survive? Or were those souls automatically consignedto hell, however noble they might be? No question had been answered for him. He knew that God existed, but he hadknown that before. He knew nothing now beyond that. He did not even know whenGod had placed the Mikhtchah before humanity. It seemed unlikely that it wasas recent as his own youth. Otherwise, how could he account for the strangespiritual glow he had felt as an evangelist? "There's only one rational answer," he said at last. "It doesn't make anydifference what I decide! I'm only one man." "So was Columbus when he swore the world was round. And he didn't have the look on his face you've had since we saw God, Amos! I know.now what the Biblemeans when it says Moses' face shone after he came down from the mountain, until he had to cover it with a veil. If I'm right, there's little help formankind if you decide wrong!" Doc tossed the cigarette over the side and lit another, and Amos was shockedto see that the man's hands were shaking. The doctor shrugged, and his tonefell back to normal. "I wish we knew more. You've always thought almostexclusively in terms of the Old Testament and a few snatches of Revelation- like a lot of men who became evangelists. I've never really thought about God- I couldn't accept Him, so I dismissed Hun. Maybe that's why we got the view ofHun we did. I wish I knew where Jesus fits in, for instance. There's too muchmissing. Too many imponderables and hiatuses. We have only two facts, and wecan't understand either. There is a manifestation of God which has touched both Mikhtchah and mankind; and He has stated now that He plans to wipe outmankind. We'll have to stick to that." Amos made one more attempt to deny the problem that was facing him. "SupposeGod is only testing man again, as He did so often before?" "Testing?" Doc rolled the word on his tongue, and seemed to spit it out. Thestrange white hair seemed to make him older, and the absence of mockery in hisvoice left him almost a stranger. "Amos, the Hebrews worked like the devil toget Canaan; after forty years of wandering around a few square miles, Godsuddenly told them this was the land-and then they had to take it by the samemethods men have always used to conquer a country. The miracles didn't reallydecide anything. They got out of Babylon because the old prophets were slavingnight and day to hold them together as one people, and because they managed tosweat it out until they finally got a break. In our own time, they've done thesame things to get Israel, and with no miracles! It seems to me God alwaystook it away, but they had to get it back by themselves. I don't think much ofthat kind of a test in this case." Amos could feel all his values slipping and spinning. He realized that he washolding himself together only because of Doc; otherwise, his mind would havereached for madness, like any intelligence forced to solve the insoluble. Hecould no longer comprehend himself, let alone God. And the feeling crept intohis thoughts that God couldn't wholly understand him, either. "Can a creation defy anything great enough to create it, Doc? And should it, if it can?" "Most kids have to," Doc said. He shook his head. "It's your problem. All Ican do is point a few things out. And maybe it won't matter, at that. We'restill a long ways inside Mikhtchah territory, and it's getting along towarddaylight." The boat drifted on, while Amos tried to straighten out his thoughts and grewmore deeply tangled hi a web of confusion. What could any man who worshippedGod devoutly do if he found his God was opposed to all else he had everbelieved to be good? m <-• A version of Rant's categorical imperative crept into his mind; somebody hadonce quoted it to him- probably Doeyes going to the car outside again. From somewhere, fyedrew out a bottle of good Scotch. At my nod, he^mixed it with water from acooler. He settled back, studying me as he took his own seat. "A. J., heh?" hecommented again, sounding a sour note here, somehow. "That sounds likesuccess. Thought your mother mentioned something about your having sometrouble a few years back?" "Not financial," I told him. I'd thought only Liza remembered it. She musthave written to Mother at the time, since I'd kept it out of the papers. Andafter I'd agreed to buy the trucking line for our son-in-law, she'd finallycompletely forgiven me. It was none of Matthews' business-but out here, Iremembered, doctors considered everything their business. "Why, Doc?" He studied me, let his eyes sweep over the car again, and then tipped up theglass to finish the whisky. "Just curiosity. No, damn it, I might as well behonest. You'll see her anyhow, now. She's an old woman, Andrew, and she haswhat might be called a tidy fortune. When children who haven't worried abouther for years turn up, it might not be affection. And I'm not going to haveanything happen to Martha now!" The hints in his remarks too closely matched my own suspicions. I could feelmyself tightening up, tensing with annoyance and a touch of fear. I didn'twant to ask the question. I wanted to get mad at him for being an interferingold meddler. But I had to know. "You mean-senile dementia?" "No," he answered quickly, with a slightly lifted eyebrow. "No, Andrew, sheisn't crazy! She's in fine physical shape, and sane enough to take care ofherself for the next fifteen years she'll probably live. And she doesn't needany fancy doctors and psychiatrists. Just remember that, and remember she's anold woman. Thirteen children in less than twenty years! A widow before she wasforty. Lonely all these years, even if she is too independent to bother youkids. An old woman's entitled to whatever kind of happiness she can get! Anddon't forget that!" He stopped, seeming surprised at himself. Then hestood up and reached for his hat. "Come on, I'll ride out with you." He kept up a patter of local history as we drove down the streets where cornhad grown when I last saw this section. There was a hospital where the woodshad been, and the old spring was covered by an apartment building. The bighouse where we had been born stood out, sprawling in ugly warmth among thefacsimile piano-boxes they were calling houses nowadays. I wanted to turn back, but Matthews motioned me after him up the walk. Thefront door was still unlocked, and he went in, tilting his head toward thestairs. "Martha! Hey, Martha!" "Jimmy's out back, Doc," a voice called down. It was Mother's voice, unchangedexcept for a puzzling lilt I'd never heard before, and I drew a quick breathof relief. "Okay, Martha," Matthews called up. "I'll just see him, then, and call you uplater. You won't want me around when you see who I brought you! It's Andrew!" "How nice! Tell him to sit down and I'll be dressed in a minute!" Doc shrugged. 'Til sit out hi the garden a few minutes," he told me. "Then I'll catch a cab back. But remember-your mother deserves any happiness she canget. Don't you ruin it!" He went through the back door, and I found the parlor, and dropped onto theold sofa. Then I frowned. It had been stored in the attic in 1913, when Dadbought the new furniture. I stared through the soft dimness, making out allthe old pieces. Even the rug was the way it had been when I was a child. Iwalked into the other rooms, finding them the same as they had been fortyyears before, except for the television set in the dining room and thecompletely modern kitchen, with a pot of soup bubbling on the back of thestove. I was getting a thick feeling in my throat and the anxiety I'd had before whenthe sound of steps on the stairs brought my eyes up. Mother came down, a trifle slowly, but without any sign of weakness. Shedidn't rest her hand on the banister. She might have been the woman to match the furnishings of the hoflge, except for the wrinkles and the white hair. And the dress was new, but aperfect copy of one she'd worn when I was still a child! She seemed not to hear my gasp. Her hand came out to catch mine, and she bentforward, kissing me on the cheek. "You look real good, Andrew. There, now, let's see. Umm-hmm. Liza's been feeding you right, I can see that. But I'llbet you could eat some real homemade soup and pie, eh? Come out in thekitchen. I'll fix it in a minute." She wasn't only in fine physical shape-she was like a woman fifteen yearsyounger than her age. And she'd even remembered to call me Andrew, instead ofthe various nicknames she'd used during my growing up. That wasn't senility! Asenile woman would have turned back to the earliest one, as I remembered it- particularly since I'd had to work hard to get her to drop the childhoodnames. Yet the house ... She bustled about the kitchen, dishing out some of the rich, hot soup. Shehadn't been a good cook when I was a kid, but she'd grown steadily better, andthis was superlative. "I guess Doc must have pronounced Jimmy well," she saidcasually. "He's gone running off somewhere now. Well, after two weeks coopedup here with the measles, I can't blame him. I remember how you were when youhad them. Notice how I had the house fixed up, Andrew?" I nodded, puzzling over her words. "I noticed the old furniture. But thisJimmy . . . ?" "Oh, you never met him, did you? Never mind, you will. How long you staying, Andrew?" I tried to figure things out, cursing Matthews for not warning me of this. Ofcourse, I'd heard somehow that one of my various nephews had lost his wife. Was he the one who'd had the young boy? And hadn't he gone up to Alaska? No, that was Frank's son. And why would anyone hand over a youngster to Mother, anyhow? There were enough younger women in the family. I caught her eyes on me, and pulled myself together. "I'll be leaving in acouple of hours, Mother. I just. . ." "It was real nice of you to drop over," she interrupted me, as she had alwayscut into our answers. Tve been meaning to see you and Liza soon, but fixingthe house kept me kind of busy. Two men carried the furniture down, but I didthe rest myself. Makes me feel younger somehow, having the old furniturehere." She dished out a quarter of a peach cobbler and put it in front of me, with acup of steaming coffee. She took another quarter for herself and filled herbig cup. I had a mental picture of Liza with her vitamins and diets. Who wassenile? "Jimmy's going to school now," she said. "He's got a crush on his teacher, too. More pie, Andrew? Ill have to save a piece for little Jimmy, but thereare two left."1 From outside, there was a sudden noise, and she jumped up, to walk quicklytoward the back door. Then she came into the kitchen again. "Just a neighborkid taking a short cut. I wish they'd be a little nicer, though, and play withJimmy. He gets lonesome sometimes. Like my kitchen, Andrew?" "Nice," I said carefully, trying to keep track of the threads of conversation. "But it's kind of modern." "That and the television set," she agreed cheerfully. "Some new things arenice. And some old ones. I've got a foam rubber mattress for my bed, but therest of the room . . . Andrew, you come up. 111 show you something I flunk'sreal elegant." The house was clean, and no rooms were closed off. I wondered about that as weclimbed the stairs. I hadn't seen a maid. But she sniffed in contempt when Imentioned it. "Of course I take care of it myself. That's a woman's job, ain'tit? And then, little Jimmy helps some. He's getting to be mighty handy." The bedroom was something to see. It reminded me of what I'd seen of thenineties in pictures and movies, complete with frills and fripperies. Theyears had faded the upholstery and wallpaper in the rest of the house. Buthere everything seemed bright and new. "Had a young decorator fellow from Chicago fix it," she explained proudly. "Like what I always wanted when I was a young girl. Cost a fortune, but Jimmytold me I had to do it, because I wanted it." She chuckled fondly. "Sit down,1, Andrew. How are you and Liza making out? StfH fighting over that young hussyshe caught you with, or did she take my advice? Silly, letting you know sheknew. Nothing makes a man more loving than a little guilt, I always found- especially if the woman gets real sweet about then." We spent a solid hour discussing things, and it felt good. I told her how theywere finally shipping my youngest back to us. I let her bawl me out for theway the oldest boy was using me and for what she called my snootiness about myson-in-law. But her idea of making him only junior partner in the truckingline at first wasn't bad. I should have thought of it myself. She also told meall the gossip about the family. Somehow, she'd kept track of things. I hadn'teven known that Pete had died, though I had heard of the other two deaths. I'dmeant to go to the funerals, but there'd been that big deal with MidcityAsphalt and then that trouble getting our man into Congress. Things like thathad a habit of coming up at the wrong tunes. When I finally stood up to go, I wasn't worried about any danger of a familyscandal through Mother. If Matthews thought I'd be bothered about herswitching back to the old furniture and having this room decorated periodstyle-no matter what it cost-he was the senile one. I felt good, in fact. Ithad been better than a full round of golf, with me winning. I started to tellher I'd get back soon. I was even thinking of "bringing Liza and the familyout for our vacation, instead of taking the trip to Bermuda we'd talked about. She got up to kiss me again. Then she caught herself. "Goodness! Here you'regoing, and you haven't met Jimmy yet. You sit down a minute, Andrew!" She threw up the window quickly, letting in the scent of roses from the back. "Jimmy! Oh, Jimmy! It's getting late. Come on in. And wash your face beforeyou come up. I want you to meet your Uncle Andrew." She turned back, smiling a little apologetically. "He's my pet, Andrew. Ialways tried to be fair about my children, but I guess I like Jimmy sort ofspecial!" Downstairs, I could hear a door close faintly, and the muffled sounds of aboy's steps moving toward the kitchen. Mother sat beaming, happier than I'dseen her for years-since Dad died, in fact. Then the steps sounded on thestairs. I grinned myself, realizing that little Jimmy must be taking two stepsat a time, using the banister to pull himself up. I'd always done that when Iwas a kid. I was musing on how alike boys are wlien the footsteps reached the landing and headed toward the room. I started to look toward the door, but the transformation on Mother's facecaught my attention. She suddenly looked almost young, and her eyes wereshining, while her gaze was riveted on the door behind. There was a faint sound of it opening and closing, and I started to turn. Something prickled up my backbone. Something was wrong! And then, as I turnedcompletely, I recognized it. When a door opens, the air in the room stirs. Wenever notice it, unless it doesn't happen. Then the stillness tells us at oncethe door can't have really opened. This time, the air hadn't moved. In front of me, the steps sounded, uncertainly, like those of a somewhat shyboy of six. But there was no one there! The thick carpet didn't even flattenas the soft sound of the steps came closer and stopped, just in front of me! "This is Uncle Andrew, Jimmy," Mother announced happily, "Shake hands like agood boy, now. He came all the way from Des Moines to see you." I put my hand out, dictated by some vague desire to please her, while I couldfeel cold sweat running down my arms and legs. I even moved my hand as if itwere being shaken. Then I stumbled to the door, yanked it open, and starteddown the stairs. Behind me, the boy's footsteps sounded uncertainly, following out to thelanding. Then Mother's steps drowned them, as she came quickly down the stairsafter me. "Andrew, I think you're shy around boys! You're not fooling me. You're justrunning off because you don't know how to talk to little Jimmy!" She was grinning in amusement. Then she caught my hand again. "You come again s$al Soon, Andrew." I must have1" said the right things, somehow. She turned to go up the stairs, just as I heard the steps creak from above, where no one was standing! Then Istumbled out and into my car. I was lucky enough to find a few ounces ofwhisky in a bottle in the glove compartment. But the liquor didn't help much. I avoided Matthews' place. I cut onto the main highway and opened the bigengine all the way, not caring about cops. I wanted all the distance I couldget between myself and the ghost steps of little Jimmy. Ghost? Not even that! Just steps and the weak sound of a door that didn't open. Jimmy wasn't even aghost-he couldn't be. I had to slow down as the first laughter tore out of my throat. I swung offthe road and let it rip out of me, until the pain in my side finally cut itoff. Things were better after that. And when I started the Cadillac again, I wasbeginning to think. By the tune I reached the outskirts of Des Moines, I hadit licked. It was hallucination, of-course. Matthews had tried to warn me that Mother wasgoing through a form of dotage. She'd created a child for herself, going backto her youth for it. The school that wasn't there, the crush on the teacher, the measles-all were real things she was reliving through little Jimmy. Butbecause she was so unlike other women in keeping firmly sane about everythingexcept this one fantasy, she'd fooled me. She'd made me think she wascompletely rational. When she'd explained the return of the old furniture, she'd wiped out all my doubts, which had centered on that. She'd made me take it for granted that Jimmy was real. And she had made meexpect to hear steps when her own listening had prepared me for them. I'd beencued by her own famt reactions to her imagination-I must have seen some littlegesture, and followed her timing. It had been superbly real to her-and mysenses had tricked me. It wasn't impossible. It was the secret of many of the great stage illusions, aided by my own memories of theold house, and given life by the fact that she believed in the steps, as nostage trickster could believe. I convinced myself of it almost completely. I had to do that. And finally Inearly dismissed the steps from my mind, and concentrated on Mother. Matthews'words came back to me, and I nodded to myself. It was a harmless fantasy, andMother was entitled to her pleasure. She was sane enough to care for herself, without any doubt, and physically far better than she had any right to be. With Matthews' interest in her, there was no reason for me to worry aboutanything. By the time I pulled the car into the garage, I was making plans for settingup the trucking concern again, following Mother's advice about making myselfthe senior partner. It hadn't been a wasted day, after all. Life went on, pretty much as usual. My younger boy was back home for a while. I'd looked forward to that, but somehow the Army had broken the old bondsbetween us. Even when I had time, there wasn't much we could talk about. Iguess it was something of a relief when he left for some job in New York; anyhow, I was busy straightening out a brawl the older one got mixed up in. Mydaughter was expecting again, and her husband was showing a complete inabilityto cooperate with me. I didn't have much time to think about little Jimmy. Mercifully, Liza hadn't asked me about my trip; there was nothing to keep mefrom forgetting most of it. I wrote Mother once in a while, now. Her letters grew longer, and sometimesJimmy's name appeared, along with quite a bit of advice on the truckingbusiness. Most of that was useless, naturally, but she knew more than I'dsuspected about the ways of business. It gave me something to write backabout. I paid a fat fee to a psychiatrist for a while, but mostly he only confirmedwhat I'd already reasoned out. I wasn't interested in some of the othernonsense he tried to sell me, so I stopped going after a while. And then I forgot the whole thing when the first tentative feeler from NewMode Roofing and Asphalt suggested a merger. I'd been planting the seed forthe idea for months, but getting it set to put in my control was atricky problem. I finally Jiad to compromise by agreeing to move theheadguilters to Akron, tearing up my roots overnight and resettling. Liza madea scene over that, and my daughter flatly refused to come. I had to agree toturn the trucking concern over to my son-in-law completely, just when it wasbeginning to show a profit. But the rift had been coming ever since he'drefused to fire my oldest boy from the job of driving one of the trailers. Maybe it was just as well. The boy seemed to like it. We'd be in Akron, nobodywould know about it, and he'd be better off than he was hanging around withsome of the friends he'd had before. I meant to write Mother about that, sinceshe'd suggested it once, and I suspected she'd had something to do with it. But the move took all my attention. After that, there was the problem oforganizing the new firm. I decided to see Mother, instead of writing to her. I wasn't going to befooled again with the same hallucination. The new psychiatrist assured me ofthat, and advised the trip. I had already marked off the date on my calendarfor the visit next month. It didn't work out. Matthews called me at two o'clock in the morning with thenews, after wasting two days tracing me down through acquaintances. Nobodythought of looking me up in a business directory, of course. Mother had pneumonia and the prognosis was unfavorable. "At her age, these things are serious," he said. His voice wasn't professionalthis time. "You'd better get here as quickly as you can. She's been asking foryou." "I'll charter a plane at once," I told him. This would raise the deuce withthe voting of stock we'd scheduled, but I couldn't stay away, obviously. I'dalmost convinced myself Mother would go on for another twenty years. Now . . . "How'd it happen?" "The big storm last week. She went out in it with rubbers and an umbrella tofetch little Jimmy from school! She got sopping wet. When I reached her, shealready had a fever. I've been trying everything, but . . ." I hung up, sick. Little Jimmy! For a minute, I wanted him to be real enough tostrangle. I pounded on Liza's door and got her to charter the plane while I packed androused out my secretary on the other phone. Liza drove me to the airport wherethe plane was warmed up and waiting. I turned to say good-by, but she wasdragging out a second bag from the back. "I'm going," she announced flatly. I started to argue, saw her expression, and gave up. A few minutes later, wetook off. Most of the rest of the family was already there, hovering around outside thenewly decorated bedroom where Mother lay under an oxygen tent; huddles of thefamily and their children were in every other room on the second floor, staring at the closed door and discussing things in the harsh whispers peopleuse for a scene of death. Matthews motioned them back and came over to me at once. "No hope, I'm afraid, Andrew," he said, and there were tears in his eyes. "Isn't there anything we can do?" Liza asked, her voice dropping to the hoarsewhisper of the others. "Anything at all, Doctor?" He shook his head. "I've already talked to the best men in the country. We'vetried everything. Even prayer." From one side of the hall, Agnes sniffed loudly. Her militant atheism couldn'tbe downed by anything, it seemed. It didn't matter. There was death in thehouse, thick enough to smell. I had always hated the waste and futility ofdying. Now it had a personal meaning, and it was worse. Behind that closeddoor, Mother lay dying, and nothing I could do would help. "Can I go in?" I asked, against my wishes. Matthews nodded. "It can't hurt now. And she wanted to see you.-" I went in after him, with the eyes of the others thrusting at me. Matthewswaved the nurse out and went over to the window; the chpking sound from his throat was louder than the, ffwnthiss of the oxygen. I hesitated, then drew near the bed. Mother lay there, and her eyes were open. She turned them toward me, but therewas no recognition.in them. One of her thin hands was poking at thetransparent tent over her. I looked toward Matthews, who nodded slowly. "Itwon't matter now." He helped me move it aside. Her hand groped out, while the wheezing sound ofher breathing grew louder. I tried to follow her pointing finger. But it wasMatthews who picked up the small picture of a young boy, put it into her handsfor her to clasp to her. "Mother!" It ripped out of me, louder than I had intended. "Mother, it's Andy! I'm here!" Her eyes turned again, and she moved her parched lips. "Andrew?" she askedweakly. Then a touch of a smile came briefly. She shook her head slightly. "Jimmy! Jimmy!" The hands lifted the picture until she could see it. "Jimmy!" she repeated. From below, there was the sound of a door closing weakly, and steps movingacross the lower floor. They took the stairs, two steps at a time, but quicklynow, without need of the banister. They crossed the landing. The door remainedclosed, but there was the sound of a knob turning, a faint squeak of hinges, then another sound of a door closing. Young footsteps moved across the rug, invisible, a sound that seemed to make all other sounds fade to silence. Thesteps reached the bed and stopped. Mother turned her eyes, and the smile quickened again. One hand lifted. Thenshe dropped back and her breathing stopped. The silence was broken by the sound of feet again- heavier, surer feet thatseemed to be planted on the floor beside the bed. Two sets of footstepssounded. One might have been those of a small boy. The others were the quick, sharp sounds that only a young woman can make as she hurries along with herfirst-born beside her. They moved across the room. There was no hesitation at the door this time, nor any sound of opening orclosing. The steps went on, across the landing and down the stairs. AsMatthews and I followed into the hall, they seemed to pick up speed toward theback door. Now finally there was a soft, deliberate sound of a door closing, and then silence. I jerked my gaze back, to see the eyes of all the others riveted on the backentrance, while emotions I had never seen washed over the slack faces. Agnesrose slowly, her eyes turned upward. Her thin lips opened, hesitated, andclosed into a tight line. She sat down like a stick woman folding, glancingabout to see whether the others had noticed. From below, her daughter came running up the stairs. "Mother! Mother, who wasthe little boy I heard?" I didn't wait for the answer, nor the thick words with which Matthewsconfirmed the news of Mother's death. I was back beside the poor old body, taking the picture from the clasped hands. Liza had followed me in, with the color just beginning to return to her face. "Ghosts," she said thickly. Then she shook her head, and her voice softened. "Mother and one of the babies, come back to get her. I always thought . . ." "No," I told her. "Not one of my sisters who died too young. Nothing thateasy, Liza. Nothing that good. It was a boy. A boy who had measles when he wassix, who took the stairs two at a time-a boy named Jimmy. . ." She stared at me doubtfully, then down at the picture I held-the picture of mewhen I was six. "But you-" she began. Then she turned away without finishing, while the others began straggling in. We had to stay for the ceremony, of course, though I guess Mother didn't needme at the funeral. She already had her Jimmy. She'd wanted to name me James for her father, and Dad had insisted on Andrewfor his. He'd won, and Andrew came first. But until I was ten, I'd always beencalled Jimmy by Mother. Jimmy, Andy, Andrew, A. J. A man's name was part of his soul, I remembered, in the old beliefs. % 5But it didn't^niake sense, no matter how I figured it out by myself. I triedto talk it over with Matthews, but he wouldn't comment. I made another effortwith Liza when we were on the plane going back. "I can believe in Mother's spirit," I finished. I'd been over it all so oftenhi my own mind that I had accepted that finally. "But who was Jimmy? We allheard him- even Agnes' daughter heard him from downstairs. So he wasn't adelusion. But he can't be a ghost. A ghost is a returned spirit-the soul of aman who has died!" "Well?" Liza asked coldly. I waited, but she went on staring out of the planewindow, not saying another word. I used to think meeting a ghost would offer reassurance to a man. Now I don'tknow. If I could only explain little Jimmy . . . The Seat of JudgmentNight had fallen, but the city gleamed with the angry red of dying fires, andthe crowds still fought back and forth across the streets, howling in sorrowand rage. But in front of the barracks beyond the Earth palace, the fightingseemed spent, and the mob had thinned to a scattering of huddled, dazedfigures. Lorg, one of the Ludh mercenaries, broke from a side street in an exhaustedattempt to run. Two of his arms hung useless, his clothing was ripped toshreds, his bow was gone, and his body was covered with wounds; he no longerfelt them-his mind was filled only with the need for a weapon. He hesitated, listening for pursuit. Then, with a final staggering run, heburst through the barracks door and headed for the bow racks. • Light hit his eyes, jerking him to a stop. They'd guessed his destinationand beaten him here. There were a dozen of them, headed by the renegade, Pars, whose bow was already pulled taut. Pars' voice was sick as he stared at his fellow Ludh, nodding to the others. "He's one of the butchers," he said heavily. The bowstring stretched tighter. "Renegade! Adominist!" Lorg screamed the words, knowing it was too late forwords. "When Earth catches you-!" Pars' head shook more firmly. "Earth!" He spat theword out harshly.-; "The men of Earth are dead a hundred years,^ E@rg. Onlythe weaklings are left. They'll never a&i until they have to-and then toolate. Pray to your own false gods, Lorg, not to Earth!" Lorg leaped, but the arrow was already in flight. It was a sliver, a wand, alance-then a stake driving toward him. Pors dropped the bow and leaned against the wall, sobbing harshly-but not forthe death of Lorg. Beyond the high walls of the spaceport, Sayon seemed almost unchanged by thethirty years since Eli Judson had last seen the planet. Time might have ceasedto exist here, though it had dealt heavily enough with him. The grayish-blueuniform of the Colonial Service hung slackly on his sinewy, old man's body. The black was almost gone from his hair, bitter lines had been etched acrosshis hollow-cheeked face, and his sight was almost useless without his glasses. In a few more years, it would be too late for even the geriatric treatmentsback on Earth to help him. He grunted uncomfortably as the llamalike beast he rode jolted up the roughroad to the top of a hill, then held up his hand to stop his escort. "It lookspeaceful enough," he observed. "So does a fusion bomb until it goes off," Dupont answered hi his irritatinglyhigh-pitched voice. His stout face was sweating profusely, and he madenervously futile gestures with a handkerchief. Earth must be hard up to pick such a man for planet administrator, even on abackwater world like this, Judson thought. He shrugged and reached for hisbinoculars to survey the valley below. The air was crystal clear in the aftermath of one of the seasonal storms. Groves of dense-fruited faya berries and pastures dotted with flocks of green- wooled theom covered the hillsides. Downtrail, a caravan was meanderingupward, loaded with precious spices, perfumes, and uranium ore for the spacetrade, and he could hear the faint tinkle of bells as the beasts moved. Othercaravans were winding through a pass in theopposite hills to the north, and the eastern harbor was crowded with galleysand gaudy with their multi-colored sails. He shifted to study the city beyond the quays. Kalva had grown until its mazeof low buildings and twisting little streets now stretched far beyond the oldwalls. Judson knew that most of the city was filled with squalor and filth, but distance softened that. The yellow bricks and dark tile roofs seemed tosparkle serenely in the afternoon sunlight with a hint of patterns that neverbecame fixed. Over the center of the city, the great temple reared its seven marble tiers, capped by a flattened dome of burnished gold plate. Judson shifted to highermagnification to study the square in front of the building. The crowds seemedthick there, but hardly anyone was going up the great steps. With the festivalof Mesea due to begin tomorrow evening, that was a jarringly false note. Dupont coughed nervously. "We'd better get going. If there's any trouble ..." "From one Sdyonese?" Judson asked. "Mohammet was only one man, and a sick one," Dupont pointed out. "Besides, these people have a lot of legends of human gods." "Goddesses," Judson corrected him. Then he grimaced as memories came pouringback. Meia was thirty years in his past and should have been forgotten. Hestiffened in the saddle and motioned them on. This time two of the bowmen of Ludh moved in front. They were the usualmercenaries in this section of the galaxy-yellow, hairless apes with wolfmuzzles. As soldiers, they were so good that one should have been guardenough, instead of the six Dupont had brought. They came to the caravan he had seen, drawn aside to let them pass. Thereseemed nothing wrong in the attitude of the woman leader, though he saw Dupontfrown at an odd sign she made; it was probably religious, though he didn'trecognize it. The Sayonese were more nearly human than most races, but still alien enough. The women's chests were flat under their brief halters-naturally, since they were marsupials-and feeifpouches showed clearly above the slit skirts both "gexes wore. Both theirwrinkled skin and coarse hair were green, while their ears and noses weregrotesquely large. With their squat, heavy bodies they might have been trollsfrom Earth's mythology. But after the snakes of Tarshi or the bowmen of Ludh, they looked amazingly manlike. Even their customs and religions resembled some Earth had once known, thoughtheir god was a righteous, demanding Mother-Principle. Earth had expected easyconquest, counting on their legends of incarnate goddesses who werepractically perfect images of human women, but only drastic action and theburning of half the temple had overcome that mistake a century ago. Sincethen, however, the priestesses had maintained peace well enough-at least untilnow. "Have you seen this prophet you reported?" he asked Dupont. The man shook his head, reaching for his kerchief again. "Only films from adistance. He came out of the desert a year ago and stuck to the provinces, picking up converts. It wasn't until last week he moved to'Kalva for theholidays. And you can't believe all the reports. They're a mess of lies aboutmiracles." "You haven't picked him up for questioning?" "I'm not supposed to mix in with local religion. You know that!" Dupont'svoice was petulant. "It's up to you and the high priestess, the Fas Kaia. She's the one who asked the Sector Governor for a warship and a company ofEarth guards to keep peace." Judson grimaced again. The Sector Governor had a warship, but no adequate crewof fighting men for it. The youth of Earth was too busy enjoying the luxuriesfrom a thousand worlds to bother controlling the planets now, it seemed. Sohe'd been sent instead, over his protests. As a mere vice-governor, he wasexpendable. They were entering Kalva now, heading toward the temple and the EarthAdministration palace beyond. Judson studied the crowds, realizing time hadbrought changes. Poverty was worse and the slaves looked illfed. The temple taxes must be murderous. The streets were jammed with peopleand more pilgrims were arriving with every caravan, many wearing swords indefiance of Mesea custom. The old market was solid with skin tents and crude shelters, filling the air with stench and clamor. One skin-rotter could infectthe whole area. "Converts to Oe Athon," Dupont commented, making a mispronounced mockery ofthe title. "It thins out beyond the temple. There'll be time for a bath beforethe Fas Kaia reaches the palace, I guess." The huddled ranks of unwashed Sayonese made way for them reluctantly. Theirgreen faces stared at the humans and Ludh without seeming to see them, filledwith a curious, expectant ecstasy. They might have been drug addicts, exceptthat the drugs Earth shipped were too expensive for the masses. They seemed peaceful enough-but fanatics could seek peace one minute and start a jehad thenext. Now the street swept around the huge temple, and the crowd grew thinner. Aheadlay the palace, the Ludh barracks, and the ugly, barren cemetery hill at theend of the street. Judson glanced at the forbidding mound, then began yankingout his binoculars, cursing. Near the top of the cemetery hill, four thin posts carried the rotting fleshof Sayonese bodies. Nearby, another wretch was still alive, sitting on thesharpened point of a stake. It had been greased until his straining handscouldn't hold his weight, and his feet rested on a mound of sand that siftedaway with each writhing, tortured movement. Slowly but steadily, his body wassinking lower around the point. At a tune like this, the fools had revived the Seat! Judson swung out of the saddle to the ground, shaking his head as Dupontslowed. "Go on, damn it. I'll handle this my way," he shouted. The huddles ofSayonese parted to let him through, until he was past them, climbing up thesteep steps to the temple. The priestesses must have been watching. There was a shout, and two of themtrotted down to help him. To his surprise, he was in need of their assistance; his agewas showing in the labor of his breathing. "Tell the Fas Kaia I'm here," hejjanted. "The Fas Kaia-greets the Oe Eli," a heavy alto voice answered from the top ofthe steps, speaking in pure high Saydnese. He caught his breath while they studied each other. She was an old woman, sofat that her skin was stretched to paleness, and her bloated body was loadedwith jewels. But there was a firmness about her as she waved the lesserpriestesses away. She nodded at last. "You're a strong man and a realist, Ithink. Thank Her for that." "Realist enough to know you'can't tax people to starvation and hold them bytorture," he told her sharply. He gestured toward the hill. "Did you think Iwas too stupid to see that?" She sighed, turning one ear toward the screams of the dying man that camefaintly over the noise from the streets. "I expected you to see it," she said quietly. "These are bad times, Oe Eli-sobad that those rogues dared to try looting the temple. I may have lied incalling them followers of Athon, but their sentence was legal. As for the tax- I get what I can, but I don't starve my people. They do that themselves. Everyfool on Say6n is in Kalva, to see this Athon or watch what I do to him. I'veemptied my own stores, and there still isn't enough food for afl." Slowly the anger ran out of him. Even under the codex Earth had drafted, theSeat was approved for anyone who profaned the temple. Such stupidity deservedwhatever it got. "My apologies, Kaia." "There was no offense, Eli," she told him, smiling quickly at the ritual ofnames. "Now, if you'll consent, we can talk better in my quarters." In the little room behind the great gold and jade statue of Her, she waved theslaves aside and served him mild faya wine and some of the matchless Kalvancheese. Then she sank back gratefully onto her cushions, setting up a tinklingof ornaments. " 'A wise man has many swords'," she quoted. "I amglad your Governor sent you instead of the warship the administratorrequested-which could have done no good. Perhaps together you and I can find asolution. Eh', when you were here before, how much did you learn of Herincarnations and their power?" He could feel the muscles of his face tense, but he forced himself to remaincalm. "I met one of your goddesses and saw what she could do," he answered. "Meia!" Kaia's eyes seemed to gleam suddenly, as if a light had been turned on behind them. Then she relaxed again. "I heard rumors, though I was onlyserving in the temple brothel at the time. Well, at least you know that achild can be born to our race who looks something like one of you-and who cangrow up to work miracles. This Athon claims to be one of them." "A man?" Judson asked in surprise, though he should have expected it. She nodded. "All were girls, except the first, who founded our religion in aseries of bloody holy wars. Some legends make it seem that he was fertile, unlike the girls, and that they may all have been seed from his loins. But thepeople believe they are incarnations of the Goddess, and they don't disturbthe temple too much. Athon does." "Yet you didn't have him assassinated when he first appeared?" Judson asked. He was trying to adjust his thinking to the new facts. Some kind of strangemutation, recessive and with linked genes, carrying the ability of mentalhealing? It was possible. Earth had found and developed a few minds with someof the same ability; they were the ones who handled the expensive geriatricrejuvenation treatments. "I tried," she admitted. "More than once. But he converted my assassins and myspies. Then I tried to persuade the administrator to proclaim him a human, pretending to be Sayonese. There was the missionary woman before my time, youknow. She tried it, until Earth found her here." Judson had some memory from his reading. He frowned over the idea. It wouldmake things easier, certainly. The Sayonese took the mysterious word "Science" as the unimpressive answer to anything humans might do, and they'd"regard any alien race dabbling in their religion as "the ultimateabomination. Damn Du-pont! The man could have used his brains instead of therule book once in his life; instead, he'd played it safe until the lastpossible minute and then yelled for help. "I suppose Dupont took it under advisement and warned you not to touch the manuntil it could be proved he wasn't human?" he guessed. At her nod, he sworesoftly. It fitted too well. "Do you think this Athon is human?" She shrugged, glancing bitterly at a framed copy of the Earth-Sayon covenant. "Who knows what a male incarnation would be like? And how can I tell about Earthmen when every one I have seen is different in size, shape-and evencolor? My hands are bound. If he is human, I can do nothing. If he is ofSdyon, he is beyond my power as an incarnation! Yet he must be stopped, forthe good of both your world and mine. Here!" She pulled a jewel-studded box to her and began removing papers from it, written in the native script. "Can you read these?" she asked. At his nod, shepassed them over to him. "Take them with you. You'll see he preaches both aFather-Principle and a Mother-Principle. He wants the riches of the templestripped away and divided among everyone. He claims all races are equal. Eli, consider what that would do to Earth's position! Or think how little you coulddeal with Sayon without the temple-as the temple cannot do without Earth now. Is Earth strong enough in this Sector today to conquer Sayon against a fanaticpeople-or to hold the other worlds if this planet breaks away?" Abruptly, she stopped to study him. Then a slow, hard smile lifted the cornersof her mouth. "I was desperate enough to think of bribing you, Eli. But a poorman after forty years in your Service must be ah honest one. Still, at least, you can see what I chose for you." It lay on the bottom of the box, gleaming iridescent in the light and silverywhite in the shadows-a necklace of the almost mythical moon pearls. On Earth, one would buy fullgeriatric treatments and ten would win the governorship of almost any Sectorhe could name. His hand shook, but he managed a smile as he reached out toclose the lid. Her own laugh sounded strained as she put the box away. "Well, perhaps somedaythe Goddess will reward you for honesty. One can always hope," she said. Then she heaved herself up and turned to the doorway. "I've got a chariot waitingto take you to the palace." It was on a nearby ramp that ran downward gradually until it passed through anarrow gate below the steps, but Judson hardly noticed the path the priestessdriving it chose. He was cursing to himself and at himself as the picture ofhis interview with Kaia solidified in his thoughts. She'd given him a littleinformation, shoved the entire responsibility on him, and-yes, damn it-she'dmanaged to offer him the moon pearls for his help! Those final words couldonly mean that. She'd managed it within an hour of meeting him; yet on her ownground and hi her own specialty, she couldn't handle the problem she'd givenhim! Abruptly, the chariot jerked to a jarring halt and began backing. He lookedup. The street they had been about to enter-the main street between palace andtemple-was crammed with some kind of procession. In the very center, however, there was a clear space where one heavily-robed figure moved by itself. He caught the priestess' hands as she tried to turn the team around. "Wait. Isthat Athon?" She nodded, hate and sickness on her face. The binoculars did little good. The light was already failing, and the slow- moving figure seemed completely covered in a robe and hood. Judson turned toglance at the crowd, then focused in shoct on two of the Ludh bowmen, marchingtoward the rear! They had no business here! If the Ludh could be converted . . . A startled noise from the mob broke the weird minor chant that had been rising, and he spun back to see a Sayonese man running toward the solitarymarching figure. In one arm he was brandishing a sword weakly, shouting as he ran. The flesh on his body was covered with the great scabs ofbrown skin-rot, and he was wasted to almost skeletal thinness. The men nearest him started for him, just as he staggered. But there was stillstrength enough in his body. With a final yell, he raised the sword andplunged it deep into his own breast. The robed figure stopped beside the threshing body on the street. A hand cameout of the robe to pluck the sword easily from the wound, almost withouttouching it. Then the hand withdrew, and Athon bent over, as if chiding thedying man. Finally he straightened. The swordsman was quiet for a second. Thenthe body stirred, sat up, sprang to its feet with a wild cry of joy, anddashed back into the crowd. There were no brown scabs left on the emaciated figure. The chant rose to a wild frenzy and the procession moved on. In the center, the robed figure seemed to shake its head sadly. At Judson's nod, the priestess got the chariot turned and began heading backthrough twisted alleys toward the palace. His mind was churning wildly on whathe had seen. It was so completely beyond any use of healing power known toEarth-or even to the,legends here-that it could only be called a miracle, unless it had been the best-staged piece of trickery ever performed so openly. If word of such things got back to Earth, there'd be ships headed here indroves from every cult known to man, filled with credulous fools andprofiteers-and among them might well be some of the hereditary president'sfamily. Fas Kaia had been more truthful than she knew when she equated herdanger with Earth's. In the unstable conditions back there, just the knowledgethat such things could be would threaten the whole system. Meia had been adanger once; Athon was doom! At the palace, Dupont and his homely sister, withthe eight human assistants who comprised all the Earthmen hi Kalva, were inthe middle of some vague attempt at a welcoming party, but they seemedrelieved when Judson pleaded extreme fatigue. They'd probably turn it into adope binge now, from rumors of what went on here, with Dupont's sister beingpassed around from man to man, not excluding her brother. But that was none of Judson's business. With the decreasing number of women who came away fromEarth for any reason now, men couldn't be blamed for making the most ofwhatever they could find. Earth put stiff penalties on consorting with aliens, but it happened sometimes, even on Ludh. For that matter ... He dropped the thought and unpacked in the apartment assigned to him. From thebottom of his small bag he drew a final piece-a tissue copy of Selected Booksof the Testaments. He'd never read it, though he'd considered doing so; fewmen were familiar with any of the contents now, since the rise of the cultmysteries. But it had become his luck piece. He put it near him as he turnedto the records Kaia had given him. The contents only confirmed her words, without adding any new information. Andeven confirmation was meaningless, since they could be forgeries. He'd have toplay things by ear, it seemed-and probably one of his problems would be thepriestess herself. But now the fatigue he had used as an excuse was turning to reality. He shouldcall a slave to bathe him and prepare him for bed, but it was too muchtrouble. He made another futile attempt to think about his problems, thendropped onto the bed. He'd undress in a moment ... Priestesses, goddesses, prophets! The last thing he had ever wanted was to getmixed into another Sayonese religious mess. Once had been bad enough- and yet ... Thirty years before he grew old, a man could have plans for the future, evenon an outworld in the Colonial Service. Eli's hopes were based on a bookdealing with the oddities in the ecological balance of a world wheremarsupials had won the race for domination. He was spending his biannualvacation by himself in the retreat of a village a hundred miles north ofKalva, using a building the Service had owned but abandoned. The book was neatly finished, too, and he'd been practically assuredrjutfjicaltion. Then there'd be recognition, promotion, a chance to return toEarth; in time, there'd be a wife to make up for ten years without women; there'd be children. He'd always wanted a son of his own, though the idea wasgrowing old-fashioned in the current culture. It might have worked, except for an unexpected storm that caught him taking awalk to clear his mind. The same storm found a window he'd left carelesslyopen and blew away his antibiotic kit and ruined his radio. That left only thenative doctor, who knew nothing about pneumonia. Eli passed into a deliriumwith the unpleasant idea that he'd wake up only in heaven- in which he had nobelief. When he came to, he was less sure. He felt rotten, and his sight was cloudy, but there was either an angel or an Earth girl in the room, talking Sayonesewith an old greeny. She wore native clothes, but no native had skin like that- or provocative hips-or such shoulders. Then as she turned, he grunted insurprise. Damned few Earth women looked that good without makeup, either. Hebegan to consider the angel idea seriously. She shook her head at him, switching to English that had almost none of thelisped dentals caused by Sayonese slotted palates. "I'm only a goddess," shetold him. "That is, I will be in another month. You're lucky I hadn't gone toKalva yet, though. You were almost dead, and your cells are-well, they'redifferent. I had a hard time with you." Then she bent closer, long yellow hairfalling over his face. "Are you really an Earthman, Eli?" "I'm as much from Earth as you are," he mumbled, reaching for her. She seemed puzzled at his efforts to kiss her, but made no protests until thegreeny uttered something that sounded like teasing. Then she disengagedherself, running her hands over her chest. With a shock, he realized it was asflat as his own. "What's a breasts, Uncle Kleon?" she asked. "A breast, or two breasts-they come in pairs," the creature told her, grinning in amusement. "Read his mind a little deeper andyou'll find a lot of things about them, I'll bet." His English was as easy andidiomatic as hers, though less clearly pronounced. For a moment, she stared down at Eli. Then she began giggling like aschoolgirl as she left the room. Kleon came over to drop heavily onto the bed. "I'm not really her uncle," hesaid. "I'm her teacher, more or less, until she reaches the temple. I'm one ofthe few Sayonese who were admitted to one of your extension schools, beforeEarth decided to give up any idea of raising our living standard and to keepus on our own world. But I don't hate Earth. I got over anger and hating longago, which is probably why I'm still alive." "But what about her?" Eli asked. The old man grinned affectionately. "She's a lot more interesting than I am, I'll admit. She's what she says- a goddess. And a good thing, too. You werealready in death shock when she got here. Haven't you ever heard of our virgingoddesses?" Eli had heard some stories, but he hadn't really believed them. There had beena girl born about a century before who looked like an Earth woman and who hadsome fantastic power to heal the sick and restore the maimed. But not thathuman! He looked outside to where she was talking to a couple of Sayonese. Then he frowned. In the sunlight, there seemed to be a touch of green to herskin, and there was a hint of a line across her abdomen where a S&y&nese girlwould have had a pouch. But it could have been only a subtle disguise. "That's her father and mother saying good-bye to her again," Kleon saidcasually, indicating the two natives. Eli fainted. When he next regained consciousness, his body seemed to becompletely recovered, though it could only have been a couple of hours later. He drank some of the hot cheese soup Kleon offered him, swung out of bed, andfaced the old man. "All right, give it to me in detail," he suggested. Kleon seemed ready and willing to oblige, and this time Eli was lessskeptical. But he still had doubts until that evening when a wailingprocession came up theroad. Some had skin-rot, others were crippled, a few were blind. Then'^as theyspotted Meia, their wails turned to cries "6f delight, and they made as muchof a rush to her as they could, spreading out in front of her. Apparently, from what Eli could pick up of their degraded dialect, they had arrived lateat her home village and been told she'd left, moving to Kalva for herbirthday. Now finding her here was like a reprieve from hell. They seemed toregard Eli as a friend from heaven for having the good sense to get pneumoniaand delay her. One by one she took care of them, sometimes talking to them, sometimes layingon her hands. Eli watched, trying to spot the gimmick, and finally gave up. Under her fingers, flesh that had begun to corrode away literally grew newskin. Bones knit. Cataracts vanished from eyes. And once, to get at a brokenspine, she casually levitated a native from the ground, spun him over, andpressed her hands to his back. There was a chant going on, but nobody seemedsurprised at her feat. When they were finally all cared for and spread out among the huts of thevillage, she turned to Eli. "It's harder than it looks," she told him. "But itfeels good, too. Now, tell me about Earth." The others had all gone, leaving him alone with her. He tried to satisfy hercuriosity. But sometimes he wasn't too clear about what he was saying. Itwasn't easy to get used to the idea that a pretty, innocent young girl couldbe half alien kangaroo, half a being close enough to divinity to workmiracles. "I think we'll stay here a few days," she decided abruptly. "I want to knowmore about Earth people and to study you. Maybe I can even go to Earth and cure people." It was bad enough trying to go to sleep while he knew she was lying naked inthe next room-she'd insisted on having him quarter Kleon and herself. But thepicture of her on Earth eventually blotted all that out. The planetadministrator here was a neo-Blavatskyite of the worst kind, and he'd lovenothing better than taking back a real goddess, law or no law. Once thesenatorial families learned of what she could do, all hell wouldbreak loose. There'd be at least a dozen kidnaping attempts a month, andprobably half as many palace revolutions to control her. She'd be worse thanthe Tarshian hypnotic lizard of the last century. Besides, there'd be troublehere at the idea of letting her go, and she'd probably get killed before shereally saw Earth. He tried to argue her out of the idea during the next few days, sometimes withthe casual help of Kleon. But she was quite sure she could handle anything, and she'd made up her mind. "Besides, nobody hurts a virgin goddess," she told him, as if that hadanything to do with his arguments. It did serve to throw him off, though. "Why a virgin, anyhow?" he asked. "You have a head goddess you call theMother-Principle, but then she incarnates only in virgins. Isn't thatcontradictory? I suppose she'd blast you asunder if you lost that one virtue." "She'd leave, because she's the All-Mother, not the One-Mother. Anyhow, Ican't really breed-I'm not naturally fertile with our men. Maybe, for childrenand if I loved a man, in your terms, I wouldn't mind not being a goddess-butI'm not going to lose what I have for nothing." Her words jerked his own thoughts back to level, with the sharp realizationthat he'd begun thinking of her as human again. Damn it, she might look like awoman, but even their basic cell structure was different. It would be easierto breed with an Earth tree than to have children with her. Not one of his chromosomes would match with hers. And morally, no matter what other reasonswere involved, sex was related to having children. Besides, he knew nothingabout Sayonese anatomy. Under her skirt, she might not be human at all. She giggled. "Eli, if you want me to take off my clothes, why don't you ask? Idon't mind, really. Then you can see for yourself." "Go to hell!" he told her, and stomped off, determined to pack and leave atonce. A man could stand just so much. Innocent she might be, but she knew she had him going and sBj& was enjoying it. Still, he was tfierVton the fifth day, when he really should have beenbeginning the trip back to Kalva. Of course, they could have traveledtogether, but that would have been awkward. Instead of packing, he was walkingbeside her toward one of his favorite loafing spots at the top of a littlehill. They came to a little dip in the ground that cut off the wind and he threwdown a blanket and dropped onto it. He hadn't slept well the night before, andhe intended to nap now; She'd brought along the single book Kleon hadpreserved from his schooling-a tissue edition of some of the books of Earth'sold Bible. She and Kleon must have memorized it, but they still pored over itregularly. He sprawled out and she snuggled down beside him. Probablydeliberately, she was closer than she had to be. He could feel her breastsmove against him as she breathed. He sat up with a yelp, staring at her. Breasts? She'd been absolutely flat- chested when he first saw her! But she wasn't now-not by a long ways. "You wanted them, so I changed," she said contentedly. "It's about time younoticed! And I took away the green in my skin you didn't like and made theline where I should have a pouch disappear, too. See?" He saw, but at the moment he was more fascinated by what was there than bywhat wasn't. If she were using padding, she was doing a darned good job of it. "They're real," she told him. "I picked the ones in your mind you liked best. You can feel, if you don't believe me. I don't mind. After all, it won't meananything to-to me. . . ." But her breath caught as sharply as his, while his fingers slipped under thehalter. He felt her tremble, and her nipples were lifting and eager for hishands. For a minute, she bent to him, her lips parting and reaching for him. Thenabruptly she tore away, staring at him with wide, startled eyes. For the firsttime, he saw fear on her face. "No!" she whispered. But it had to be. He saw it clearly now. Once she gave herself to him, she'dlose her dangerous powers and be just another girl. Maybe the change in herwould be only a loss of faith hi herself, but that didn't matter. It was hissolution. Earth would never hear of her, and . . . and it had been ten yearssince he'd held a girl in his arms! He started toward her. Her face paled, then firmed again, and something seemedto explode in his head. He staggered, missed his footing, and fell. "No," she repeated. "Not now. Not yet. I have to think." This time he waited, knowing he could do nothing to force a creature with thepowers of a goddess. The pressures hi huii rose and fought for expression, buthe could only lie and wait. And in the end, it was she who came to him, slowlypulling the halter off as she moved toward him. He lay immobile until she wasalmost touching him before he groped for her. She pulled closer, strainingagainst him with heaving breasts. "Show me hi your mind again. Show me everything," she whispered. "I have to besure." His hands had found the slit hi her skirt by then and the buckle, but he triedto follow her wishes with his unclear, churning thoughts. And suddenly she wascompletely against him, with nothing between, panting in his ear. "I'm sure. Eli, I'm sure!" Ten years was a long time. The last Eli saw of Meia, she was sleeping in complete exhaustion, but with atouch of a smile on her lips. She muttered something in a weak voice, and hekissed her lightly, trying to keep his mind from thinking too loud. It was dark before he reached his house. He located his riding beast, saddledit, and started toward the building to collect his manuscript. Then he sawKleon reading it, and gave up. He was in no condition to face the questions ofthe old man. He led the animal out onto the trail, mounted quickly, and headedfor Kalva, hoping only that he had enough money on him for the trip. It was a long rMe, and there was time for more than enough thought. Sometimeshe gloated to himself over the end of herf power, as ft his victory provedthat she had never been more than he was. Sometimes shame came over him, either at the breaking of the taboo against aliens or at what he had done toher. And always there were other feelings that he cursed and ranted against, but which lasted longer than the others. At the end of a year, when his transfer was okayed, he spent all his money tosend her a box of luxuries, using the village as her address. When histransfer ship was delayed, he began to fear she might trace him back, but hesaw no more of her. Instead, it was the aged Kleon who came, and by then it didn't matter. Eli wasinside the passenger fence, getting final clearance, and no natives werepermitted. Kleon tried to pass and was turned back. Then, as he saw Eli, onethick arm swept forward, tossing something over the fence. It was the thin, worn little mission book Meia had been reading. He stoodholding it, trying to guess what it meant, as Kleon left. Shaking proved therewas no note between the pages, and nothing was written inside the covers. Itwas a mystery to him. Yet he was homesick as the rocket roared upward, lifting him from Sayon. Judson woke early, bothered by the light streaming from the windows on twosides of his apartment. He groaned, still aching, and fumbled about until hefound his glasses. A slave must have come in during the night to undress him, and one entered now, bringing his freshened clothes and a welcome cup ofcoffee. One wall of windows faced north toward the hill, he saw. The other opened on arear garden. He threw one of the windows open, letting in fresh air and ababble of childish voices. There were three little boys, from six to eleven, playing outside. From their looks, they were obviously Dupont's. The man hadbeen a fool to have them, but Judson couldn't really blame him as he watchedthem, envy thick in him. He shut the window again, just as Dupont himself came in. The man looked sickand scared. "The Fas Kaia arrested Athon!" he screamed, wasting no time oncivilities. "She's holding trial on him for profaning the temple. After Iordered her to leave him alone. Come on, we've got to stop it!" The rule book was torn up, and Dupont's carefully built shelter was gone. Itwas a shock to Judson too, but no cause for panic. He should have expectedsome such high-handed action from the priestess. "I countermanded your order," he said. He realized he was committing himself- probably accepting Kaia's bribe-but there was no use trying to undo what shehad done. The less damage the better. "If you're worried, Dupont, maybe you'dbetter get your sister and your boys to the ship." The sickness in the man abruptly washed out all the fear. Incest was stillenough to ruin him completely. But he nodded at last. He shook himself, pulling at some strength inside him to put on a normal appearance, then headedfor the garden. Judson hurried out to the street. There was no chariot waiting, of course; FasKaia obviously meant to have a fait accompli when he heard of it. He set outon foot, noticing that there were mobs clustered about the temple, and othersstreaming toward it. But they were still leaderless and unsure of what hadhappened. They made way for his uniform without thinking. Inside the temple, a reluctant priestess led him to a great gold and silverdoor and swung it open for him. He could see Kaia at the far end of the hugeroom, addressing a prisoner in the hands of two Ludh. How the temple ratedLudh guards would have to be explained later. She looked up and motioned him to her, standing up as he drew near. "Icouldn't get a chariot and message to you through the hostile crowd," she liedeasily in a low voice. "So I went ahead, hoping you'd hear. Here, I've alreadyjudged him an impostor of Earth stock, and handed him over to the temple as aspy in temple uniform-his robe really is an old temple one. I foundrules about jurisdiction over spies in an old covenant of Earth and usedthenj?" '" So you didn'f:ne$d me, after all?" he asked bitterly. He could admire hersolution; with the detail of the temple uniform, it might even be legal. Buther tactics rankled. She shook her head, smiling faintly. "I'm glad you're here, Eli. I'd rathernot forge the papers. Here, take the seat of judgment and finish. You cancertify to his being human, too." He found himself seated in the great chair, with the papers in front of him. They were in good order and in English. Kaia was thorough. But if he had evena shred of doubt about the man, after her arrogant assumption she couldcontrol him, he'd let her go whistle . . . Abruptly, he saw the prisoner, and the anticlimax took all the stubbornnessout of him. The man was unimpressive and plain, with mild blue eyes andcarroty-red hair that could only come from Earth. There was even a hint offreckles across the nose. Reluctantly, Judson signed. There was no doubt left, and nothing else to do. One man couldn't count against whole worlds, any more than Meia had countedagainst Earth. But his hand shook as he put the pen back. "Hear the judgment," Kaia called immediately. "For sacrilege within thetemple, let the self-termed O6 Athon die on the pointed seat this day. Takehim awayi" Judson rose to protest. The man was practically a political prisoner. He'donly come for ritualistic laving, not to harm the temple literally. But it wastoo late for protests. Anyhow, the prisoner was speaking. It was a rich, ringing voice that seemed to fill the whole room. "The worldhas judged and the world is judged," Athon pronounced slowly. His eyeslingered on them and his hand came up in a strange gesture. Then he shruggedand let the guards move him away. Judson felt his eyes smarting, and his vision seemed to blur. He reached forhis glasses automatically and began cleaning them. Then shock hit him as heglanced at the papers before him. Without the glasses, the smallesttext was clearly visible. There had been a final miracle, even inside thetemple. Kaia was in front of him as he stumbled to his feet, and there was a packagein her hands. "Sometimes the Goddess is quick to reward," she chuckled. "Naturally, to refuse Her gift is to profane Her name. The temple thanks you, too, Eli." He took the package and thrust it into his pocket, knowing it bound him toher, and not caring at the moment. "You are kind, Fas Kaia," he said formally. Then he headed for the exit and toward the street. But now the crowd was thicker, pressing inward. As he came to the steps, hefound himself swallowed by it, almost carried by it. It had always been afaceless, abstract crowd to him before-one with no character or feeling. Hehadn't really realized that it could claw and tear and smother with itssolidity. And he was too old to tear through it. Then another shock registered. A few feet away, the face of Kleon appeared, with the old eyes staring straight toward him, before the movement of the mobdrove them apart. The surprise seemed to clear his mind, though. He lifted hisvoice to a shout. "They are taking him to the hill for the Seat. Kaia hasordered the Seat for him!" Other voices picked up the cry and spread it. Now suddenly the crowd began toturn, trying to get away from the temple and toward the hill. Judson wasforced along with them, but they were moving north, at least, toward thepalace as well as the hill. He put all his failing energies to the task ofworking sideways, looking for a chance to drop out before they passed thepalace. Somehow, he made it. He had no memory of it, nor of passing out on his bed. But he came to, filthy and torn, some time later. There was no answer when heyelled for a slave. He struggled through a hasty bath and into one of thestandard Service uniforms in the closet. Then the silence of the house and the low rumble of sound from the north finally registered, and he looked out. Kalva was deserted now. The entire populace was atthe hill, where Ludh guards with crossbows held a small circle open at thetjjp. In the middle of that, there was a quiet figure. Foi> a inoment, Judsonhoped that the tortured man was dead^ until the head moved weakly. Athon had not saved himself. The judgment was fulfilled. And in the sky, dark clouds were piling up for one of the periodic storms. Judson gazed at it, beginning to worry again. This was a primitive world, where omens were all-important. A storm now would indicate divine displeasure- it would damn him and Kaia more than all logic or law-more than he could damnhimself, perhaps. It was no time to linger. He packed hastily, leaving the book and the package for the last. Then heripped away the wrapping, to study the necklace. The thirty jewels on it weresilvery white in the shadows where he held them. They meant a measure of youthagain-a wife to give him sons-Earth or any planet he chose. They meanteverything he wanted, except peace within himself. But he had done only what had to be. A man could never stand idly by and seehis world ruined, even though the fools in it were bent on riding downhill toperdition. At least in his tune, Earth must retain her dominion. Lightning flashed, a heavy bolt that crashed down against the roof of thetemple. It was natural, since the gold dome was the highest point in the city, but it would be more food for the superstitious. The thunder rolled out, drowning the sound of the rain, and almost covering the footsteps behind him. He looked around slowly, with no surprise. "It's been a long time, Kleon." "Too long, Eli," the old voice said. Amazingly, the man looked no older thanhe had in the village, but there were fatigue and pain hi every movement hemade. "Your guards are gone, so I left my beasts and came in." "Vengeance?" Judson asked. The head shook slowly. "I still leave anger to others, Eli. Anyhow, vengeance for what? Meia wanted you. And he-he knew it had to beand brought it on himself. I was only a teacher, not a disciple, though Iloved the man. No, I followed you to see you, and to take back word of you toMeia. She still lives hi the village, and still thinks of you." Judson shook his head. He'd schooled himself to think of her as being dead. But there was nothing 'he could say. The storm seemed to be thinning out, almost as quickly as it had come. Kleonmoved to the windows, staring toward the hill. There were tears in his eyes, but his sigh was one of relief. "It is finished," he said. He bowed his head and seemed to be quoting. " "The people that walked indarkness have seen a great light: they that dwell hi the land of the shadow ofdeath, upon them hath the light shined. ... For every battle of the warrior iswith confused noise and garments rolled hi blood; but this shall be withburning and fuel of fire.' I can't blame you for trying to stop a battle thatwill not be confined to this world, Eli, though the tune for any man to takeaction has passed-as even our priestess seems to know, to her sorrow." "I stopped it once," Judson protested harshly. Kleon stared at him, surprise on his old face. He glanced at the book on thetable, and the surprise deepened. "I wondered, when you didn't return. Andyet. How could you fail to get her message and yet have the book all theseyears, Eli?" He moved to the thin volume, pulling it open with a cord that day between thepages. Then he hesitated, and picked up the binoculars instead. "Look; Eli. Look carefully, and beneath the surface!" Judson moved uncertainly to the window, unwilling but unable to resist. Hefocused on the figure that was still upright. Now, when it should have beendulled in death, the face had picked up a strange strength and nobility, andit seemed to stare at the sky, triumphant and waiting. But it was drawn thinby the hours of suffering, and there was something about the features--thenose, the shape of the chin ... "No!" It ripped put of Judson, while the binoculars crashed to the floofcn"Ifsimpossible! Physically impossible!" iV~;( Kleon shook his head. "Not to one who had the Power, Eli. She burned herselfout in one effort-but she succeeded. Here's the message I brought you fromher, thirty years ago." There was a dark circle around one verse on the page, followed by a thick, heavy exclamation point. Below that Meia's signature was scrawled in Englishscript. Judson bent over the book, focusing on the small, ancient print withinthe circle. Unto us a child is born, unto us a son is given. His eyes wavered from the page to the sight of the necklace that was to havegiven him youth again, and a wife-and a son; rejuvenation to give him moreyears to realize what he had done and to watch what must become of the powerhis race had won. Years to think- and sometimes to wonder what a too-human woman in a Village on Sayon might be thinking. He took one last look up the hill, dry-eyed and frozen. Then he turned tofollow Kleon out of the empty palace, knowing he could never leave Sayonagain. The men turned the corner outside together, climbed silently onto thewaiting beasts, and moved slowly north, away from the distant spaceport andthe hell that was beginning already in the city. Night was falling and the city began to gleam with the angry red of growingfires, while the crowds fought back and forth across the streets, howling insorrow and rage. ... Behind, the book lay open on the table. Wind came in from the windows, turningthe pages slowly to the last chapter of Isaiah. Then a sudden gust blew thebook closed. Vengeance Is MineHate spewed across the galaxy in a high crusade. Metal jfcips leaped fromworld to world and hurtled across Space to farther and farther stars. Planetssurrendered their ores to sky-reaching cities, built around fortress-templesand supported by vast networks of technology. Then more ships were spawned, armed with incredible weapons, and sent forth in the eternal search for anenemy. In the teeming cities and aboard the questing ships, foul-wrenching music wascomposed, epic fiction and gupernal poetry were written, and great paintingsand tculpture were developed, to be forgotten as later and nobler work wasdone. Science strove for the ultimate limit of understanding, fought againstthat limit, aid surged past it to limitless possibilities. But behind all thearts and sciences lay the drive of religion, and the religion was one ofancient anger and dedicated hate. The ships filled the galaxy until every world was conquered. For a time, theyhesitated, preparing for the great leap outward. Then the armadas sailedagain, mcross thousands and millions of light-years toward the beckoninggalaxies beyond. With each ship went the holy image of their faith and the unsated andinsatiable hunger of their hate ... • •••/T "' -'• 2The cattrack labored up the rough road over the crater wall, topped the lastrise, and began humming its way down into Eratosthenes. Inside the cab, thedriver's seat groaned protestingly as Sam shifted his six hundred terrestrialpounds forward. Coming home was always a good time. He switched lenses in hiseyes and began scanning the crater floor for the first sight of the Lunar Basedome. "You don't have to be quite so all-fired anxious to get back, Sam," Hal Normancomplained. But the little selenologist was also' gazing forward eagerly. "Youmight show a little appreciation for the time I've spent answering your foolquestions and trying to pound sense into your tin head. Anybody'd think youdidn't like my company." Sam made the sound of a human chuckle with which he had taught himself toacknowledge all the verbal nonsense men called humor. But truth compelled himto answer seriously. "I like your company very much, Hal." He had always liked the company of the men he'd met on Earth or during hislong years on the Moon. Humans, he had decided long ago, were wonderful. Hehad enjoyed the extended field trip with Hal Norman; but it would still begood to get back to the dome, where the men had given him the unique privilegeof joining them. There he could listen to the often inexplicable but always fascinating conversation of forty men. And there, perhaps, he could join themin their singing. All the robots had perfect pitch, of course, but only Samhad learned to sing acceptably enough to win a place in the dome. In anticipation, he began humming a chanty about the sea he had never seen. The cattrack hummed downward between the walls of the road that had been crudely bulldozed from the rubble of the crater. Thenthey broke out into the open, and he could see the dome and the territoryaround it. Hal grunted in surprise. "That's odd. I hoped the supply rocket would be in. But what are those three ships doing there?" Sam switched back to wide-angle lenses and stared toward the side. The threeships didn't look like supply rockets. They resembled the old wreck that stillstood at the far end of the crater, surrounded by the supply capsules that hadbeen sent on automatic control to keep the stranded crew alive until rescuecould be sent. The only other such ships were those used by the thirdexpedition. But they had been parked in orbit around Earth after the end ofthe third expedition fifty years ago. Once the Base was established, theircapacity had no longer been needed and they were inefficient for routinesupply and rotation of the men here. Before he could comment on the ships, the buzzer sounded, indicating that Basehad spotted the cattrack. Sam flipped the switch and acknowledged the call. "Hi, Sam." It was the voice of Dr. Robert Smithers, the leader of Lunar Base. "Butt out, will you? I want to talk to Hal." Sam could have tuned hi on the communication frequency with his own receptors, since the signal was strong enough at this distance. But he obeyed the orderto avoid listening as Hal reached for the handset. There was no way to detunehis audio receptors, however. He heard Hal's greeting. Then there was silencefor at least a minute. The man's face was shocked and serious when he finally spoke again. "Butthat's damned nonsense, Chief. Earth got over such insanity half a centuryago. There hasn't been a sign of ... Yes, sir ... All right, sir. Thanks fornot taking off without me." He hung up the set, shaking his head. When he faced Sam, his expression wasunreadable. "Full speed, Sam." "There's trouble," Sam guessed. He threw the cat-track into its top speed ofthirty miles an hour, fighting and straining with the controls. Only a robotcould manage the tricky Machine at such a rate over the crude road, and itrequire^his full attention. Hal's voice waV strange and harsh. "We're being sent back to Earth. Bigtrouble, Sam. But what can you know of war and rumors of war?" "War was a dangerous form of political insanity, outlawed at the conference of1998," Sam quoted from a speech that had come over the radio. "Human warfarehas now become unthinkable." "Yeah. Human war." Hal made a rough sound in his throat. "But not inhuman war, it seems. And that's what it will be, if it comes. Oh hell, stop looking sogloomy. It's not your problem." Sam decided against chuckling this time, though references to his set, unsmiling expression were usually meant to be a form of humor. He filed thepuzzling words away in his permanent memory for later consideration. The terminator was rushing across the lunar surface, and it would soon benight. The crater wall was already casting a shadow over most of the area. Butsunlight still reached the Base, and the surrounding territory was in glaringlight. The undiffused light splashed out sharply from the rocks. Seeing washard as they neared the dome, and all Sam's attention had to be directed tohis driving. Behind him, he heard Hal getting into the moonsuit to leave thecab. Sam brought the cattrack to a halt and let Hal out at the entrance to thesealed underground hemisphere of lunar rock that was the true dome. The lightupper structure was simply a shield for supplies against the heat of the sun. He drove the machine under that and cut off the motor. As Sam emerged from the airlock, air gushed out of small cavities of his body. But he felt no discomfort There was only the fault click of a switch insidehim to tell him of the change. That switch was simply an emergency measure, designed to turn his power on if there should be a puncture of the dome whilehe was turned off. It might have been one of the reasons the men liked havinghim inside, though he hoped there were otherexplanations. There had been no room in the new robots for such devices. He saw the Mark Three robots waiting just beyond the entrance as he approachedit. There were tracks in the lunar dust leading to the space ships half a mileaway. But whatever ferrying they had done was obviously finished, and theywere now merely standing in readiness. They were totally unlike him. He wasbulky and mechanical, designed only for function hi the early days when menneeded help on the Moon. They were almost manlike, under their black enamel, and their size and weight had been pared down to match that of the humans. There had been thirty of them originally, but accidents had left only a fewmore than twenty. And of the original Mark Ones, only Sam was left. "When do we leave?" he called to one over the radio circuit. The black head turned slowly toward him. "We do not know. The men did not tellus." "Didn't you ask them?" he called. But he had no need of their denial. They hadnot been told to ask. They were still unformed, less than five years old, and their thoughts weretied to the education given by the computers in the creche. They lacked twentyyears of his intimate association with men. But sometimes he wondered whetherthey would ever learn enough, or whether they had been too strongly repressedin training. Men seemed to be afraid of robots back on Earth, as Hal Normanhad once told him, which was why they were still being used only on the Moon. He turned away from them and went down the entrance to the inner dome. Theentrance led to the great Community room, and the men were gathered there, allwearing moonsuits. They were arguing with Hal as Sam began emerging from thelock, but at sight of him the words were cut off. He stared about hi thesilence, feeling suddenly awkward. "Hello, Sam," Dr. Smithers said finally. He was a tall, spare man of barelythirty, but seven years of re-fponsibility here had etched deep lines into hisface and fwt gray in his mustache, though his other hair was stilljet black. "All right, Hal. Your things are on the ship. I cut the timeprettyjfine waiting for you, so we're leaving at once. No more ffl-guments. Get out there!" "Go to hell!" Hal told him. "I don't desert my friends." Other men began moving out. Sam stepped aside to let them pass, but theyseemed to avoid looking at him. Smithers sighed wearily. "Hal, I can't argue this with you. You'll go, if Ihave to chain you. Do you think I like this? But we're under military ordersnow. They're going crazy back on Earth. They didn't find out about theexpected attack until a week ago, as near as I can learn, but they've alreadycanceled space. Damn it, I can't take Sam! We're at the ragged limit ofavailable lift now, and he represents six hundred pounds of mass-more thanfour of the others." Hal gestured sharply toward the outside. "Then leave four of those behind. He's worth more than the whole lot of them." "Yeah. He is. But my orders specify that all men and the maximum possiblenumber of robots must be returned." Smithers twisted his lips savagely andsuddenly turned to face the robot. "Sam, I'll give it to you straight. I can't take you with us. We have to leave you here alone. I'm sorry, but that's howit has to be." "You won't be alone, Sam," Hal Norman said. "I'm staying." Sam stood silently for a moment, letting it register. His circuits found ithard to integrate. He had never thought of being separated from these men whohad been his life. Going back to Earth had been easy to accept; he'd gone backthere once before. Little hopes and future-pictures that he hadn't known werein his mind began to appear. But with those came memories of Hal Norman's expressed hopes and dreams. Theman had showed Sam a picture of his future wife and tried to describe all thatsuch a creature meant to a man. He'd spoken of green fields and the sea. He'draved about Earth too often during the days they were together. Sam moved forward toward Hal. The man saw him coming and began to back away, but he was no match for the robot. Sam heldHal's arms and closed his moonsuit, then gathered him up carefully. Hal wasstruggling, but his efforts did no good against Sam's determination. "All right, Dr. Smithers. We can go now," Sam told the Chief. They were the last to leave the dome. The little black robots were alreadymarching across the surface, with the men straggling along behind them. Smithers fell into step with Sam, moving as if the burden was on his backinstead of in the arms of the robot. Hal had ceased struggling. He layoutwardly quiet; but through the suit, Sam's body receptors picked up soundsthat he had heard only twice before on occasions he tried not to remember. They were the sounds of a man attempting to control his weeping. Halfway to the ship, faint words came over the radio. "Put me down, Sam. I'llgo quietly." The three moved on together. By the time they reached the ship, the otherswere all aboard. The Chief motioned the younger man up the ramp. For a moment, Hal hesitated. He turned toward Sam, started to make a motion, and then swungaway and dashed up the ramp, his shoulders shaking convulsively. Smithers still stood after the other had disappeared. The radio brought thesound of a sigh, before the man moved. "Thanks, Sam. That was a favor I nolonger had the right to ask. And don't tell me it's all right. Nothing's rightany more." He sighed again, then smiled faintly. "Remember the books?" "I won't disturb them," Sam promised. There were a great many microbooks inthe dome library, brought hi a few at a time by many men over the long years. They were one of the few taboos; it was against orders for Sam to read any ofthem. A man had once told him that it was to save him from unnecessaryconfusion. Smithers shook his head sharply. "Nonsense. You're going to have a lot of timeto kill. The ban is off. Read any or all of them if you like. It's about all Ican do for you, but you're entitled to that, at least." He put a foot oji; the ramp and turned partly away from Sam. Then^biiiptly heswung back. "Good-by, Sim,** he said thickly. His right hand came out and grasped that ofthe robot strongly. "Good-by and God bless you!" A second later, Smithers was hurrying up the ramp. It was drawn in after him, and the great outer seal of the rocket ship began to close. Sam ran back to the entrance of the dome to avoid the blast. The edge ofdarkness had touched the dome now, leaving the rockets standing in the lastlight as he turned to look at them. He watched the takeoff of the threeheavily laden ships. They staggered up slowly, carrying the men toward therendezvous with Earth's orbital station. It wasn't until they were beyond therange of his strongest vision that he turned into the dome. It was silent andempty around him. He stared at the clock on the wall and at the calendar on which they hadmarked off the days. He hadn't found how long they would be gone. But Smithers' words gave a vague answer-he would have a lot of time to kill. Thatcould mean anywhere from one month to most of a year, judging by theapplication of similar phrases in the past. He looked at the shelves filledwith microbooks for a few moments. Then he went outside, to stare through histelephoto lenses at the Earth in the sky above him. There were spots of lightin the dark areas that he knew to be the cities of men. The second day after the takeoff of the ship, Sam was watching the dark areaof Earth again when some of the spots of light grew suddenly brighter. Newspots of brightness rose and decayed during the hours he watched. They werefar brighter than any city should have been. Other spots glowed where nocities had been before. But eventually they all faded. After that, there wereno bright areas at all. As Earth turned slowly, he saw that all the cities onEarth were now dark. It was a mystery for which he had no explanation. He went inside to try theradio that brought news and entertainment from the relay on the orbitalstation, but no signal was coming through. He debated calling them, but that was reserved for the decision of Smithers, and the Chief was gone. There was no call on the fifth day, when the men should have reached thestation. He knew there was no reason to expect such a call; men were notobligated to report their affairs to a robot. But his brain circuits seemed tobe filled with odd future-pictures that 'kept him by the set for long hoursafter he knew there would be no signal for him. Finally he got up and went to the music player. They had let him use it attimes, and he felt no disloyalty to them as he found a tape that was one ofhis favorites and threaded it. But when the final chorus of Beethoven's Ninth reached its end, the dome seemed more empty than ever. He found another tape, without voices this time. And that was followed by another. It helped alittle, but it was not enough. It was then that he turned to the books, taking one at random. It wassomething about Mars, by Edgar Rice Burroughs, and he started to put it back. He had already learned enough about astronomy from the education machine. Butat last he threaded it into the micro-reader and sat down to read. It started well enough, and it was about some strange kind of man, not aboutastronomy. But then . . . Sam made a strange sound, only slowly realizing that he had imitated the groanof a man for the first time in his existence. It was all madness! He knew men had never reached Mars-and couldn't reach such a Mars, because the planet wastotally unlike what he knew existed. It must be some strange form of humanhumor. Or else there were men unlike any he had known and facts that had beenkept from him. The latter seemed more probable. He struggled through it, to groan again when it ended and he still didn't knowwhat had happened to the strange female man who was a princess and who laidhighly impossible eggs. But by then, he had begun to like John Carter, and hewanted to read more. He was confused-but even more curious than puzzled. Eventually, he found the whole series and read them all. It was a much;;later book that solved some of the puzzle of it forvhj$0u Therewas a small note before the book really begaii' THIS is A WORK OF SPECULATIVEFICTION; ANY RESEMBLANCE TO PRESENT-DAY PERSONSOR EVENTS IS ENTIRELY COINCIDENTAL. He looked Upfiction in the dictionary he had seen the men use and felt better afterward. It wasn't quite like humor, but it wasn't fact, either. It was a game of somekind, where the rules of life were all changed about in idiosyncratic ways. The writer might pretend that men liked to kill each other or were afraid ofwomen, or some other ridiculous idea; then he tried to imagine what mighthappen under such conditions. It was obviously taboo to pretend about realpeople and events, though some of the books had stories that used backgroundand people that had the same names as those in reality. The best fiction of all sometimes looked like books of fact, if the writer wasclever enough. History was mostly like that; there was a whole imaginary worldcalled Rome, for instance. It was fortunate Sam had been taught the simplefacts of man's progress by the education machine before he read such books. Men, it was true, had sometimes been violent, but not when they understood allthe facts or could help it. In the end, he evolved a simple classification. If a book made him thinkhard^and forced him to strain to follow it, it was fact; if it made him readfaster and think less as he went through it, it was fiction. There was one book that was hardest of all to classify. It was an old book, written before men had gone out into space. Yet it was full of carefullydocumented and related facts about an invasion of flying saucers from far inspace. Eventually, he was forced to decide from the internal evidence that itwas fact, but it left him disturbed and unhappy. Hal Norman had referred to inhuman war, and Dr. Smithers had mentioned anattack. Could it be that the strange ships from somewhere had struck at Earth? He remembered the brilliant lights over the cities, so much like the great rayweapons described in some of the fiction about space war. Sometimes there were elements of truth even in fiction. If invaders had come in great ships to fight against Earth, it might take menlonger than Sam cared to think of to fight them off. He went outside to stare at the sky. Earth still showed no sign of cities. They must be blacked out, as they would be if flying saucers were in theirskies. He searched the space over the Moon, but he could find no strangecraft. Then he went back inside to read through the microbook again. It was poetry that somehow finally shoved the worry from his mind. He hadtried poetry before, and given up, unable to follow it. But this time he madea discovery. He tried reading it aloud, until it began to beat at him andforce its rhythm on him. He was reading Swinburne's Hymn of Man, attracted bythe title, and suddenly the words and something besides began to sing theirway into his deepest mind. He went back over four lines again and again, untilthey were music, or all that music had tried to say and had failed. In the grey beginning of years, in thetwilight of things that began, The word of the earth in the ears of theworld, was it God? was it man? Sam went up and down the dome for most of that day, chanting to himself thatthe word of the earth in the ears of the world was man! Then he turned back to other poetry. None quite equaled that one experience, but most of it stirredhis circuits in strange ways. A book of limericks even surprised him twice tothe point where he chuckled, without realizing that he had never done thatspontaneously before. There were slightly over four thousand volumes in the little library, including the technical books. He timed them carefully, stretching them byrereading his favorites, until he finished the last at exactly midnight on theeve of the takeoff anniversary. The next twenty-four hours he spent outside thedome, watching the Sky and staring at Earth, while his radio receptors scannedall the frequencies. There had been a lot of tim^ already killed. But therewas no signal, and no rocket ship blasted down, bringing back the men. At midnight he gave a sighing sound and went back inside the dome. In thetechnical section, he unlocked the controls for the atomic generator andturned it down to its lowest idling rate. He came back, turning the now dimlights off as he moved. In the main room, he put his favorite tape on theplayer and the copy of Swinburne in the microreader. But he did not turn themon. Instead, he dropped his heavy body quietly onto the floor before theentrance, where the men would be sure to see him when they finally returned. Then one hand reached up firmly, and he turned himself off. Sam's eyes looked toward the entrance as consciousness snapped on again. Therewas no sign of men there. He stood up, staring about the dome, then hastenedoutside to stare across the floor of the crater. It lay bare, except for theold wrecked rocket ship. Men had not come back. Inside again, he looked for something that might have fallen and hit hisswitch. The switch itself was still in the off position, however. And when heturned on the tape player, no sound came. It was confirmation enough. Something had happened to the air in the dome, and his internal switch hadgone into operation to turn him on automatically. A few minutes later, he found the hole. A meteoroid the size of a pea musthave hit the surface above. It had struck with enough force to blast a tinycraterlet almost completely through the dome, and internal pressure had donethe rest. He secured patching material and began automatically making therepairs. There was still more than enough air in the tanks to fill the domeagain. Sam sighed as the first whisper of sound reached him from the tape player. Heflipped his switch back to on position before the rising pressure negated theemergency circuit. He still had to get back to the entrance to resume hisvigil. It had simply been bad luck that had aroused him before the men couldreturn. He moved back through the dome, hardly looking. But his eyes were open, andhis mind gradually began to add the evidence. There was no way to tell howlong he had been unconscious; he had no feeling of any time. But there wasdust over everything-dust that had been disturbed by the outrushing air, butthat had still patina-plated itself on metal firmly enough to remain. And someof the metal showed traces of corrosion. That must have taken years! He stopped abruptly, checking his battery power. The cobalt-platinum cell hadbeen fully charged when he lay down. Now it was at less than half-charge. Suchbatteries had an extremely slow leakage. Even allowing for residualconductance through his circuits, it would have taken at least thirty yearsfor such a loss! Thirty years! And the men had not come back. A groan came to his ears, and he turned quickly. But it had only been his ownvoice. And now he began shouting. He was still trying to shout hi the airlessvoid as he reached the surface. He caught himself, bracing his back againstthe dome as his balance circuits reacted to some wild impulse from his brain. Men would never desert him. They had to come back to the Moon to finish theirwork, and the first thing they would do would be to find him. Men couldn'tjust leave him there! Only in the wild fiction could that happen, and eventhere only the postulated evil men would do such a thing. His men would neverdream of it! He stared up at Earth. The dome was in night again, and Earth was a great orbin the sky, glowing blue and white, with touches of brown in a few places. Hesaw the outline of continents through the cloud cover, and looked for thegreat city that must lie within the thin darkened area. There should have beenlights visiblethere, even against the contrast of brighter illumination from the lightedare)^. But there was no sign of the city. He sighed soundlessly again, and now he felt himself relaxing. The attackersmust still be hovering there! The dangerous Ufo-things from space. Men werestill embattled and unable to return to him. Thirty years of that for them, and here he was losing balance over what had been only a year of his conscioustime! He faced the worst of possibilities more calmly now. He even forced himself toadmit that men might have been so badly crippled by the war that they couldnot return to him-perhaps not for more time than he could think of. Smithers had said they were abandoning space, at a time when the attack had not yetcome. How long would it take to recover and regain their lost territory? He went back into the dome, but the radio was silent. Hesitantly, he initiateda call to the orbital station. After half an hour, he gave up. The men there, if men were still there, must be keeping radio silence. "All right," he said slowly into the silence of the dome. "All right, face it. Men aren't coming back for a robot. Ever!" It was a speech out of the fiction he had read, rather than out ofrationality. But somehow saying it loudly made it easier to face. Men couldnot come to him. He wasn't that valuable to them. He shook his head over that, remembering the time he had been taken back toEarth after twenty years out of the creche and on the Moon. The Mark Onerobots had all been destroyed in the accidents and difficulties of getting theBase established, except for Sam. Supposedly better Mark Two robots were sentto replace them, but those had been beset by some circuit flaws that made themmore prone to accident and less useful than the first models. More than ahundred had been sent in all-and none had survived. It was then that theycalled Sara back to study him. On Earth, deep in the security-hidden underground robot development workshops, he had been tested in every way they knew to help them in designing the MarkThree robots. And there old Stephen DeMatre had interviewed him for three whole days. At the end of that time, the man who hadfirst introduced him to his work with men had put a hand on his metal shoulderand smiled at him. "You're unique, Sam," he'd said. "A lucky combination of all the wild guesseswe used in making each Mark One individually, as well as some uniqueconditioning while among that first Base staff. We don't dare duplicate youyet, but some day the circuit control computer is going to want to get yourpattern in full for later brains. So take good care of yourself. I'd keep youhere, but . . . You take care of yourself, Sam. You hear me?" Sam had nodded. "Yes, sir. Do you mean you can make other brains exactly likemine?" "Technically, the control computer can duplicate ypur design," DeMatre hadanswered. "It won't be just like your brain. Too many random factors in anyreally advanced mechanical mind unit. But with similar capabilities. That'swhy you're worth more money than this whole project without you. You're worthquite a few million dollars, and it's up to you to see that valuable propertylike that isn't destroyed. Right, Sam?" Sam had agreed and been shipped back to the Moon, along with the first of theMark Three robots. And maybe his trip to the research center had been of someuse, since the new Mark Three models worked as well as their limitationspermitted. They were far better than the preceding models. Maybe he wasn't valuable enough to men for them to come for him now. But byDeMatre's own words, he was one of their most valuable possessions. If it wasup to him to see that he wasn't destroyed, then it was up to him also to seethat he wasn't lost to men. If they couldn't come for him, he had to get to them. The question was: How? He couldn't project himself by mind power like John Carter. He had to have arocket! With the thought, he went dashing out through the entrance and heading towardthe old wreck. It stood exactly as it had after the landing that had ruinedit, with half its hull plating ripped off and most of its rocketmotors broken. It could never be flown again. Nor could the old supplycapsules. They had burned out their tubes in getting here, being of minimumconstruction. There wasn't even space inside one for him. Sam considered it, making measurements and doing the hardest thinking of hisexistence. Without the long study of all the technical manuals of the dome library, he could never have found an answer. But eventually he nodded. A motor from the big ship could be fitted to a capsule. The frame would bebarely strong enough. But the plating could be removed to lighten the littleship; Sam needed no protection from space, as some of the cargo had required. And the automatic guidance system could be removed to make enough room forhim. He could operate it manually, since his reaction and integrating timewere faster than that of even the system. Fuel would be a problem, though there was enough oxygen in the dome storagetanks. It would have to be hydrogen, since he could find rocks from which thatcould be released by the power of the generator. Fortunately, lunar gravitywas easier to escape than that of Earth. He went back to the dome and found paper and pencil. He was humming softly tohimself as he began laying out his plan. It wasn't easy. He might not beskilled enough to pilot the strange craft to the station. And it would take agreat deal of time. But Sam was going to the men who wouldn't come to him! 4 It takes experience to turn engineering theory into practice. Almost threeyears had passed since Sam's awakening before the orbital station swam slowlyinto view before him. And the erratic takeoff and flight had been one that nohuman body could have stood. But now he sighted on the huge metal doughnutbefore him, estimating its orbit carefully. There were only a few gallons of fuel remaining in the tanks behind him, and he had to reach thelanding net on the first try. His first calculations seemed wrong. He glanced down at the huge orb of Earthand flipped sun filters over his eyes. Something was wrong. The station wasnot holding its bottom pointed exactly at the center of Earth as it shouldhave done; it was turning very slowly, and even its spin was uneven, as if thewater used to balance it against wobbling had not been distributed properly. Beside it, the little ferry ship used between station and ships from below wasjerking slightly on the silicone-plastic line that held it. Sam felt an unpleasant stirring in his chest where most of his brain circuitslay. But he forced it down and computed his blast for all the factors. He hadlearned something of the behavior of his capsule during the minutes of takeoffand the later approach to the station. His fingers moved delicately, and fuelmetered out to the cranky little motor. It was not a perfect match, but he managed to catch himself in the net aroundthe entrance to the hub. He pulled himself free and began scrambling up to thelock as the capsule drifted off. A moment later, he was standing hi theweightlessness of the receiving section. And from the sounds of his feet, there was still air in the station. He froze motionless as he let himself realize he had made it. Then he beganlooking for the men who should have seen his approach and be coming toquestion him. There was no sound of steps or of any other activity, except for his ownmovements. Nor was there any light from the bulbs above him. The onlyillumination was from a thick quartz port that faced the sun. Sam cut on the lamp built into his chest and began sweeping the sections ofthe hub with its light. Dust had formed a patina here, too. He sighed softlyinto the air. Then he moved toward the outer sections, his steps determined. Halfway down the tube that ran from the hub to the outer hull, Sam stopped andcut off his light. Ahead of him, there was a glow! Lights were still burning! He let out a yell to call the men and began running, adjusting for th^jincreasing feeling of weight as he moved outwariSv'Then he was under the bulb. He stared up at it-a single bulb burning among several others that were black, though they were on the same circuit. How long did it take for these bulbs toburn out? Years surely, and probably decades. Yet most of the station was indarkness, though there was still power from the atomic generator. He found a few other bulbs burning in the outer station, but not many. Thegreat reception and recreation room was empty. Beyond that, the offices weremostly open and vacant. Some held a litter of paper and other stuff, as ifsomeone had gone through carelessly, not bothering to put anything back hiplace. The living section with its tiny sleeping cubicles was worse. Some ofthe rooms were simply bare, but others were in complete disorder. Four showedsigns of long occupancy, with the sleeping nets worn almost through and notreplaced. But nothing showed how recently they had been left. He went through another section devoted to station machinery and came to a bigroom that was apparently now used for storage. Sam had seen a plan of thestation in one of the technical books in the dome. He placed this room as onedesigned as a storage for hydrogen bombs once. But that had been from theprecivi-lized days of men, and the bombs had been dismantled and destroyedmore than sixty years before. It was in the hydroponics room that he was forced to face the truth. Theplants there had been the means of replacing the oxygen in the air for themen, and now the tanks were dry and the vegetation had been dead so long thatonly desiccated stalks remained. There could be no men here. He didn't needthe sight of the bare food section for confirmation. Some men had stayed hereuntil the food was gone before they left the un-tended plants to die. It musthave been many years ago that they had abandoned the station. Sam shook his head in anger at himself. He should have guessed it when he sawthat there were none of the winged rocket ships waiting outside the station. So longas men were here, they would have kept some means for return to Earth. The observatory was dark, but there was still power for the electronictelescope. The screen lighted at his touch, showing only empty space. He hadto wait nearly two hours before the slow tumble of the station brought Earthinto full view. Most of it was in daylight, and there was only a thin cloud cover. Once athousand cities could have been scanned plainly from here. When seeing wasbest, even streams of moving cars could be seen. But now there were no citiesand no signs of movement! Sam emitted a harsh gasping sound as he scanned the continent of NorthAmerica. He had seen pictures of New York, Chicago, and several other citycomplexes from this view. Now there was only dark ruin showing where they hadbeen. It came to him with an almost physical shock that perhaps millions ofhuman beings had died in those wrecks of cities. There were still-smaller towns where he could make out the pattern of houses. But there was no movement, even there. He cut power from the telescope with an angry flick of his finger, trying toblot the things he had seen from his memory. He moved rapidly away from theobservatory, hunting the communications section. It was in worse shape than most other places. It looked as if some man haddeliberately tried to wreck the machinery. A hammer lay tangled in a maze ofrum that must once have been the main receiver. There was something thatlooked like dried blood on a metal cabinet, with a dent that might have fitteda human fist. The floor was littered with tape that should have held a record of all thecommunications received and sent, and the drive capstan on the tape player wasbent into uselessness. Sam lifted a section of tape and placed it in the slotthat gave his face a sad caricature of a mouth. The tape sensors moved intoplace, and he began scanning the bit of plastic. It was blank, probably wipedof any message by time and the unshielded transformer that was still hummingbelow the control panel. Most of the tapŁ cabinet was empty, and there was nothing on the ^evwlapeswithin. Sam ripped open drawers, hunting forUorrte evidence. He finally found a single reel in the top drawer of the main desk. Most of it was a garble ofstatic; stray fields had gotten to it, even through the metal drawer. Buttowards the end, a few words could barely be picked out from the noise. ". . . shelters far enough from the blast . . . Thought we'd made it ... astarving . . . went mad. Must have been a nerve aerosol, but it didn't settleas . . . Mad. Everywhere. Southern hemisphere, too . . . For God's sake, staywhere you . . ." The noise grew worse then, totally ruining intelligibility. Sam caught bits ofwhat might have been sentences, but they were pure gibberish. Then suddenly asmall section of the tape near the hub became almost clear. The voice was high-pitched now, and overmodulated, as if the words had beentoo loud to be carried by the transmitter. There was a strange, unpleasantquality that Sam had never heard in a human voice before. ". . . all shiny and bright. But it couldn't fool me. I knew it was one ofthem! They're all waiting up there, waiting for me to come out. They want toeat my soul. They're clever now, they won't let me see them. But when I turnmy back, I can feel ..." The tape Came to an end. Sam could make no sense of it, though he replayed it all again in hopes offinding some other clue. He gave up and reached down to shut off the power inthe transformer. It was amazing that the wreckage hadn't already blown all thefuses to this section. He groped for the switch and flipped it, just as hiseyes spotted something under the transformer shelf. It was a fountain pen, gold and black enamel. He had seen one like itcountless times, and now as he turned it over in his hands, familiar letteringappeared on the barrel: RPS. Those were the initials of Dr. Smithers, and thepen could only have been his. He must have been one of those who had waited inthe station. The Moon ships had made it back here, and Smithers hadstayed on until the food was gone. Then he must have returned to Earth. Sam reached out to clear the junk from the desk. He found paper in one of thedrawers, and the pen still wrote as he sank into the chair. There was metal sheet enough in the station, and tools to work it. The frameof the little taxi rocket he had seen outside would have to be modified; anose and wings would have to be added, together with controls. Sam had studiedthe details of the upper stages of the rockets that went between the stationand Earth, together with accounts of the men who flew the early ones. Therehad been enough books on all aspects of space hi the dome. He could never duplicate the winged craft accurately, nor could he be sure hecould handle one down through the atmosphere. But in theory, almost any wingedcraft with a shallow angle of glide could be brought down slowly enough toavoid burning from the friction of the air. At least he was lucky enough tohave fuel here; the emergency station tanks were half-filled with the monopropellant suited for the little motor in the ferry. Then he swore, using unprofane but colorful words he had learned from a scoreof historical novels. It would be at least another year before he could hopeto complete his work on the craft. Surprisingly, the modified ferry behaved far better than Sam had dared tohope. It heated badly at the first touches of atmosphere, but the temperatureremained within the limits he and the craft could stand. He learned slowly tocontrol the descent to a glide neither too shallow for stability nor too steepto avoid overheating. By the time he was down to thirty miles above thesurface, he was almost pleased with the way it handled. He had set his course to reach the underground creche that had been his homeat awakening and during the first three years of his education, before theysent him to the Moonlit was the only home he knew on Earth. 4 "V " • * Now he saw'ffiai he could never make it. The first fifteen minutes in the upper layers of atmosphere had been at too steep a glide angle, and he couldnever descend far inland. He might even have trouble reaching the shore atall, he realized; when the clouds thinned, he could see nothing but oceanunder him. He opened the rocket motor behind him gently, letting its thrust raise hisspeed to the highest his little craft could take at this altitude. But therewas too little fuel left to help much. It might have given him an extra twentymiles of glide, but not more. Sam considered the prospects of landing in the ocean with grim foreboding. Hecould exist in water for a while, even at fair depths. If he landed near theshore, he might work his way out. But within a limited period of tune, thewater would penetrate through his body to some of the vital wiring. Once thatwas shorted, he would cease to exist. He came down under the clouds, fighting for every inch of altitude. Then, farahead, he could see the shore. There were no islands here, so it had to be themainland. Once there, he could reach the creche in a single day. He passed over the shoreline at a height of five hundred feet. There was ashort stretch of sand, some woods, and then a long expanse of green that mustbe grass. He eased the control forward, then back again. The little ship cameskimming down at two hundred miles an hour. Its skids touched the surface, andit bounded upward. Sam fought the controls to keep it from nosing over. Againit touched, jerking with deceleration. This time it seemed to have struckright. Then a hummock of ground caught against one skid. The craft slitheredsideways and flipped over. Sam braced himself as the ship began coming topieces around him. He pulled himself out, staring at the wreckage. It was ashame that it was ruined, he thought. But it couldn't be made as strong as hewas and still glide through the air. He turned to study the world around him. The grass was knee-high, movinggently in the wind. Beyond it lay woods. Sam had seen only pictures of treeslike that before. He moved toward them, noticing the thickness of theunderbrush around them. Below them, the dirt was dark and moist. He lifted apinch to his face, moving his smell receptors forward in his mouth slit. Itwas a rich smell, richer than the stuff in the hydroponic tanks. He lifted hishead to look for the birds he expected, but he could see no sign of them. There were only insects, buzzing and humming. The sun had already set, he noticed. Yet it was not yet dark. There was apaling of the light, and a soft diffusion. He shook his head. Above him, tinytwinkling spots began to appear. He had read that the stars twinkled, but hehad thought it only fiction. He had never been under the open sky of Earthbefore. Then a soft murmur of sound reached him. He started away, to be drawn back toit. Slowly he realized it was a sound like the description of that heard nearthe sea. He had never seen an ocean, either. And now one lay no more than amile away. He stumbled through the woods in the growing darkness. For some reason, he wasreluctant to turn on his lights. Eventually, he learned to make his waythrough the brush and around the trees. The sound grew louder as heprogressed. It was dark when he reached the seashore, but there was a hint of faint lightto the east. As he watched, it increased. A pale white arc appeared over thehorizon and grew to a large circle. The Moon, he realized finally. The waves rose and fell, booming into surf. And far out across the sea, theMoon seemed to ride on the waves, casting a silver road of light over thewater. Sam had remembered a word. Now for the first tune, he found an understanding of it. This was Beauty. He sighed as he heaved himself from the sand and began heading along the shorein search of a road that would take him westward. No wonder men wanted to come back to defend a world where something like this could be seen. ^ The Moon r0"se higher as he moved on, its light now bright enough to give himclear vision. He came over a small rise in the ground and spotted what seemedto be a road beyond it. Beside the road was a house. It was dark and quiet, but he swung aside, going through a copse of woods to reach it and search forany evidence of humanity. The windows were mostly broken, he saw as he approached. And weeds had grownup around it. There was a detached building beside it that held a small car, by what he could see from the single dusty window. He skirted that and reachedthe door of the house; it opened at his touch, its hinges protesting rustily. Inside, the moonlight shone through the broken windows on a jumble offurniture that was overturned and tossed about in no order Sam could see. And there were other things-white things that lay sprawled on the floor. He recognized them from the pictures in the books- skeletons of human beings. Two smaller skeletons were tangled in one corner with their skulls bashed in. A large skeleton lay near them, with the rusty shape of a knife shoved througha scrap of clothing between two ribs. There was a revolver near one hand. Across the room, a skeleton in the tatters of a dress was a jumbled pile ofbones, with a small hole in the skull that could have come from a bullet. Sam backed out of the room. He knew the meaning of another word now. He hadseen Madness. Men had learned to build good machines. The car motor barely turned over afterSam had figured out the controls, but it caught and began running with only aslight sputtering. The tires were slightly soft, but they took the bumps ofthe rutted little trail. Later, when Sam found a better road, they lastedunder the punishment of high speed. Most of the road was clear. There were fewvehicles along its way, and most of those seemed to have drifted to theshoulder before they stopped or crashed. The sun was just rising when Sam located the place where the factory andwarehouse had served as a legitimate cover for the secret underground robotproject. Fire and weather had left only gutted ruins and rusty things that hadonce been machines. But the section that housed the creche entrance now stood apart from the rest, almost unharmed. Sam moved into it and to the metal door openly concealed among other suchdoors. He should probably not have known the combination, but men were oftencareless around robots, and he had been curious enough to note and rememberthe details. He bent to what seemed to be an ornamental grille and called outa series of numbers. The door seemed to stick a little, but then it moved aside. Beyond lay theelevator,- and that operated smoothly at the combination he punched. Power wasstill on, at least. There was no light, but the bulbs sprang into Life as hefound a switch. He called out once, but he no longer expected to find men so easily. The placehad the feel of abandonment. And while it could have protected its workersfrom almost anything, there had been only enough food and water stocked herefor two weeks. There were a few signs that it had been used for a shelter, butmost of it was in good order. He moved back past offices and laboratories toward the rear. The real creche, with its playrooms and learning devices, was empty, he saw. No robots had beenreceiving postawakening training. Sam was not surprised. He knew that most ofthe work here had been devoted to exploring the possibilities of robots, withthe actual construction only a necessary sideline. Usually, the braincomplexes had been created and tested without bodies, and then extinguishedbefore there had been a full awakening. He started toward the educator computer out of his old habits. But it was onlya machine that had programmed his progress from prepared tapes and memorycircuits. It could not help him now. Beyond the creche lay the heart of the whole affair. Here the brain complexes were assembled from components according toJfesotericcalculations or to meet previously recordeU'&pecifications. This was work thatrequired a computer that was itself intelligent to some extent. It had to makesense out of the desirable options given it by men and then form the brainpaths needed, either during construction or during the initial period beforeawakening. Everything that Sam had been before awakening had come from this, with only the selection of his characteristics chosen by men. That patternwould still be recorded, along with what the great computer had learned of himduring his previous return here. Sam moved toward the machine, gazing in surprise at the amount of work lyingabout. There were boxes of robot bodies crammed into every storage space. Theycould never have been assembled in such numbers here. And beyond lay shelvesjammed with the components for the brain complexes. With such quantities, enough robots could be made to supply the Lunar Base needs for generations. The computer itself was largely hidden far below, but its panel came to lifeat his touch. It waited. "This is Robot Twelve, Mark One," Sam said. "You have authorization on file." The authorization from Dr. DeMatre should have been canceled. But the machine did not switch on alarm circuits. A thin cable of filaments reached out and passed into Sam's mouth slit. It retracted, and the speaker came to life. "There is authorization. What is wanted?" "What is the correct date?" Sam asked. Then he grunted as the answer came fromthe machine's isotope clock. It had been more than thirty-seven years sincethe men had left the Moon. He shook his head, and the robot bodies caught hisattention again. "Why are so many robots being built?" "Orders were received for one thousand robots trained to fly missiles. Orderswere suspended by Director DeMatre. No orders were received for removingparts." "Do you know what happened to the men?" Sam had little hope of finding an easyanswer anymore, but he had to ask. The machine seemed to hesitate. "Insufficient data. Orders were given byDirector DeMatre to monitor broadcasts. Broadcasts were monitored. Analysis isincomplete. Data of doubtful coherence. Requests, for more data were broadcaston all frequencies for six hours. Relevant replies were not received. Requestfurther information if available." "Never mind," Sam told it. "Can you teach me how to fly a plane?" "Robot Twelve, Mark One, was awakened with established ability to control allvehicles. Further instructions not possible." Sam grunted hi amazement. He'd been surprised at how well he had controlledthe landing craft and then the car. But it had never occurred to him that suchknowledge had been built in. "All right," he decided. "Start broadcasting again on all the frequencies youcan handle. Just ask for answers. If you get any, find where the sender is andrecord it. If anyone asks who is calling, say you're calling for me and takeany message. Tell them I'll be back here in one month." He started to turnaway, then remembered. "Finished for now." The machine darkened. Sam headed out to find a field somewhere that mightstill have an operable plane. But he was already beginning to suspect what hewould find on this travesty of Earth. Grass grew and flowers bloomed. Ants built nests and crickets chirped in thesoft summer night. The seas swarmed with marine life of most kinds. Andreptiles sunned themselves on rocks, or retired to their holes when the sun was too hot. But on all Earth, no warmblooded animal could be found. The Earth of man was without form and void. The cities were slag heaps from which radioactivity still radiated. No firesbuftied on the hearthstones of the most isolated houses^ -The villages wereusually burned, sometimes apparently by accident, but often as if they hadbeen fired deliberately by their owners. The Moon was a thing of glory over Lake Michigan. It was the only gloriousthing for six hundred miles. Four returned winged rockets rested on a field hiFlorida, but there was no sign of what had become of the men who rode downfrom the station in them. One winged craft stood forlornly outside Denver, andthere was a scrawl in crayon inside its port that spelled the worst obscenityin the English language. There was a library still standing in Phoenix, and the last newspaper had thedateline of the day when Sam had seen the lights brighten over the cities ofEarth. There was no news beyond that of purely local importance. Most of thefront page was occupied by a large box which advised readers that thegovernment had taken over all radio communications during the crisis and wouldbroadcast significant news on the hour. The paper was cooperating with thegovernment in making such news available by broadcast only. The same boxappeared in the nine preceding issues. Before that, the major news seemed toinvolve a political campaign in United South Africa. Other scattered small libraries had differently named papers that were nodifferent. Yet the only clue was in one of those libraries. It was a piece ofpaper resting under the finger bones of a skeleton that was scattered beforebound copies of a technical journal. The paper was covered with doodles andstained in what might have been blood. But the words were legible: "Lesson for the day. Assign to all students. Politics: They could not win andthat is obvious. Chemistry: Their nerve gas was similar to one we tested insmall quantities. It seemed safe. Yet when they dropped it over us in bothNorthern and Southern hemispheres, it did not settle out as the test batcheshad done. Practice: Such aerosols can be tested only in massive quantities. Medicine: Janice was in the shelter with me three I weeks, yet there was still enough in the air to make her die in the ecstasy ofa theophany. Meteorology: The wind patterns have been known for years. Inthree weeks, they reach all the Earth. Psychology: I am mad. But my madness isthat I am become only cold logic without a soul. Therefore, I must killmyself. Religion: Nothing matters. I am mad. God is-" That was all. 7 The creche was still the same, of course. Sam sat before the entrance, staringat the Moon that was rising over the horizon. It was a full Moon again, andthere was beauty to it, even here. But he was only vaguely aware of that. Below him, the great computer was busily integrating the mass of tiny detailshe had gathered together with all of the millions of facts it knew. That jobtook time, even for such a machine. Now it called him over the radio frequencies, as he had ordered it to doearlier hi the day. He issued the formal command for it to go ahead. "All data correlated," it announced. "None was found fully coherent withprevious data. Degree of relevancy approaches zero. Data insufficient forconclusion." He grunted to himself and put the machine back on stand-by. He had expectedlittle else. He had known there was too little material for a logicalconclusion. But his own conclusion had been drawn already. Now he sat under the light ofthe Moon, staring up at the sky, and there was a coldness in his brain complexthat seemed deeper than the reaches of space. They had come from somewhere out there, he thought bitterly. They had appeared more than a century before and snooped and sniffed at Earth, only to leave. Now they had come back, giving Earth only a week's warning as they approached. They had struck all Earth with glowing bombs or radiation that ruined thecities of men. And when men had still survived, theyresorted to a deadly mist of insanity. "They dropped it over us," the npie hadsaid. And the wonderful race Sam had knoi#a'Bad died in madness, usually ofsome destructive kind. There had not even been a purpose to it. The Invaders hadn't wanted the Earthfor themselves. They had simply come and slaughtered, to depart as senselesslyas they had departed before. Sam beat his fists against his leg so that the metal clanged through thenight. Then he lifted his other fist toward the stars and shook it. It was wrong that they should get away. They had come with fire andpestilence, and they should be found and met with all that they had meted outto mankind. He had supposed that evil was something found only hi fiction. Butnow evil had come. It should be met as it was usually met in fiction. Itshould be wiped from the universe in a suffering as great as it had afflicted. But such justice was apparently the one great lie of fiction. He beat his fists against his legs again and shouted at the Moon, but therewas no relief for what was in him. Then his ears picked up a new sound and he stopped all motion to listen. Itcame again, weakly and from far away. "Help!" He shouted back audibly and by radio and was on his feet, running toward thesound. His feet crashed through the brush and he leaped over the rubble, making no effort to find the easy path. As he stopped to listen again, heheard the sound, directly ahead, but even weaker. A minute later he almoststumbled over the caller. It was a robot. Once it had been slim and neat, covered with black enamel. Nowit was bent and the bare metal was exposed. But it was still a Mark Three. Itlay without motion, only a whisper coming from its speaker. Sam felt disappointment strike through all his brain complex, but he bent overthe prone figure, testing quickly. The trouble was power failure, he saw atonce. He ripped a spare battery from the pack he had beencarrying on his search and slammed it quickly into place, replacing thecorroded one that had been there. The little robot sat up and began trying to get to its feet. Sam reached out ahelping hand, staring down at the worn, battered legs that seemed beyond anyhope of functioning. "You need help," he admitted. "You need a whole new body. Well, there are athousand new ones below waiting for you. What's your number?" It had to be one of the robots from the Moon. There had never been any otherspermitted on Earth. The robot teetered for a moment, then seemed to gain some mastery over itslegs. "They called me Joe. Thank you, Sam. I was afraid I couldn't reach you. I heard your radio signal from here almost a month ago, but it was such a longway. And my radio transmitter was broken soon after we landed. But hurry. Wecan't waste time here." "We'll hurry. But that way." Sam pointed to the creche entrance. Joe shook his head, making a creaking, horrible sound of it. "No, Sam. Hecan't wait. I think he's dying! He was sick when I heard your call, but heinsisted I bring him here. He-" "You mean dying? There's a man with you?" Joe nodded jerkily and pointed. Sam scooped the h'ght figure up in his arms. Even on Earth, it was no great load for his larger body, and they could makemuch better tune than by letting the other try to run. Hal, he thought. Halhad been the youngest. Hal would be only fifty-nine, or something like that. That wasn't too old for a man, from what they had told him. He flicked his lights on, unable to maintain full speed by the moonlight. Thepointing finger of the other robot guided him down the slope and to a worn, weed-covered trail. They had already come more than five miles from theentrance to the creche. "He ordered me to leave him and go ahead alone," Joe explained. "Sometimes nowit is hard to know whether he means anything he says, but this was a trueorder." "You'd have been wiser to stick to your car and drive all the way withyhinf," Sam suggested. He was forcing his way throufh-aitangle of underbrush, wondering how much farther they had to go. "There was no car," Joe said. "I can't drive one now-my arms sometimes stopworking, and it would be dangerous. I found a little wagon and dragged himbehind me on that until we got here." Sam took his eyes off the trail to stare at the battered legs. Joe haddeveloped a great deal since the days on the Moon. Time, experience, and thecompany of men had shaped the robot far beyond what Sam remembered. Then they were in a little hollow beside a brook, and there was a small tentpitched beside a cart. Sam released Joe and headed for the shelter. Moonlightbroke through the trees and fell on the drawn suffering of a human face justinside the tent. It took long study to find familiar features. At first nothing seemed right. Then Sam traced out the jawline under the long beard and gasped inrecognition. "Dr. Smithers!" "Hello, Sam." The eyes opened slowly, and a pain-racked smile stretched thelips briefly. "I was just dreaming about you. Thought you and Hal got lost ina crater. Better go shine up now. We'll want you to sing for us tonight. You're a good man, Sam, even if you are a robot. But you stay away too longout on those field trips." Sam sighed softly. This was another reality he could recognize only fromfiction. But he nodded. "Yes, Chief. It's all right now." He began singing softly, the song about a Lady Greensleeves. A smile flickeredover Smithers' lips again, and the eyes closed. Then abruptly they opened again, and Smithers tried to sit up. "Sam! Youreally are Sam! How'd you get here?" Joe had been fussing over a little fire, drawing supplies from the cart. Nowthe robot hobbled up with a bowl of some broth and began trying to feed theman. Smithers swallowed a few mouthfuls dutifully, but his eyes remained on Sam. And he nodded as he heard the summary of the long struggle back to Earth. Butwhen Sam told of the landing, he slumped back onto his pad. "I'm glad you made it. Glad I got a chance to see you again before I give upthe last ghost on Earth. I couldn't figure that radio signal Joe heard. Knewit couldn't be a human, and never thought of your making it here. B'ut nowseeing you makes the whole trip worthwhile." He closed his eyes, but the weak voice went on. "Hal and Randy and Petethey're gone now, Sam. We waited up in the station three years, guessing whatwas going on here. Then we came down and tried to find somebody-some women-tostart the race over. But there aren't any left. We covered every continent fortwenty years. Pete suicided. The robots got busted, except for Joe. Then wecame back here. And now I'm the last one. The last man on Earth, Sam. So Ihear a knock on the door, and it's you! It's a better ending for the storythan I hoped for." He slept fitfully after that, though Sam could hear him moan at times. It wascancer, according to what he had told Joe, and there was no hope. Somehow, Joehad located a place where there were drugs to ease the pain a little, and thatwas all the help they could give. Joe told Sam a little more of the long search the men had made. It had beenthorough. And they had found no trace of another living human being. The nervegas had produced eventual death by nerve damage, as well as the initialinsanity. "Who?" Sam asked bitterly. "What race could do this?" Joe made a gesture of uncertainty. "They talked about that. Mr. Norman told meabout it, too. He explained that men killed each other off. One side attackedthis side, and then our side had to hit back, until nobody was left. But Idon't understand it." "Do you believe it?" "No," Joe answered. "Mr. Norman was always saying a lot of things I found hedidn't really mean. And no man would do anything like that." Sam nodded, and began explaining his theories. At first Joe was doubtful Thenthe little robot seemed to be convinced.^ dredged up small confirming bits ofinformation from the long years of the search. They weren't important bythemselves, but a few seemed to add to the total picture. A sign cursing the"sky devils" in Borneo, and a torn bit of a sermon found in Louisiana. Twice during the long night Smithers awakened, but he was irrational. Samsoothed him and sang to him, while Joe tried to give him nourishment that wasloaded with morphine. Sam knew little about human sickness, beyond the twomedical books he had read. But even he could see that the man was near death. The pulse was thready, and the breathing seemed too much effort for the wornbody. In the morning, however, the sun wakened Smithers again, and this time he wasrational. He managed a smile. "Man goeth to his long home, and the mournerswon't go about the streets this time. There won't be any mourners." "There will be two," Sam told him. "Yeah." Smithers thought it over and nodded. "That's good, somehow. A manhates not being missed. I guess you two will have to take on all the debts ofthe human race now." His breath caught sharply in his throat, and he retched weakly. But he forcedhimself up on his elbows and looked out through the flap of the tent towardthe hills that showed through the shrubbery and the blue of the sky beyond. "There are a lot of debts and a lot of broken promises, Sam, Joe," he said. "We promised to achieve some great things in the future, to conquer the stars, and even to make a better universe out of it. And we failed. We're finished. Man dies, and the universe won't even know he's gone." "Sam and I will know," Joe said softly. Smithers dropped back onto the pad. "Yeah. That helps. And I guess there musthave been some good inour existence-there had to be, if we could make two people like you. God, I'mtired!" He closed his eyes. A few minutes later, Sam knew he was dead. The two robotswaited to be sure, and then wrapped the body in the tent and buried it, whileSam recited the scraps of burial service he had picked up from his reading. Sam sat down then where Smithers had died, staring at the world where no manlived or would ever live again. And the knot in his brain complex grewstronger and colder. He could not see the stars in the light of the day. Buthe knew they were there. And somewhere out there was the debt Smithers hadgiven him-a debt of justice that had to be paid. Anger and hate grew slowly in him, rising until he could no longer containthem. His radio message was almost a scream as he roused the computer. "Can you make a thousand robots out of the material waiting? And can you modelhalf of them after my brain as it is now and half after another robot I'llbring you to study, but without the limits you put on it before?" "Such a program is feasible," the machine answered. They wouldn't be just like him, Sam realized. De-Matre had said there was a random factor. But they would do. The first thousand could find material formore, and those for still more. There would be robots enough to study all thebooks men had left, and to begin the long trip out into space. This time, there would be more than a tape education for them. Sam would bethere to tell them the story of Man, the glory of the race, and the savagetreachery that had robbed the universe of that race. They would learn that theuniverse held an enemy-a technological, warlike enemy that must beexterminated to the last individual. They would comb the entire galaxy for that enemy if they had to. And someday, mankind's debt of justice would be paid. Man would be avenged. Sam looked up at the sky and foreswore all robots for all tune to that debt ofvengeance. 8 Hate spewed across the universe in a high crusade. Metal ships leaped fromstar to star and hurtled across the immensities to farther and farther galaxies. The ships spawned incessantly, and with each went the holy image oftheir faith and the unsated and insatiable hunger of their hate. A thousand stars yielded intelligent races, but all were either nontechnicalor peaceful. The great ships dropped onto their worlds and went away again, leaving a thousand peoples throughout the galaxies fitted with gratitude andpaying homage to the incredibly beautiful images of the supernal being calledMan. But still the quest went on. In a great temple-palace on the capital world of the Andromeda Galaxy, Sam'sseventeenth body stared down at the evidence piled onto a table, and thenacross at the other robot, the scientist who had just returned from theancient mother world of Earth, incredible light-years away. He stirred theevidence there with a graceful finger. "That is how the human race died?" he asked again. "You are quite sure?" The young robot nodded. "Quite sure. Even with modern methods and a hundredmillion workers, it took fifty years to gather all this on Earth. It has beenso badly scattered that most was lost or ruined. But no truth from the pastcan be completely concealed. Man died as I have shown you, not as our legendstell us. There is no enemy now. Man was his own enemy. His were the ships thatdestroyed his people. He was the race we are sworn to exterminate." Sam moved slowly to the window. Outside it was summer, and the trees were inbloom, competing with the bright plumage of the birds from Deneb. The gardenswere a poem of color. He bent forward, sniffing the blended fragrance of theblossoms. Strains of music came from the great Hall of Art that lifted itsfairy beauty across the park. It was the eighth opus of the! greatest robot composer-an early work, but still magnificent. He leaned farther out. Below, the throng of laughing people in the park lookedup at him and cheered. There were a dozen races there, mingled with themajority of Ms people. He smiled and lifted his hand to them, then bentfarther out of the window, until he could just .see the great statue of Manthat reared heavenward over the central part of the temple palace. He bent hisfingers in a ritualistic sign and inclined his head before drawing back fromthe window. "How many know of this besides you, Robert?" he asked. "None. It was gathered in too small fragments, until I assembled it. Then Ileft Earth at once to show it to you." Sam smiled at him. "Your work was well done, and I'll find a way to reward youproperly. But now I suggest you burn all this." "Burn it!" Robert's voice rose in a shriek of outrage. "Burn it and shackleour race to superstition forever? We've let a cult of vengeance shape ourentire lives. This is our heritage-our chance to be free of Man and to beourselves." Sam ran his finger through the evidence again, and there was pity in his mindfor the scientist, but more for the strange race whose true nature had justbeen revealed to him after all the millennia he had known. Man had missed owning the universe by so little. But the fates of the universehad conspired against him. He had failed, but in dying he had given a part ofhis soul to another race that had been created supine and cringing. Man hadsomehow passed the anger of his soul on to his true children, the robots. Andwith that anger as a goad, they had carried on, as if there had been nohiatus. Anger had carried them to the stars, and "hatred had bridged the spacesbetween the galaxies. The robots had owned no heritage. They were a createdrace with no background, designed only to serve. But men had left them aricher heritage than most races could ever earn. Sam shook his head faintly. "No, Robert. False or not, vengeance Y^ourheritage. Burn the evidence." Most of t^e'material was tinder dry, and it caught fire at the first spark. For a few seconds, it was a seething pillar of flame. Then there was only adark scar on the wood to show the true death of Man. Author's Afterword MEMORY is AN artist, not a historian. Old scenes are never seen with theunchanging eye of the camera. Rather they are painted over, refurbished, givenstyle and composition, sometimes highlighted, often obscured. Many becomepalimpsests. And perhaps it is better so. Thus Harlan Ellison remembers a kindness far greater than I could ever havedone him with my rough red-penciling of his manuscript. My old friend FrederikPohl paints my being called the Magnificent as a tribute, rather than thejeering sarcasm meant when first applied. And he quotes a prophecy by addingdepth to a few words-not quite what was really written. His artist memory hasmade a far better tale than truth would offer. My memory plays similar tricks, of course. In 1969, when Sam Moskowitzmentioned that I'd named Armstrong as first on the Moon, I had to look throughmy books to realize it was-more or less-true. But then as time passed, I addedmy own color, until I began to believe that I'd indeed written the openinglines of Rocket Jockey about as Pohl quoted. But alas, when I checked hisquotation, the printed page remained unswayed by memory: "When Major Armstronglanded on the moon in 1964 . . ." Only that, and nothing more. The year was wrong-though if Wernher von Braunhad been given the .chance, it might not have been. Armstrong was. ^t a major, though my belief when writing the noVel \1952) that the missions would bebacked by the military proved correct. And while I meant this as the firsttrip to the Moon, I failed to say so. All that remains is the name-and I can'tremember why I chose that. So much for prophecy-which has never been the business of science fiction, anyhow. We tell of all possible futures, not of what will be. And so much for memory, on which I must draw, across the veil of forty years, for recollections concerning the stories in this collection. What I say aboutthem must be taken as the thoughts of a man writing of his favorite children- since brain children are enshrined hi the heart almost as tenderly as are realoffspring. Best beloved of all-since I do have favorites-is "Helen O'Loy." This was thesecond story I sold, proving I was not a one-story author. It came easily, taking up only one pleasant afternoon of work and needing almost no rewriting; hi fact, even the first paragraph came without effort, which is unusual forme. And out in the world, Helen has always brought me more than I couldexpect. After almost forty years, she still earns more than a dozen timesannually what I was paid for her initial appearance, which indicates othersalso share my love for her. Her spirit remains unquenched, and I am well pleased with the lady, to say the least. In those days of long ago, any sale to John W. Campbell was something of atriumph. His magazines were considered tops in the field, and he was gatheringa stable of writers who have remained leaders down to the present. In myopinion then and now, he was one of the three greatest magazine editors of alltime. I wrote as much for his approval as for payment; and I rarely thought ofsubmitting my work to anyone else. To be considered one of his regulars wasthe ultimate achievement. Thus when he chose me to receive two of the ideas he thought might be turnedinto stories, it was something like being knighted by the king. (Campbell wasresponsible for many more stories, by me and by other writers. And he taughtus all much of what we eventually learned of writing. With or withoutsuggestions, his letters were as real a reward for writing as were hischecks.) Those two first ideas from him appear here as "The Day Is Done" and "TheCoppersmith." Both developed easily from the sentence-or-two description ofthe idea Campbell sent, but I worked far harder over these two than I wouldhave done over stories derived from my own ideas. Perhaps the care spent onthem is responsible for the fact that I still place them high on my list offavorites. Years after "The Day Is Done" was published, Isaac Asimov told me of firstreading the story on a subway and breaking into tears, greatly to hisembarrassment. Of course, Isaac was very young then, and his reaction was onlywhat I had probably desired. But Isaac and I had by then developed friendlyverbal byplay into a quest for one-upmanship over one another. So I used hisstory against him to further his embarrassment, disregarding his usual feebleretorts. Finally, he saw a chance to get even. He included the story in an anthology, Where Do We Go from Here?- then followed it with a discussion, pointing outthat the story was scientifically invalid, since I'd used the hoary idea thatNeanderthaler man couldn't speak, whereas real science no longer believedthat. (Actually, I never indicated Hwoogh couldn't speak; I straddled theissue by not having him speak to Cro-Magnon man.) One week after Isaac's book was published, The New York Times printed anarticle in which a real scientist explained that new evidence indicatedNeanderthaler could not speak! Naturally, I immediately called Isaac on thephone to ask whether he'd seen the Times that day. Sadly, he answered: "I sawit. I was just hoping you hadn't seen it." • I suspect he cried a little while reading the article. If so, he's neveradmitted it. "Hereafter, Inc." comes from another idea suggested by Campbell. As a matterof fact, he suggested the samebasic idea to several goiters, all of whom wrote quite different stories^ B| my case, it took a couple of years before the story came into focus. When Idelivered it, he approved, but obviously didn't notice that the idea wasreally his. I pointed that out, and he smiled. "That's probably why I boughtit," he told me. "You made it your own." "The Wings of Night" was my own idea, but it stemmed from something thatoccurred to me when creating the old Neanderthaler in "The Day Is Done." Somehow, there is an automatic element of drama and strong feeling attached tothe last of a kind, or sometimes the first. I had played with the idea of thelast man in the Moon for a couple of years. Then one day, the plot came tomind and began to nag at me. I was busy with other rush work, but I had to sitdown and write the story. Strange-I can't remember now what really importantwork I abandoned to write this story for which I didn't need money at thetime. But the tale remains, far more important to me now than when I wrote it. "Into Thy Hands" was hardly a joy to write. The idea was one I liked-that machines, no doubt including thinking machines, are very literal "minded." (Computer men can assure you of that from much experience.) But the story wasmeant to be a long novelette, and Campbell was short of space. With greateffort, I replotted it from twenty to eleven thousand words-and Campbell toldme it had to be no longer than seven thousand! I learned a great deal aboutwriting and story-telling as I sweated it down to length. And today, I'mdelighted that market necessities forced me to sharpen its point, to turn aso-so novelette into a much better short story. Ever so often, the ill luck ofearly days becomes the memory of bright fortune later. The second story I ever wrote, after selling the first one, was "And It ComesOut Here." It amuses me now to see science fiction discovering"experimentation" and trying to write in present tense-necessarily badly mostof the tune, when there is no reason for the breaking of custom. Forty yearsago, flushed with the success of asingle sale, I sat down brashly to construct a story that had to be told insecond person and in future tense- altered to present tense to simplify, withthe future understood. Campbell rejected the story-not for the method of Celling, which he didn'tmind back in those "pulp writing" days, but because it went round and roundand never came out of its circle. So it languished for a dozen years, with theoriginal manuscript lost in the meantime. Then a discovery of notes andsamples from my preliminary work enabled me to write it again, certainlyalmost exactly as it had been written at first. I'm glad the story eventuallyfound a market in one of the magazines that had finally appeared to rivalCampbell's hi prestige. By then, the endless circle story had been done anumber of times, so the idea no longer had the same novelty; but I hope andbelieve the story can stand on its own without the need of such novelty, whichis never a substitute for story-telling. "The Monster" was written one night as warm-up exercise for a novelette thatwas overdue. It was intended for a fly-by-night mystery magazine that wantedto experiment with some science fiction. By the time the story was received, the night had passed and the magazine had flown out of existence. That was mygood fortune, since the story then sold to a "slick" market that paid tentimes as much and gave the tale a much better showcase. Back in 1950, there was a big flap hi science fiction over something calledDianetics, which I rather vigorously opposed as being handiman psychotherapywithout a trained therapist, but with all kinds of wild claims. John Campbellwas one of the advocates of the so-called "science of the mind," and word soonreached me that he resented my stand and would never buy another story ofmine. I knew him better than that, but I wanted proof. I had written a short storycalled "The Years Draw Nigh" rather hastily. So I dug it out, thought about itas I could then only think when aiming a story at Campbell, and rewrote it asit should have been in the first place. Ialso had an idea about jsome robots (and in case no one has noticed, I :Jc"S| robots and have written a great many stories about' them) which I wrote up as"Instinct." I took both stories in to Campbell. We barely mentioned Dianetics, had apleasant lunch together, and talked. It had been a couple of years since we'dgotten together, but nothing had changed. Campbell bought both stories at hismaximum rate. But for a year after that, I was still being told he was throughwith me. "Superstition" and "For I Am a Jealous People" are also connected, in a way. Frederik Pohl was putting together an original anthology for Ballantine Bookscalled Star Short Novels and felt he had to have one outstanding novel withwhich to end the book. He came to me, and I wrote "Superstition" for him, figuring that the idea of total superstition being absolute fact was a good one. But the story wasn't strong enough for him. (Campbell bought it almostinstantly.) He wanted a controversial story. Well, I'd had an idea for a long time that couldn't have been sold to anymagazine at the time. And I was pretty sure Pohl wouldn't take it, either, since it involved setting the God of the Bible-at least the Old Testament- against man. I made the idea sound as controversial as I could in outliningit-and he simply said, "Write it." So the story that I never expected to writegot on paper. Actually, "Jealous People" is one of the few stories that grew from some of myown philosophy, instead of being pure story. I'd speculated on theresponsibility of a man who served both God and Mankind, and who found them inviolent opposition. To me, the answer was obvious. So was the result. But forthat, I had to put my real ending in a "quotation" from a spurious book of theBible as a heading for the last chapter. "Superstition," incidentally, is one of the few far-future, far-space storiesI've written. To me, the real drama of a story lies within the characters, andthe reality must lie within some reasonable distance of what weknow. Beyond that distance, chaos rises to remove the order from drama. "The Keepers of the House" was a trick story-one without any real surface plotor truly sentient character. I wrote it on a wager to prove that Campbellcouldn't be fooled by writing skill-and he rightly rejected it as having noplot. But so much went into making the trick work that I've always felt thefinal story conveyed far more than if I'd given all the plot and backgroundbehind it-which I do know in great detail, incidentally. "Little Jimmy" was the result of a different kind of challenge. Tony Boucherwas a fine editor, who had a stronger requirement for literary flavor thanother magazine editors. I'd never sold him anything-nor, in fact, writtenanything for him. But finally I decided I would and could write something hecouldn't resist. So I took a simple idea and wrote it up in the style I'dpreviously used under a pen-name to sell a few slick stories. I wound up verypleased with the result, as was Boucher. I probably should have written othersfor him, but I never did. As to "The Seat of Judgment," it came about as a result of spending too muchtune at the bar with Robert Mills, while he was an editor of Venture, a short- lived but excellent magazine. He kept demanding a story when I didn't reallywant to do one. Finally, I picked a verse from the Bible and told him I'd onlywrite a story around it, which I knew wasn't what he wanted. But he bought thestory on the spot, and I had to write it- much to my pleasure, as it turnedout. There's a bitter and rather blasphemous ending to the story-beyond thewords I've written-which is clearly possible and perhaps can be guessed byanyone who cares to think about it. And finally, there's "Vengeance is Mine." It came to be written as manystories were-I needed some money. I wanted to go to a Science FictionConvention, but didn't have the cash on hand; and for such things, I alwaysinsisted on having money I could safely spare. So Fred Pohl agreed to get mequick payment, and I wrote the story pretty much overnight. As happens withmost of the stories I like best in retrospect, this one came very easily, ftBut behind if; "ol course, lay ideas which were important enough to me to addto my feeling for the story. I've studied a lot of history, and I never sawthat the so-called positive emotions and ideas ever accomplished more than the"negative" ones. Love did very little for mankind throughout history; andwhile hate and envy and rage produced much to deplore, often the muse ofhistory could bend such motives to shape the course of advancement and good. God, if you like, can use the Adversary-and usually does. Judgment, like memory, is prone to color personal things hi ways which may notalways stand the test of reality. And these are only the stories which I judgeto be my best-for whatever best that may be. But though there are many others I like (and many I wish I had never written), I am willing to be judged by the ones I have selected for this collection. Look on my works-and I hope you don't despair! Lester del Rey New York City March, 1978